Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n bishop_n council_n nicene_n 3,055 5 12.2441 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A15093 The way to the true church wherein the principall motiues perswading according to Romanisme and questions touching the nature and authoritie of the church and scriptures, are familiarly disputed, and driuen to their issues, where, this day they sticke betweene the Papists and vs: contriued into an answer to a popish discourse concerning the rule of faith and the marks of the church. And published to admonish such as decline to papistrie of the weake and vncertaine grounds, whereupon they haue ventured their soules. Directed to all that seeke for resolution: and especially to his louing countrimen of Lancashire. By Iohn White minister of Gods word at Eccles. For the finding out of the matter and questions handled, there are three tables: two in the beginning, and one in the end of the booke. White, John, 1570-1615. 1608 (1608) STC 25394; ESTC S101725 487,534 518

There are 49 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

spirit_n and_o i_o will_v pray_v and_o sing_v with_o the_o understanding_n also_o and_o origen_n 8_o origen_n cont._n cell_n l._n 8_o say_v let_v every_o man_n make_v his_o prayer_n to_o god_n in_o his_o native_a mother_n tongue_n and_o many_o learned_a papist_n confess_v 153._o confess_v lyra._n &_o tho._n &_o caiet_fw-mi upon_o 1._o cor._n 14._o eras_n declare_v ad_fw-la cens_fw-la pag._n 153._o that_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o long_o after_o the_o prayer_n and_o service_n be_v do_v in_o the_o mother_n tongue_n and_o that_o it_o be_v better_o for_o the_o church_n edification_n to_o have_v it_o so_o still_o cassander_n a_o great_a papist_n penult_n papist_n liturgic_n c._n 28._o &_o penult_n show_v this_o at_o large_a and_o add_v that_o diverse_a nation_n to_o this_o day_n retain_v the_o ancient_a custom_n still_o and_o never_o use_v any_o strange_a language_n in_o their_o prayer_n see_v justinian_n novel_a 123._o 3_o three_o touch_v the_o forbid_v of_o lay_v people_n to_o read_v the_o scripture_n and_o to_o have_v they_o in_o their_o mother_n tongue_n for_o 5.39_o for_o joh._n 5.39_o christ_n bid_v the_o people_n search_v the_o scripture_n and_o 17.11_o and_o act._n 17.11_o the_o christian_n of_o thessalonica_n search_v they_o daily_o and_o 6.7_o and_o deut._n 6.7_o moses_n command_v all_o householder_n to_o rehearse_v they_o continual_o to_o their_o family_n and_o 3.15_o and_o 2._o tim._n 3.15_o timothy_n of_o a_o child_n be_v train_v up_o in_o they_o and_o 100_o and_o corn._n agrip._n vanit_fw-la c._n 100_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a decree_v that_o no_o christian_n shall_v be_v without_o a_o bible_n and_o chrysostome_n laz._n chrysostome_n homil._n 3_o in_o laz._n bid_v the_o lay_a people_n take_v the_o bible_n into_o their_o hand_n and_o read_v it_o and_o mat._n and_o homil._n 2._o in_o mat._n say_v the_o read_v thereof_o be_v more_o needful_a to_o they_o then_o to_o the_o monk_n and_o jerome_n paul_n jerome_n epitaph_n paul_n commend_v it_o in_o woman_n of_o his_o time_n that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o they_o to_o be_v ignorant_a in_o the_o psalm_n or_o to_o pass_v over_o any_o day_n without_o learn_v something_o out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o which_o thing_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n at_o this_o day_n will_v not_o follow_v 4_o four_o touch_v the_o marriage_n of_o minister_n for_o in_o 1.13_o in_o levit._fw-la 21.7_o 2._o reg._n 4.1_o ezek_n 24.18_o luc._n 1.13_o the_o old_a law_n priest_n and_o prophet_n have_v wife_n and_o 13.4_o and_o heb._n 13.4_o the_o doctrine_n of_o saint_n paul_n be_v that_o marriage_n be_v honourable_a among_o all_o 13.4_o all_o paphnut_n apud_fw-la sozom._n l._n 1._o c._n 22._o theophyl_n in_o heb._n 13.4_o man_n tit._n man_n 1._o tim._n 3.2_o tit._n 1.6_o chrys_n hom_n 1._o in_o tit._n who_o also_o give_v order_n concern_v the_o wife_n and_o child_n of_o bishop_n which_o be_v needless_a if_o they_o may_v have_v none_o and_o that_o they_o be_v ordinary_o marry_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n appear_v by_o many_o example_n mantuan_n 1._o mantuan_n fast_o l._n 1._o say_v hilary_n a_o french_a bishop_n be_v marry_v and_o that_o in_o his_o time_n it_o be_v lawful_a nazianzene_n monod_n nazianzene_n monod_n report_v of_o basils_n father_n who_o be_v a_o bishop_n that_o in_o the_o state_n of_o marriage_n he_o hold_v the_o life_n and_o order_n of_o a_o bishop_n and_o synesius_n the_o bishop_n of_o ptolemais_n 55._o ptolemais_n epist_n ad_fw-la euopt_n &_o niceph._n l._n 14._o c._n 55._o write_v thus_o of_o himself_o the_o sacred_a hand_n of_o theophylus_fw-la have_v give_v i_o a_o wife_n and_o hereupon_o i_o testify_v to_o all_o man_n that_o i_o will_v neither_o forsake_v she_o nor_o yet_o privy_o as_o a_o adulterer_n keep_v her_o company_n but_o i_o will_v pray_v god_n to_o send_v i_o by_o her_o many_o and_o good_a child_n athanasius_n dracont_n athanasius_n epist_n ad_fw-la dracont_n report_v that_o bishop_n and_o monk_n live_v marry_v and_o have_v child_n and_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n 34._o history_n euseb_n l_o 4._o c._n 23_o socrat._n l._n 5._o c._n 22._o niceph._n l._n 12._o c._n 34._o say_v express_o that_o in_o the_o eastern_a church_n it_o be_v count_v a_o yoke_n too_o heavy_a to_o be_v lay_v on_o the_o churchman_n to_o bind_v they_o from_o marriage_n and_o therefore_o they_o may_v if_o it_o please_v themselves_o avoid_v the_o company_n of_o their_o wife_n but_o no_o law_n constrain_v they_o and_o therefore_o many_o execute_v the_o place_n of_o bishop_n even_o in_o the_o house_n where_o bishop_n use_v to_o dwell_v beget_v many_o child_n of_o the_o wife_n which_o before_o time_n they_o have_v lawful_o marry_v and_o at_o this_o present_a day_n no_o bishop_n sleep_v with_o his_o wife_n be_v count_v unchaste_a final_o our_o adversary_n themselves_o confess_v that_o 1._o that_o scot._n 4._o d._n 37._o polyd._n invent_v l._n 5._o c._n 4._o antidid_fw-la colon._n pag._n 128._o coster_n enchir._n pag._n 517._o greg._n a_o valen_n tom_n 4._o disp_n 9_o q._n 5._o punct_a 5._o §_o 1._o in_o the_o most_o ancient_a time_n of_o the_o church_n and_o after_o the_o apostle_n death_n they_o have_v their_o wife_n sors_z wife_n 26._o q._n 2._o sors_z that_o they_o be_v forbid_v marriage_n by_o no_o divine_a law_n but_o only_o by_o a_o humane_a constitution_n 18._o constitution_n ouan_n 4._o do_v 25._o pro_fw-la 9_o bellar._n cleric_a c._n 18._o that_o this_o constitution_n may_v be_v dispense_v with_o by_o release_n the_o vow_n thom._n vow_n caiet_fw-mi quod_fw-la lib._n 1._o q._n 12._o pag._n 236._o in_o fine_a comment_n in_o 3._o part_n thom._n that_o exclude_v the_o church_n law_n make_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o stand_v only_o to_o that_o which_o we_o have_v from_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n it_o can_v be_v prove_v by_o any_o reason_n or_o authority_n that_o speak_v absolute_o a_o priest_n sin_v in_o marry_v but_o reason_n rather_o lead_v to_o the_o contrary_a in_o that_o holy_a order_n neither_o as_o they_o be_v order_n nor_o as_o they_o be_v holy_a can_v hinder_v marriage_n 321._o marriage_n pius_fw-la 2._o epist_n 321._o that_o it_o be_v better_a for_o a_o priest_n to_o marry_v then_o to_o burn_v though_o he_o have_v vow_v not_o to_o marry_v 200._o marry_v pius_fw-la 2._o apud_fw-la platin._n in_fw-la eius_fw-la vita_fw-la erasm_n declarat_fw-la ad_fw-la censur_fw-la paris_n pag._n 200._o that_o there_o be_v many_o reason_n to_o forbid_v priest_n marriage_n but_o more_o to_o allow_v it_o 5_o five_o touch_v image_n for_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 25._o rome_n conc._n nicen._n 2._o act_n 7._o council_n trid._n sess_v 25._o not_o only_o worship_v they_o but_o command_v also_o to_o do_v it_o 4._o it_o conc._n trid._n ib._n suar._n to_o 1._o d._n 54._o s_o 4._o though_o 3._o q._n 25._o art_n 3._o &_o 4._o with_o divine_a honour_n the_o very_a same_o that_o be_v due_a to_o god_n himself_o contrary_n to_o the_o commandment_n which_o say_v 20.4_o say_v exod._n 20.4_o thou_o shall_v make_v to_o thyself_o no_o image_n nor_o the_o likeness_n of_o any_o thing_n thou_o shall_v not_o bow_v down_o to_o it_o nor_o worship_n it_o and_o saint_n paul_n 1.23_o paul_n rom._n 1.23_o reprove_v such_o as_o change_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n into_o the_o similitude_n of_o man_n and_o beast_n and_o fowl_n and_o 22.8_o and_o apoc._n 19.10_o &_o 22.8_o the_o apostle_n be_v rebuke_v for_o offer_v to_o have_v worship_v the_o angel_n the_o council_n of_o eliberis_n 38._o eliberis_n can._n 38._o decree_v that_o no_o picture_n shall_v be_v make_v in_o the_o church_n lest_o that_o be_v adore_v which_o be_v paint_v on_o wall_n joan._n wall_n ep._n ad_fw-la joan._n and_o epiphanius_n find_v a_o image_n paint_v on_o a_o cloth_n hang_v in_o a_o church_n rend_v it_o down_o and_o say_v it_o be_v against_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n that_o any_o image_n shall_v be_v in_o the_o church_n and_o origen_n 7._o origen_n contra_fw-la cell_n l._n 7._o say_v of_o his_o time_n we_o worship_v no_o image_n lega●_n image_n clem._n alexand_n hort_fw-mi ad_fw-la gent_n pag._n 14._o graec_fw-la minut._n fellix_fw-la octou_fw-la athenag_n lega●_n and_o the_o ancient_a christian_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n have_v none_o yea_o eight_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n when_o alij_fw-la when_o zon._n cedren_n &_o alij_fw-la the_o second_o nicene_n council_n have_v set_v up_o image_n 1._o image_n ouand_fw-fr 4._o d._n 2._o pro._n 8._o baron_fw-fr ann_n 794._o n._n 1._o a_o general_a council_n hold_v at_o frankford_n 794._o frankford_n abb._n vrsperg_n ann_n 793._o rhegin_v ann_n 794._o where_o the_o pope_n legate_n also_o be_v abrogate_a the_o decree_n thereof_o and_o by_o synod_n by_o opus_fw-la illust_n caroli_n mag._n contra_fw-la synod_n a_o book_n purposely_o write_v confute_v it_o in_o that_o book_n it_o be_v say_v 2._o say_v pag._n 486._o lib._n 4._o cap._n 2._o the_o
c._n 9_o pag_n 131._o that_o the_o power_n imperiall_n depend_v upon_o the_o pope_n authority_n and_o be_v subordinate_a to_o it_o and_o that_o the_o pope_n have_v power_n to_o remove_v revoke_v correct_v and_o punish_v king_n who_o secular_a government_n be_v not_o mere_o necessary_a or_o expedient_a but_o when_o the_o church_n can_v and_o this_o they_o say_v be_v to_o be_v hold_v with_o the_o right_a faith_n as_o the_o natural_a moral_a and_o divine_a law_n of_o god_n this_o be_v a_o piece_n of_o the_o present_a faith_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o execution_n and_o practice_n whereof_o afford_v her_o such_o store_n of_o martyr_n in_o every_o kingdom_n but_o that_o you_o may_v see_v how_o vain_o they_o brag_v of_o their_o uncontrolled_a antiquity_n mark_v what_o waldensis_n have_v leave_v write_v almost_o three_o hundred_o year_n ago_o he_o 78._o he_o tom._n 1._o p._n 196._o lib._n 2._o art_n 3._o c._n 78._o say_v the_o regal_a power_n of_o prince_n be_v not_o by_o our_o mother_n the_o church_n use_v to_o be_v set_v behind_o the_o priestly_a power_n as_o if_o it_o be_v nothing_o of_o itself_o but_o spring_v from_o it_o and_o be_v the_o second_o after_o it_o they_o err_v he_o say_v that_o affirm_v the_o root_n of_o earthly_a power_n hang_v so_o much_o on_o the_o pope_n that_o by_o his_o commission_n the_o execution_n of_o the_o same_o be_v derive_v to_o the_o prince_n thus_o he_o write_v in_o that_o book_n which_o he_o call_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o ancient_a faith_n that_o we_o may_v see_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n hold_v some_o thing_n which_o in_o the_o record_n of_o her_o own_o court_n be_v note_v for_o novelty_n and_o late_a incrochment_n against_o the_o ancient_a faith_n 10_o the_o first_o restraint_n that_o ever_o be_v make_v of_o priest_n marriage_n be_v by_o siritius_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n 380._o year_n after_o christ_n for_o before_o that_o time_n it_o be_v believe_v and_o practise_v that_o priest_n may_v have_v wife_n as_o all_o other_o man_n and_o siritius_n be_v the_o first_o that_o ever_o forbid_v it_o the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o which_o i_o say_v that_o before_o his_o time_n marry_v man_n exercise_v the_o ministry_n be_v prove_v before_o digress_v 49._o num_fw-la 4._o and_o be_v further_o prove_v by_o the_o confession_n of_o our_o adversary_n themselves_o for_o alphonsus_n 4._o alphonsus_n adverse_a haeres_fw-la verb._n sacerdot_n haeres_fw-la 4._o write_v that_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n it_o be_v observe_v that_o he_o which_o be_v marry_v may_v be_v promote_v to_o priesthood_n though_o it_o be_v not_o require_v of_o he_o that_o he_o shall_v first_o be_v marry_v and_o he_o add_v that_o this_o custom_n prevail_v till_o the_o time_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n the_o second_o part_n that_o siritius_n be_v the_o first_o that_o forbid_v marry_v priest_n appeareth_z first_o by_o the_o decree_n itself_o extant_a in_o plurim_fw-la in_o d._n 82._o plurim_fw-la the_o canon_n law_n next_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o our_o adversary_n for_o 4._o for_o inuen_n l._n 5._o c._n 4._o polydore_n affirm_v it_o and_o the_o gloss_n upon_o the_o sacramen_fw-la the_o d._n 84._o cum_fw-la in_o praeterito_fw-la glos_n §._o qui_o sacramen_fw-la canon_n law_n say_v siritius_n bring_v in_o the_o continency_n of_o priest_n and_o deacon_n yea_o some_o affirm_v that_o of_o old_a before_o the_o time_n of_o siritius_n priest_n may_v contract_v marriage_n 26._o marriage_n index_n expur_n pag._n 308._o nu_fw-la 26._o this_o gloss_n pius_fw-la quintus_fw-la the_o late_a pope_n have_v command_v to_o be_v wipe_v out_o because_o it_o be_v clear_a against_o the_o papacy_n but_o nauclerus_fw-la 537._o nauclerus_fw-la tom._n 2._o generate_fw-la 13._o pag._n 537._o say_v in_o effect_n as_o much_o that_o siritius_n command_v deacon_n to_o be_v continent_n and_o clictoveus_n valent._n clictoveus_n de_fw-fr continen_n sacerdot_n c._n 4._o quem_fw-la refert●_n bellar._n &_o greg._n valent._n write_v that_o it_o be_v a_o commandment_n of_o the_o church_n first_o bring_v in_o by_o siritius_n that_o marry_v man_n shall_v not_o be_v ordain_v priest_n unless_o from_o that_o time_n forward_o they_o will_v contain_v here_o he_o confess_v that_o siritius_n bring_v in_o that_o a._n that_o greg._n valent._n to_o 4._o d._n 9_o q._n 5._o p._n 5._o §_o 1._o p._n 1571._o a._n which_o the_o jesuite_n think_v to_o be_v the_o chief_a thing_n whereunto_o the_o law_n of_o single_a life_n bind_v thus_o siritius_n begin_v the_o matter_n but_o yet_o 4._o yet_o inuen_n l._n 5._o c._n 4._o say_v polydore_n it_o can_v never_o be_v effect_v that_o their_o marriage_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o till_o gregory_n the_o seven_o come_v to_o be_v pope_n in_o the_o year_n 1074._o the_o which_o thing_n when_o he_o attempt_v in_o germany_n as_o 1074._o as_o sigeb_n anno_o 1074._o lambert_n pag._n 201_o &_o 207._o auentin_n annal_n l._n 5_o naucler_n vol._n 2._o generate_fw-la 36._o baron_fw-fr a_o 1074._o n._n 37._o sigon_n reg_fw-la ital._n l._n 9_o anno_fw-la 1074._o the_o story_n with_o one_o consent_n record_n he_o be_v resist_v as_o one_o that_o bring_v in_o a_o new_a custom_n never_o receive_v before_o aventine_n write_v 448._o write_v pag._n 448._o that_o in_o those_o day_n priest_n have_v wife_n open_o as_o other_o man_n have_v and_o beget_v child_n their_o wife_n be_v call_v by_o a_o seemly_a name_n presbyterissae_fw-la 460._o presbyterissae_fw-la pag._n 460._o and_o when_o the_o pope_n forbid_v they_o marriage_n this_o to_o many_o bishop_n and_o other_o learned_a and_o good_a man_n seem_v a_o new_a doctrine_n and_o a_o pestilent_a heresy_n as_o ever_o trouble_v any_o christian_a kingdom_n and_o he_o say_v the_o bishop_n of_o italy_n germany_n and_o france_n meet_v together_o and_o for_o this_o cause_n decree_v that_o he_o have_v do_v against_o christian_a piety_n and_o depose_v he_o for_o that_o among_o diverse_a other_o thing_n he_o divorce_v man_n and_o their_o wife_n deny_v such_o as_o have_v their_o lawful_a wife_n to_o be_v priest_n when_o yet_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n he_o admit_v to_o the_o altar_n whoremonger_n adulterer_n and_o incestuous_a person_n let_v any_o man_n judge_v if_o it_o have_v be_v possible_a the_o bishop_n and_o clergy_n of_o italy_n france_n and_o germany_n shall_v thus_o bitter_o have_v censure_v and_o withstand_v this_o doctrine_n of_o hildebrand_n if_o the_o church_n have_v receive_v it_o always_o before_o 11_o the_o image_n of_o the_o trinity_n 8._o trinity_n posse●in_n biblioth_o l._n 8._o c._n 16._o vasq_fw-la adorat_fw-la l._n 2_o disp_n 3._o c._n 3._o bellar_n c._n 8._o which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n now_o use_v and_o adore_v come_v not_o in_o of_o seven_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n for_o ibi_fw-la for_o can._n 82._o carranz_n ibi_fw-la the_o sixth_o general_a council_n hold_v anno_fw-la 687._o forbid_v the_o make_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o likeness_n of_o a_o dove_n and_o 87._o and_o apud_fw-la baron_n a_o 726._o pag._n 87._o gregory_n the_o second_o live_a anno_fw-la 726._o in_o a_o epistle_n to_o leo_n isauricus_n write_v that_o in_o his_o time_n they_o use_v not_o to_o paint_v or_o represent_v god_n the_o father_n upon_o which_o word_n baronius_n have_v note_v in_o the_o margin_n that_o afterward_o the_o custom_n grow_v to_o paint_v god_n the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o church_n if_o it_o grow_v afterward_o than_o it_o be_v not_o use_v at_o the_o first_o 12_o so_o likewise_o the_o beginning_n of_o all_o image_n worship_n be_v in_o the_o second_o nicen_n council_n for_o 387_o for_o act._n 7._o zonar_n tom_fw-mi 3._o pag._n 95._o geo._n cedren_n compen_a p._n 387_o that_o decree_v it_o whereas_o but_o a_o little_a before_o when_o serenus_n a_o bishop_n in_o france_n in_o detestation_n thereof_o have_v cast_v out_o of_o a_o church_n and_o break_v certain_a image_n gregory_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n 109_o rome_n lib_fw-la 7._o ep._n 109_o write_v unto_o he_o the_o zeal_n which_o you_o have_v that_o nothing_o make_v with_o hand_n shall_v be_v worship_v we_o commend_v but_o we_o be_v of_o mind_n that_o you_o shall_v not_o have_v break_v those_o image_n for_o paint_v be_v therefore_o use_v in_o church_n that_o they_o which_o be_v unlearned_a might_n by_o sight_n read_v upon_o the_o wall_n that_o which_o in_o book_n they_o can_v your_o brotherhood_n shall_v therefore_o have_v spare_v the_o break_n of_o they_o and_o yet_o withal_o have_v keep_v the_o people_n from_o worship_v they_o that_o such_o as_o be_v simple_a may_v have_v have_v mean_n whereby_o to_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o story_n and_o yet_o the_o people_n not_o sin_n in_o worship_v the_o picture_n which_o word_n show_v that_o howsoever_o he_o favour_v the_o historical_a use_n of_o image_n which_o we_o deny_v not_o to_o have_v be_v bring_v into_o the_o church_n before_o his_o time_n
bishop_n except_o the_o apostle_n be_v whole_o rapt_v out_o of_o himself_o in_o which_o word_n he_o mention_v no_o more_o but_o 〈◊〉_d but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o behold_v of_o the_o body_n which_o the_o author_n of_o life_n be_v in_o and_o which_o receieve_v god_n and_o the_o praise_v of_o christ_n goodness_n which_o speech_n be_v so_o obscure_a and_o uncertain_a that_o baronius_n 3_o baronius_n an._n 48._o n._n 6._o &_o 3_o observe_v some_o have_v expound_v it_o of_o the_o sepulchre_n which_o receive_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o some_o of_o john_n the_o evangelist_n house_n which_o entertain_v the_o holy_a virgin_n and_o some_o of_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n wherein_o the_o divinity_n dwell_v but_o suppose_v the_o body_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n be_v mean_v which_o they_o come_v to_o see_v yet_o how_o follow_v it_o that_o this_o be_v at_o her_o death_n and_o funeral_n and_o assumption_n &_o all_o the_o rest_n that_o the_o rhemist_n tell_v where_o be_v the_o learning_n that_o shall_v prove_v this_o moreover_o we_o show_v they_o how_o vain_a and_o uncertain_a all_o thing_n touch_v this_o matter_n be_v the_o author_n be_v unsufficient_a no_o man_n can_v tell_v either_o when_o she_o die_v or_o where_o the_o sepulchre_n shall_v be_v or_o when_o she_o be_v assume_v touch_v her_o age_n when_o she_o die_v whereupon_o depend_v the_o credit_n of_o dionysius_n 24._o dionysius_n suar._n tom_n 2._o p._n 197._o baro._n a_o 48._o n._n 24._o they_o say_v it_o be_v uncertain_a and_o unknown_a the_o time_n of_o her_o assumption_n be_v note_v by_o 200._o by_o suar._n p._n 200._o some_o to_o have_v be_v the_o same_o day_n she_o die_v by_o 1.14_o by_o rhem._n act_n 1.14_o other_o 3_o day_n by_o 447._o by_o bele_v explic_a divin_v offic_n pag._n 559._o durand_n rational_a p._n 447._o other_o 40._o day_n after_o baron_fw-fr 4._o baron_fw-fr nu._n 4._o say_v there_o be_v monstrous_a diversity_n among_o writer_n touch_v these_o thing_n and_o concern_v the_o sepulchre_n you_o see_v the_o rhemist_n say_v confident_o it_o be_v in_o gethsemani_n but_o the_o counterfeit_a eustoch_n counterfeit_a ep._n ad_fw-la paul_n &_o eustoch_n jerom_n say_v in_o the_o valley_n of_o jehosaphat_n baronius_n think_v it_o be_v unknown_a but_o how_o be_v the_o matter_n then_o defend_v after_o they_o have_v so_o grave_o relate_v it_o and_o so_o revile_v the_o protestant_n for_o not_o believe_v it_o as_o in_o many_o more_o question_n so_o in_o this_o when_o they_o have_v flourish_v awhile_o and_o spend_v a_o few_o vain_a brag_n their_o blood_n cool_v and_o the_o swell_a swage_v supra_fw-la swage_v durand_n ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la one_o say_v the_o truth_n be_v she_o be_v take_v up_o in_o soul_n but_o whether_o her_o body_n remain_v on_o the_o earth_n it_o be_v uncertain_a and_o better_o it_o be_v pious_o to_o doubt_v then_o rash_o to_o define_v any_o thing_n touch_v the_o matter_n yet_o it_o be_v pious_o to_o be_v think_v she_o be_v total_o assume_v supra_fw-la assume_v suar._n ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la another_o say_v the_o opinion_n be_v now_o so_o general_o receive_v that_o it_o can_v without_o rashness_n be_v deny_v yet_o there_o be_v neither_o scripture_n nor_o sufficient_a tradition_n to_o make_v the_o faith_n hereof_o infallible_a baronius_n say_v 9_o say_v nu._n 9_o the_o thing_n pertain_v to_o this_o history_n be_v strengthen_v neither_o by_o the_o scripture_n nor_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n if_o their_o learning_n can_v have_v justify_v their_o fable_n they_o will_v not_o first_o rail_v at_o the_o protestant_n for_o refuse_v it_o and_o then_o in_o the_o end_n themselves_o half_o mistrust_v it_o lay_v it_o upon_o bare_a tradition_n and_o entreat_v the_o world_n to_o receive_v it_o as_o a_o godly_a opinion_n though_o there_o be_v no_o testimony_n in_o antiquity_n to_o prove_v it_o 9_o another_o example_n to_o show_v what_o little_a cause_n we_o have_v to_o fear_v or_o regard_v their_o learning_n shall_v be_v this_o that_o follow_v when_o the_o second_o nicene_n council_n have_v bring_v in_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n the_o emperor_n charles_n assemble_v another_o council_n at_o frankford_n and_o condemn_v it_o again_o and_o reject_v the_o nicene_n whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o image_n be_v bring_v in_o at_o that_o time_n and_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o confirm_v the_o say_a nicene_n council_n change_v the_o ancient_a faith_n our_o adversary_n have_v have_v time_n enough_o to_o think_v upon_o this_o and_o to_o frame_v their_o answer_n but_o they_o know_v not_o what_o to_o say_v the_o best_a learned_a among_o they_o confute_v one_o another_o in_o the_o point_n first_o 427._o first_o suar_fw-mi tom_fw-mi 1._o p._n 800._o c._n vazq_n adorat_fw-la p._n 303._o bin._n tom_n 3._o council_n p._n 427._o they_o endeavour_n to_o prove_v that_o this_o of_o frankford_n be_v but_o a_o provincial_a council_n and_o fain_o they_o will_v have_v it_o so_o that_o they_o may_v say_v it_o err_v and_o must_v give_v place_n to_o the_o nicene_n which_o be_v general_a but_o we_o show_v this_o to_o be_v false_a for_o 30._o for_o visperg_n pag._n 187._o rhegin_v p._n 30._o the_o story_n report_v it_o to_o have_v be_v a_o general_a council_n of_o three_o hundred_o bishop_n assemble_v out_o of_o all_o the_o province_n of_o the_o empire_n the_o pope_n own_o legate_n also_o be_v present_a and_o therefore_o 1._o therefore_o ouand_fw-fr breviloq_fw-la in_o 4_o scent_n pag_n 52_o baron_n a_o 794._o nu_fw-la 1._o other_o papist_n let_v go_v this_o answer_n grant_v it_o be_v a_o full_a council_n and_o can_v be_v reject_v as_o a_o provincial_a and_o that_o it_o do_v condemn_v the_o nicene_n council_n but_o this_o they_o say_v be_v erroneous_o be_v deceive_v by_o those_o that_o pen_v the_o book_n of_o charles_n against_o image_n and_o think_v it_o have_v decree_v they_o shall_v be_v worship_v with_o latria_n divine_a honour_n which_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o they_o reject_v the_o nicene_n council_n inde_fw-la council_n bozi_fw-fr de_fw-fr sign_n eccl_n tom_fw-mi 2._o pag_n 270._o genebrard_n chron_n a_o 794._o bellar._n de_fw-fr imag_n c._n 14_o baron_n a_o 794._o n._n 31._o &_o inde_fw-la many_o of_o the_o learnede_a fly_n to_o this_o answer_n but_o we_o reply_v that_o beside_o that_o it_o be_v against_o council_n against_o council_n basil_n epist_n synod_n r●spons_n de_fw-fr authorit_fw-fr council_n a_o principle_n of_o their_o own_o that_o a_o general_a council_n can_v err_v it_o be_v manifest_o against_o the_o truth_n for_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n be_v well_o enough_o know_v and_o the_o same_o pope_n legate_n that_o be_v at_o the_o one_o be_v at_o the_o other_o and_o the_o contrary_n can_v be_v show_v out_o of_o charles_n his_o book_n whereupon_o other_o papist_n perceive_v this_o answer_n can_v be_v defend_v give_v it_o over_o and_o confute_v it_o and_o betake_v themselves_o to_o a_o worse_o 429._o worse_o alan_n cope_n p._n 570._o sand._n visib_o monarc_n p._n 480._o sur._n comment_n p._n 445._o &_o council_z tom_fw-mi 3._o p._n 428._o alp●on_n contra_fw-la haer_fw-mi p._n 139._o catharin_n de_fw-fr sanct_n glor_n p._n 67._o suar._n tom_n 1._o p._n 802._o vazq_n adorat_fw-la p._n 302._o binn_n council_n tom_fw-mi 3._o pag._n 429._o they_o say_v that_o in_o the_o synod_n of_o frankford_n the_o nicene_n council_n be_v not_o condemn_v not_o any_o thing_n attempt_v against_o it_o but_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n under_o constantinus_n copronymus_n which_o have_v condemn_v image_n yea_o it_o ratify_v and_o confirm_v the_o nicene_n council_n and_o decree_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n as_o it_o have_v do_v a_o strange_a assertion_n yet_o baronius_n 26._o baronius_n an._n 794_o n._n 26._o say_v it_o be_v the_o answer_n of_o very_a many_o good_a catholic_n as_o it_o be_v indeed_o but_o note_v what_o 14._o what_o de_fw-fr imag_n c_o 14._o bellarmine_n say_v of_o it_o i_o wish_v this_o be_v true_a but_o i_o doubt_v it_o be_v false_a for_o mark_v into_o what_o desperate_a strait_n they_o have_v bring_v themselves_o that_o hold_v it_o first_o they_o of_o the_o former_a opinion_n confute_v they_o next_o we_o produce_v the_o universal_a consent_n of_o the_o church_n story_n against_o they_o the_o book_n of_o charles_n the_o great_a med_a great_a praefat._n circa_fw-la med_a say_v there_o be_v bring_v forth_o the_o question_n touch_v the_o late_a synod_n of_o the_o grecian_n which_o they_o make_v at_o con●●●●tinople_n concern_v the_o adore_v of_o image_n wherein_o it_o be_v write_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v curse_v which_o do_v not_o give_v the_o same_o service_n and_o adoration_n to_o the_o image_n of_o saint_n which_o be_v give_v to_o the_o divine_a trinity_n this_o our_o most_o holy_a father_n of_o frankford_n despise_v and_o with_o one_o consent_n condemn_v to_o this_o agree_v diverse_a other_o author_n hincmarus_n ado_n
the_o particular_a church_n set_v down_o and_o name_v the_o article_n of_o their_o faith_n the_o which_o confession_n if_o the_o jesuite_n can_v show_v to_o jar_n as_o he_o say_v in_o dogmatic_a point_n of_o faith_n i_o be_o content_a you_o believe_v he_o in_o all_o the_o rest_n or_o if_o he_o can_v show_v the_o church_n of_o england_n since_o papistry_n be_v first_o abolish_v have_v alter_v one_o article_n of_o the_o present_a faith_n now_o profess_v 2_o i_o will_v not_o deny_v but_o there_o be_v jar_n among_o we_o but_o this_o be_v that_o we_o say_v and_o for_o trial_n thereof_o we_o challenge_v all_o the_o seminary_n this_o day_n in_o england_n from_o who_o the_o worst_a of_o our_o fall_n out_o be_v not_o hide_v that_o these_o jar_n be_v not_o in_o point_n of_o faith_n nor_o yet_o any_o contrariety_n between_o church_n and_o church_n but_o only_o they_o be_v quarrel_n and_o dissension_n between_o some_o particular_a man_n and_o i_o think_v the_o jesuite_n shall_v not_o be_v so_o absurd_a as_o to_o hold_v the_o church_n itself_o guilty_a of_o every_o fault_n commit_v by_o any_o private_a man_n therein_o no_o more_o than_o a_o civil_a state_n order_v by_o good_a law_n and_o wholesome_a government_n can_v be_v discredit_v by_o some_o suit_n and_o quarrel_n that_o now_o and_o then_o fall_v out_o between_o the_o subject_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v false_a he_o say_v that_o scarce_o three_o learned_a man_n among_o we_o be_v in_o all_o point_n of_o one_o opinion_n for_o that_o breach_n which_o be_v be_v not_o so_o great_a as_o these_o word_n imply_v but_o only_o touch_v some_o particular_a man_n in_o matter_n not_o concern_v faith_n the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n continue_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n and_o uphold_v her_o government_n and_o for_o further_a proof_n hereof_o our_o enemy_n have_v take_v infinite_a pain_n to_o collect_v and_o blaze_v abroad_o these_o our_o suppose_a dissension_n but_o how_o have_v they_o speed_v in_o the_o journey_n what_o have_v they_o perform_v the_o mountain_n travel_v and_o be_v deliver_v of_o a_o mouse_n for_o one_o part_n of_o these_o dissension_n be_v false_o lay_v to_o our_o charge_n through_o the_o ignorance_n and_o fury_n of_o our_o adversary_n as_o drunken_a man_n in_o the_o pang_n of_o their_o giddiness_n speak_v of_o thing_n not_o as_o they_o be_v indeed_o but_o as_o the_o impression_n be_v in_o their_o idle_a fancy_n another_o part_n be_v not_o the_o jar_n of_o the_o church_n but_o the_o defect_n of_o some_o few_o therein_o whereof_o the_o church_n be_v not_o guilty_a the_o rest_n be_v not_o dissension_n in_o thing_n of_o faith_n but_o strife_n about_o ceremony_n kindle_v and_o nourish_v special_o by_o the_o cunning_a of_o secret_n papist_n lurk_v as_o the_o remnant_n of_o the_o canaanite_n among_o we_o wherein_o if_o any_o among_o we_o have_v exceed_v yet_o 16.51_o yet_o ezek._n 16.51_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n justifi_v we_o again_o where_o neither_o three_o learned_a man_n nor_o three_o pope_n can_v be_v give_v of_o one_o mind_n in_o all_o point_n but_o as_o platina_n vi_fw-la platina_n in_o steph._n vi_fw-la write_v this_o have_v be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n the_o manner_n that_o the_o late_a pope_n have_v either_o infringe_v or_o whole_o take_v away_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o former_a and_o papist_n annot._n papist_n d._n 40._o si_fw-mi pap._n edit_fw-la gregorian_n in_o annot._n desire_v to_o fetch_v religion_n rather_o from_o the_o pope_n mouth_n then_o from_o holy_a writ_n can_v but_o change_v as_o they_o have_v change_v 3_o therefore_o the_o discord_n among_o we_o be_v of_o no_o high_a degree_n we_o say_v as_o prudentius_n a_o christian_a poet_n say_v of_o the_o unity_n of_o his_o time_n psychom_n time_n concordia_fw-la laesa_fw-la est_fw-la sed_fw-la defensa_fw-la fide_fw-la quin_fw-la &_o concordia_fw-la sospe_n germanam_fw-la comitata_fw-la fidem_fw-la sva_fw-la vulnera_fw-la ridet_fw-la psychom_n it_o have_v receive_v some_o hurt_n but_o be_v defend_v by_o faith_n her_o sister_n in_o who_o company_n be_v safe_o come_v home_o she_o laugh_v at_o her_o wound_n and_o though_o we_o excuse_v not_o the_o opposition_n of_o any_o who_o as_o k_o the_o twin_n of_o rebecca_n shake_v each_o other_o in_o their_o mother_n womb_n whereby_o she_o be_v make_v afraid_a and_o her_o burden_n become_v heavy_a and_o painefull_a to_o she_o yet_o let_v not_o our_o enemy_n flatter_v themselves_o in_o this_o 25.22_o this_o gen._n 25.22_o for_o rebecca_n the_o church_n among_o we_o shall_v be_v safe_a &_o god_n shall_v give_v she_o isaac_n the_o son_n of_o the_o promise_n and_o make_v she_o a_o fruitful_a mother_n after_o all_o her_o sorrow_n who_o child_n though_o in_o some_o thing_n they_o vary_v yea_o reproach_n one_o another_o yet_o so_o do_v cyril_n and_o theodoret_n chrysostome_n and_o theophilus_n jerome_n and_o ruffin_n and_o there_o be_v no_o impossibility_n why_o in_o the_o pursuit_n of_o their_o passion_n they_o may_v not_o be_v deceive_v both_o for_o two_o brother_n be_v in_o choler_n may_v one_o renounce_v the_o other_o yet_o still_o they_o remain_v brother_n for_o all_o that_o and_o their_o angry_a word_n proceed_v not_o of_o judgement_n but_o of_o choler_n theb._n choler_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d aeschyl_n sept._n ad_fw-la theb._n can_v make_v void_v the_o band_n of_o nature_n digression_n 21._o show_v that_o god_n true_a church_n in_o all_o age_n have_v now_o and_o then_o be_v trouble_v with_o contention_n as_o great_a as_o be_v now_o among_o us._n 4_o and_o because_o our_o enemy_n may_v hope_v by_o urge_v these_o contention_n such_o as_o they_o be_v to_o discredit_v our_o profession_n they_o must_v be_v put_v in_o mind_n that_o the_o unity_n of_o god_n church_n be_v never_o so_o perfect_a or_o entire_a but_o sometime_o it_o have_v be_v blemish_v with_o dissension_n yea_o miserable_o rend_v in_o sunder_o with_o the_o inconsiderate_a strife_n of_o her_o own_o child_n saint_n paul_n 16.17_o paul_n rom._n 16.17_o testify_v of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o there_o be_v therein_o which_o cause_v division_n and_o offence_n contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n and_o of_o the_o corinth_n he_o 3.3_o he_o 1._o cor._n 3.3_o say_v there_o be_v among_o they_o envy_v strife_n and_o contention_n some_o hold_v of_o paul_n some_o of_o apollo_n some_o of_o cephas_n and_o he_o 11.19_o he_o 1._o cor._n 11.19_o write_v to_o they_o that_o there_o must_v be_v heresy_n among_o they_o for_o the_o trial_n of_o such_o as_o be_v faithful_a so_o 15.39_o so_o act._n 15.39_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n yea_o 2.11_o yea_o gal._n 2.11_o paul_n and_o peter_n have_v their_o jar_n so_o polycrates_n and_o victor_n cyprian_n and_o cornelius_n cyril_n and_o theodoret_n chrysostome_n theophilus_n and_o epiphanius_n hierome_n and_o ruffin_n paulinus_n and_o meletius_n leo_n and_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n nazianzen_n and_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n all_o bishop_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v at_o extreme_a contention_n one_o with_o another_o inde_fw-la another_o euseb_n hist_o l._n 5_o c._n 23._o &_o inde_fw-la niceph._n l._n 4_o c._n 37._o &_o inde_fw-la the_o strife_n between_o the_o east_n and_o west_n church_n about_o the_o keep_n of_o easter_n be_v such_o that_o they_o excommunicate_v each_o other_o dionysio_n other_o euseb_n hist_o l._n 7_o c._n 3._o &_o inde_fw-la cypr._n ep_v 74._o ad_fw-la pomp._n sabrat_n council_n carth._n apud_fw-la cypt._n apud_fw-la cypr._n ep_v 75_o hieron_n de_fw-fr script_n in_o dionysio_n the_o question_n of_o rebaptisation_n breed_v the_o like_a broil_n between_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o western_a bishop_n on_o the_o one_o part_n and_o cyprian_a dionysius_n and_o firmilianus_n three_o metropolitan_n with_o the_o most_o bishop_n in_o africa_n egypt_n cappadocia_n galatia_n and_o cilicia_n on_o the_o other_o part_n there_o be_v no_o church_n or_o catholic_a bishop_n therein_o which_o be_v not_o entangle_v in_o this_o opposition_n but_o the_o broil_n stir_v up_o by_o theophilus_n against_o chrysostome_n be_v more_o than_o tragical_a and_o rend_v in_o sunder_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n yet_o be_v they_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o thus_o contend_v in_o this_o variance_n theophilus_n the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o epiphanius_n the_o bishop_n of_o cyprus_n be_v chief_a against_o chrysostome_n and_o with_o they_o join_v the_o other_o bishop_n of_o the_o province_n as_o they_o fancy_v the_o event_n be_v this_o 21._o this_o socr._n l._n 6._o c._n 21._o chrysostome_n lose_v both_o his_o bishopric_n and_o life_n in_o banishment_n 13_o banishment_n ni●eph_n l._n 13._o c._n 13_o epiphanius_n and_o he_o most_o grievous_o curse_v one_o another_o 21._o another_o socr._n l._n 6._o c._n 17._o &_o niceph._n l._n 13._o cap._n 17._o &_o 21._o many_o be_v slay_v in_o the_o take_n of_o part_n 262._o part_n sozo_n l._n
8._o c._n 22_o zosim_n l._n 5._o socr_n l._n 6._o c._n 18._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d p._n 262._o the_o cathedral_n church_n at_o constantinople_n with_o the_o senate_n house_n be_v set_v on_o fire_n &_o burn_v to_o the_o ground_n in_o the_o pursuit_n of_o revenge_n the_o people_n be_v rob_v of_o their_o pastor_n and_o the_o pastor_n themselves_o persecute_v each_o other_o and_o pursue_v their_o people_n most_o unmerciful_o caesar_n baronius_n begin_v to_o entreat_v of_o this_o contention_n 51._o contention_n annal_n tom_n 5_o an._n 400._o nu_fw-la 51._o have_v these_o word_n a_o shameful_a contention_n in_o the_o church_n the_o lamentable_a narration_n whereof_o i_o now_o take_v in_o hand_n wherein_o shall_v be_v describe_v the_o bicker_n and_o curse_a persecution_n not_o of_o gentile_a against_o christian_n or_o heretic_n against_o catholic_n or_o wicked_a man_n against_o good_a and_o just_a man_n but_o which_o be_v monstrous_a and_o prodigious_a of_o saint_n and_o holy_a man_n one_o against_o another_o the_o which_o word_n make_v it_o plain_a that_o this_o contention_n be_v among_o god_n own_o child_n in_o the_o true_a church_n the_o like_a be_v write_v of_o the_o bishop_n in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a 17._o nice_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d sozo_n l._n 1_o c._n 17._o accuse_v one_o another_o to_o the_o emperor_n as_o soon_o as_o they_o be_v assemble_v of_o who_o jar_n that_o famous_a speech_n of_o constantine_n make_v unto_o they_o upon_o that_o occasion_n give_v witness_v wherein_o among_o many_o other_o thing_n 〈◊〉_d thing_n soz._n ibid._n niceph_n l_o 8._o c._n 16._o idem_fw-la in_o conc._n ●y_a ●apud_fw-la niceph_n l_o 8._o c._n 50._o euseb_n vit_fw-mi constant_a l._n 3._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o tell_v they_o that_o he_o think_v this_o worse_a than_o all_o the_o evil_n to_o be_v utter_v that_o he_o see_v the_o church_n of_o god_n dissent_v by_o contention_n and_o contrary_a opinion_n yea_o sozomen_n 16._o sozomen_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d lib._n 1._o c._n 16._o say_v the_o contrariety_n of_o opinion_n among_o the_o learned_a at_o that_o time_n be_v so_o scandalous_a that_o it_o turn_v many_o from_o embrace_v the_o christian_a religion_n so_o likewise_o in_o a_o council_n hold_v at_o constantinople_n for_o the_o depose_n of_o nazianzen_n he_o thus_o admonish_v the_o bishop_n basil_n bishop_n vita_fw-la nazian_n praefixa_fw-la operibus_fw-la eius_fw-la graecè_fw-la editis_fw-la basil_n it_o be_v a_o shame_n o_o my_o fellow_n pastor_n of_o the_o sacred_a flock_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o befit_v you_o if_o while_o you_o teach_v other_o peace_n yourselves_o fall_v to_o war_n and_o how_o shall_v you_o persuade_v other_o to_o unity_n yourselves_o be_v at_o variance_n in_o the_o second_o council_n of_o ephesus_n flavianus_n the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n be_v depose_v 47._o depose_v liberat._n breu_o c._n 12._o niceph._n l._n 14._o c._n 47._o &_o pitiful_o murder_v 47._o murder_v euagr._fw-la l._n 1._o c._n 10_o niceph._n l._n 14._o c._n 47._o with_o he_o be_v also_o depose_v eusebius_n dorilaeus_n ibas_n theodoret_n domnus_n daniel_n aquilinus_n and_o irenaeus_n all_o catholic_a bishop_n and_o this_o be_v not_o do_v by_o the_o faction_n of_o dioscorus_n alone_o 105._o alone_o baro._n an._n 449_o nu_fw-la 97._o 98._o 105._o but_o by_o the_o catholic_a bishop_n themselves_o all_o which_o say_v baronius_n consent_v both_o to_o the_o restore_n of_o eutyches_n and_o depose_n of_o flavianus_n and_o the_o rest_n there_o be_v in_o this_o contentious_a council_n above_o 132._o bishop_n whereof_o the_o four_o patriarch_n beside_o the_o pope_n deputy_n be_v part_n yea_o it_o be_v a_o ecumenical_a council_n lawful_o assemble_v of_o catholic_a bishop_n &_o yet_o through_o the_o conveyance_n of_o cunning_a adversary_n they_o be_v set_v one_o against_o another_o for_o the_o godly_a man_n of_o those_o time_n have_v secret_a enemy_n grievous_a wolf_n in_o sheep_n clothing_n who_o take_v all_o occasion_n to_o abuse_v their_o simplicity_n and_o set_v they_o at_o variance_n among_o themselves_o for_o so_o do_v man_n use_v 4._o use_v sozo_n l._n 6._o c._n 4._o say_v a_o old_a history_n speak_v of_o this_o matter_n as_o long_o as_o stranger_n wrong_v they_o to_o hold_v together_o but_o when_o they_o be_v deliver_v fr●m_o outward_a trouble_n than_o they_o fall_v out_o among_o themselves_o thus_o the_o policy_n of_o the_o arrian_n kindle_v those_o contention_n that_o among_o the_o catholic_n break_v out_o in_o the_o cause_n of_o athanasius_n and_o by_o strange_a device_n nourish_v they_o whereby_o they_o draw_v godly_a bishop_n into_o their_o faction_n against_o the_o truth_n as_o 68_o as_o haer_fw-mi 68_o epiphanius_n note_v of_o the_o meletian_o demonstrabant_fw-la meletian_o primus_fw-la ferentes_fw-la tum_fw-la in_o pielate_fw-la tum_fw-la in_o vita_fw-la meletiani_n qui_fw-la summam_fw-la iustitiam_fw-la veritatis_fw-la demonstrabant_fw-la godly_a man_n that_o be_v mingle_v with_o the_o arrian_n though_o they_o abide_v in_o the_o true_a faith_n yet_o be_v they_o not_o free_a from_o some_o contagion_n which_o they_o gather_v in_o that_o society_n and_o one_o part_n hereof_o be_v arrian_n be_v atha_n orat_fw-la 1._o contr_n arrian_n their_o stand_n with_o other_o against_o athanasius_n this_o be_v it_o that_o breed_v the_o trouble_n among_o the_o bishop_n in_o the_o counsel_n of_o seleucia_n syrmium_fw-la antioch_n tirus_fw-la lampsacum_fw-la ariminum_n and_o many_o other_o wherein_o evermore_o something_o be_v practise_v even_o by_o bishop_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n against_o their_o fellow_n bishop_n and_o the_o faith_n itself_o the_o council_n of_o ariminum_n be_v famous_a for_o this_o wherein_o there_o be_v above_o 400._o bishop_n of_o the_o west_n all_o catholic_a synod_n catholic_a athan._n de_fw-fr synod_n but_o 50._o or_o thereabouts_o that_o be_v arrian_n and_o yet_o they_o relent_v from_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o nicen_n council_n towards_o arrianisme_n and_o give_v occasion_n of_o infinite_a broil_n in_o the_o church_n afterward_o by_o their_o inconstancy_n 5_o and_o long_o before_o this_o saint_n cyprian_a lament_a church-contention_n and_o 4._o and_o l._n 4._o ep._n 4._o think_v god_n send_v the_o persecution_n of_o his_o time_n for_o no_o other_o cause_n these_o evil_n say_v he_o have_v not_o come_v upon_o the_o brethren_n if_o they_o have_v be_v link_v together_o in_o brotherly_a concord_n and_o a_o little_a after_o the_o persecution_n of_o julian_n be_v over_o the_o story_n 40._o story_n sozo_n l._n 6._o c_o 4._o niceph._n l._n 10._o c._n 40._o tell_v how_o the_o church-governor_n again_o move_v question_n and_o disputation_n about_o the_o dogmatic_a point_n of_o faith_n and_o eusebius_n beginning_n to_o entreat_v of_o the_o bloody_a persecution_n which_o the_o church_n suffer_v under_o diocletian_n say_v the_o contention_n of_o the_o learned_a therein_o be_v the_o cause_n 1_o cause_n lib._n 8._o hist_o c._n 1_o these_o be_v his_o word_n they_o also_o say_v he_o which_o seem_v to_o be_v our_o pastor_n cast_v off_o the_o rule_n of_o piety_n inflame_v themselves_o with_o mutual_a contention_n each_o against_o other_o they_o increase_v nothing_o but_o strife_n threat_n envy_n and_o quarrel_n every_o man_n with_o all_o tyranny_n pursue_v his_o ambition_n neither_o do_v the_o persecution_n ensue_v stay_v this_o dissension_n but_o as_o soon_o as_o ever_o peace_n come_v to_o the_o church_n they_o fall_v to_o it_o again_o 8._o again_o euseb_n vit_fw-mi constan_n l._n 3._o gela._n cyzecen_n act_n conc_fw-fr nic._n l._n 2_o c._n 7._o 8._o that_o the_o good_a emperor_n which_o bring_v this_o peace_n have_v much_o ado_n with_o all_o his_o authority_n to_o appease_v they_o whereupon_o basil_n the_o great_a make_v this_o sorrowful_a complaint_n in_o other_o art_n and_o science_n 235._o science_n aschet_fw-mi proae_fw-la de_fw-fr iudic_n dei_fw-la p._n ●89_n graec._n the_o like_a complaint_n make_v by_o the_o emperor_n theodosius_n of_o the_o catholic_a bishop_n in_o his_o time_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d council_n ephes_n pag._n 235._o say_v he_o i_o have_v see_v much_o concord_n among_o the_o professor_n thereof_o only_o in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n i_o have_v observe_v so_o much_o division_n and_o so_o exceed_o great_a dissension_n of_o many_o both_o among_o themselves_o and_o against_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o that_o which_o be_v most_o horrible_a the_o bishop_n themselves_o have_v stand_v in_o such_o difference_n among_o themselves_o both_o of_o mind_n and_o opinion_n and_o contrary_a to_o the_o commandment_n of_o christ_n have_v use_v such_o contrariety_n that_o thereby_o the_o church_n of_o god_n have_v be_v unmerciful_o draw_v in_o sunder_o and_o his_o flock_n trouble_v without_o all_o care_n and_o pity_n a_o heavy_a complaint_n and_o such_o as_o charge_v the_o church_n with_o a_o foul_a blemish_n even_o as_o foul_a every_o way_n as_o that_o wherewith_o the_o jesuite_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o our_o enemy_n this_o day_n upbraid_v the_o church_n
the_o qq_n of_o the_o armenian_n armachanus_fw-la against_o the_o friar_n marsilius_n and_o occam_n against_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n the_o jesuit_n and_o secular_a priest_n of_o late_a among_o we_o one_o against_o another_o catharinus_n against_o caietan_n of_o who_o 11._o who_o loc._n l._n 2._o c._n 11._o canus_n again_o give_v this_o censure_n he_o be_v a_o little_a too_o busy_a in_o carp_a at_o other_o and_o mark_v not_o that_o himself_o while_o he_o reprehend_v caietan_n do_v many_o time_n and_o fowl_o err_v this_o caietan_n though_o he_o be_v tho._n be_v reverendiss_n thomae_fw-la de_fw-fr ʋio_n caie_n s._n ro._n eccl_n card._n theol._n doctoris_fw-la absolu_fw-la tissimi_fw-la the_o title_n set_v before_o his_o comment_n upon_o tho._n repute_v the_o most_o absolute_a and_o profound_a doctor_n of_o his_o time_n quaesita_fw-la time_n as_o appear_v by_o his_o opusc_n ad_fw-la diversorum_fw-la quaesita_fw-la &_o much_o seek_v unto_o for_o resolution_n of_o difficult_a question_n yet_o afterward_o 2._o afterward_o andrad_n defence_n trid._n l._n 2._o they_o suspect_v he_o to_o have_v be_v a_o lutheran_n 1523._o lutheran_n suay_v to_o 3._o d._n 60_o s_o 1._o and_o this_o appear_v by_o compare_v the_o new_a print_n of_o his_o commentary_n upon_o tho._n with_o the_o old_a edition_n print_v at_o venice_n an._n 1523._o and_o pius_fw-la quintus_fw-la cause_v a_o number_n of_o thing_n to_o be_v put_v out_o of_o his_o book_n in_o a_o new_a impression_n that_o a_o man_n may_v know_v they_o be_v not_o all_o of_o one_o opinion_n so_o catharinus_n and_o soto_n have_v write_v vehement_o against_o each_o other_o and_o there_o be_v not_o one_o of_o the_o elder_n papist_n such_o as_o be_v pighius_fw-la gropper_n bayus_n peresius_n cassander_n hosius_n almain_n and_o the_o rest_n who_o in_o their_o time_n some_o three_o or_o four_o score_n year_n since_o be_v the_o best_a pillar_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o teach_v the_o doctrine_n thereof_o as_o it_o be_v then_o hold_v but_o now_o the_o jesuit_n scornful_o cast_v they_o off_o and_o confute_v they_o who_o know_v not_o 3._o not_o de_fw-fr great_a l._n 1._o c._n 3._o say_v bellarmine_n that_o pighius_fw-la in_o many_o point_n be_v miserable_o seduce_v by_o read_v caluin_n book_n and_o of_o gropper_n and_o the_o other_o divine_n of_o collen_n he_o 3._o he_o de_fw-fr iustif_a l._n 3._o cap._n 3._o say_v their_o book_n have_v need_n of_o the_o church_n censure_n in_o the_o same_o manner_n do_v they_o that_o be_v yet_o live_v deal_v one_o by_o another_o for_o nothing_o be_v more_o common_a in_o the_o book_n of_o stapleton_n bellarmine_n gregory_n of_o valentia_n suarez_n vasquez_n molina_n baronius_n and_o other_o modern_a writer_n then_o to_o confute_v one_o another_o opinion_n and_o to_o determine_v in_o the_o question_n depend_v as_o variable_o as_o ever_o do_v the_o schoolman_n 18_o and_o if_o any_o think_v i_o wrong_v they_o by_o report_v these_o thing_n untrue_o of_o they_o i_o demand_v why_o have_v they_o raze_v &_o purge_v so_o many_o of_o their_o book_n which_o be_v their_o own_o doctor_n why_o have_v they_o put_v out_o that_o which_o they_o write_v and_o put_v in_o what_o they_o write_v not_o and_o so_o print_v their_o book_n new_o over_o that_o now_o you_o can_v find_v in_o the_o new_a print_n those_o thing_n which_o themselves_o print_v in_o the_o old_a thus_o they_o have_v serve_v caietan_n gratian_n with_o his_o gloss_n ferus_fw-la polydore_n ludovicus_n vine_n 2._o vine_n see_v index_n lib._n prohib_n and_o the_o indices_fw-la expurg_n of_o all_o sort_n jun._n hispan_n lovan_n &_o possevin_n apparat_fw-la sacer_fw-la tomis_fw-fr 2._o and_o who_o not_o if_o he_o have_v write_v never_o so_o little_a against_o the_o stream_n of_o the_o present_a time_n the_o divine_n of_o the_o holy_a inquisition_n 8._o inquisition_n biblio_fw-la l._n 2._o c._n 8._o say_v possevinus_n a_o busy_a meddler_n in_o all_o man_n writing_n have_v command_v certain_a thing_n to_o be_v raze_v out_o of_o andrea_n mazius_fw-la his_o comment_n which_o savour_v of_o heresy_n and_o of_o jansenius_n his_o harmony_n upon_o the_o gospel_n he_o 18._o he_o lib._n 2._o c._n 18._o say_v many_o thing_n be_v in_o it_o not_o allow_v by_o learned_a man_n which_o with_o little_a ado_n may_v be_v supply_v or_o take_v away_o therefore_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o among_o the_o learned_a of_o that_o side_n there_o be_v some_o opposition_n or_o else_o they_o will_v never_o geld_v one_o another_o book_n thus_o 19_o and_o it_o be_v no_o sufficient_a answer_n to_o say_v the_o difference_n be_v not_o in_o dogmatic_a point_n of_o faith_n but_o only_o in_o matter_n not_o define_v by_o the_o church_n for_o it_o be_v in_o all_o the_o point_n of_o their_o religion_n wherein_o they_o differ_v from_o we_o and_o wherein_o papistry_n proper_o consist_v the_o certain_a truth_n whereof_o be_v determine_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v against_o unity_n to_o disagree_v therein_o whether_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o counsel_n determine_v of_o they_o or_o no._n beside_o it_o be_v a_o point_n of_o atheism_n to_o say_v 6._o say_v dico_fw-la hactenus_fw-la nihil_fw-la esse_fw-la in_o hac_fw-la controversia_fw-la ab_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la definitum_fw-la ideoque_fw-la sententiam_fw-la nostrum_fw-la non_fw-la esse_fw-la de_fw-fr side_n ●_o fr._n suar._n to_o 2._o d._n 3._o l._n 6._o they_o be_v not_o matter_n of_o faith_n unless_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v define_v they_o another's_o they_o occam_n tract_n 2._o part_n 2._o c._n 10_o &_o inde_fw-la another's_o for_o what_o god_n reveal_v in_o his_o word_n and_o may_v be_v know_v thereby_o bind_v we_o of_o it_o own_o nature_n and_o though_o the_o church_n have_v power_n to_o propound_v matter_n of_o faith_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n and_o for_o the_o end_n of_o controversy_n to_o give_v testimony_n with_o the_o truth_n yet_o have_v it_o no_o authority_n to_o change_v the_o nature_n of_o thing_n or_o to_o put_v any_o more_o verity_n into_o they_o then_o be_v before_o in_o which_o regard_n the_o contention_n of_o our_o adversary_n touch_v the_o faith_n in_o that_o they_o strive_v about_o thing_n determine_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o agree_v in_o nothing_o wherein_o they_o dissent_v from_o we_o for_o in_o the_o same_o thing_n wherein_o they_o differ_v from_o we_o they_o also_o dissent_v one_o from_o another_o this_o i_o will_v show_v in_o some_o few_o example_n such_o and_o so_o many_o only_a as_o the_o present_a opportunity_n will_v permit_v and_o be_v fit_a for_o this_o place_n 20_o first_o they_o agree_v not_o about_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n for_o ferus_fw-la 72._o ferus_fw-la sixt._n senens_fw-la biblioth_o l._n 6._o annot_v 72._o teach_v against_o his_o dominion_n and_o principality_n in_o temporal_a thing_n 16._o thing_n comment_fw-fr in_o mat._n l._n 3_o in_o c._n 16._o preach_v that_o christ_n give_v he_o the_o key_n not_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o earth_n but_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n not_o any_o earthly_a power_n to_o give_v take_v away_o or_o alienate_v kingdom_n but_o authority_n to_o bind_v and_o loose_v etc._n etc._n and_o marsilius_n 18._o marsilius_n defence_n pac_fw-la part_n 2._o c._n 18._o say_v that_o unjust_o yea_o beside_o and_o contrary_n to_o the_o demonstration_n of_o divinity_n &_o humanity_n he_o ascribe_v to_o himself_o fullness_n of_o power_n over_o prince_n community_n or_o any_o singular_a person_n and_o durand_n 138._o durand_n de_fw-fr modo_fw-la celeb_fw-mi council_n quem_fw-la refert_fw-la catolog_fw-la test_n idem_fw-la gerson_n quem_fw-la ita_fw-la refert_fw-la fr._n victo_n relect_a 4._o the_o pot_n pap._n &_o council_n pag._n 138._o hold_v the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n shall_v be_v declare_v and_o distinguish_v by_o the_o ecclesiastical_a and_o secular_a law_n neither_o aught_o the_o pope_n to_o be_v call_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n because_o gregory_n have_v forbid_v it_o and_o it_o be_v a_o common_a opinion_n that_o a_o council_n be_v above_o he_o and_o almayn_n 133._o almayn_n qu._n in_o vesp_n pag._n 133._o say_v it_o be_v not_o necessary_a we_o believe_v thing_n determine_v by_o he_o and_o cusanus_fw-la 12._o cusanus_fw-la concord_n l._n 2._o c._n 12._o say_v that_o through_o use_n and_o custom_n of_o his_o subject_n obey_v he_o he_o have_v at_o this_o day_n get_v a_o great_a deal_n beyond_o the_o ancient_a sacred_a canon_n second_o touch_v prayer_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n 212._o tongue_n christ_n instruct_v pag_n 212._o contarenus_n a_o cardinal_n say_v the_o prayer_n that_o man_n understand_v not_o want_v the_o fruit_n which_o they_o shall_v reap_v if_o they_o understand_v they_o for_o they_o may_v both_o special_o intend_v their_o mind_n to_o god_n for_o the_o obtain_n even_o in_o special_a of_o that_o which_o with_o their_o mouth_n they_o beg_v and_o also_o through_o the_o pious_a sense_n of_o their_o prayer_n utter_v they_o shall_v
faith_n the_o answer_n 1_o the_o jesuite_n have_v immediate_o before_o propound_v the_o unity_n of_o his_o roman_a church_n affirm_v that_o therein_o only_a the_o unity_n of_o faith_n and_o concord_n of_o the_o learned_a be_v to_o be_v find_v now_o proceed_v to_o prove_v it_o by_o show_v the_o mean_n which_o they_o have_v for_o the_o prevent_n of_o discord_n which_o he_o think_v so_o all-sufficient_a that_o it_o be_v impossible_a there_o shall_v be_v any_o dissension_n among_o they_o the_o sum_n of_o that_o which_o he_o say_v be_v brief_o this_o they_o which_o acknowledge_v one_o chief_a pastor_n to_o wit_n the_o pope_n to_o who_o definitive_a sentence_n in_o all_o matter_n they_o submit_v themselves_o can_v possible_o dissent_v but_o all_o catholic_n acknowledge_v this_o chief_a pastor_n and_o submit_v themselves_o to_o his_o definitive_a sentence_n therefore_o how_o be_v it_o possible_a they_o shall_v dissent_v the_o second_o proposition_n he_o assume_v as_o grant_v though_o indeed_o it_o be_v untrue_a as_o i_o will_v show_v the_o first_o he_o prove_v thus_o they_o can_v dissent_v who_o submit_v themselves_o to_o he_o that_o have_v authority_n and_o infallibility_n of_o judgement_n but_o the_o pope_n have_v this_o authority_n and_o infallibility_n therefore_o they_o which_o submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o pope_n can_v dissent_v the_o second_o proposition_n he_o confirm_v thus_o we_o know_v that_o to_o s._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n christ_n promise_v the_o key_n and_o say_v upon_o they_o as_o upon_o a_o rock_n he_o will_v build_v his_o church_n pray_v for_o they_o that_o their_o faith_n shall_v not_o fail_v and_o bid_v they_o strengthen_v their_o brethren_n and_o feed_v his_o sheep_n which_o import_v this_o authority_n in_o rule_v and_o infallibilit_fw-la it_o in_o judge_v but_o the_o pope_n be_v s._n peter_n successor_n the_o pope_n therefore_o have_v this_o authority_n and_o infallibility_n this_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o his_o discourse_n i_o answer_v first_o to_o that_o which_o he_o assume_v so_o confident_o that_o all_o catholic_a man_n submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o pope_n definition_n acknowledge_v the_o same_o to_o be_v of_o infallible_a truth_n for_o whatsoever_o his_o authority_n and_o judgement_n be_v yet_o the_o catholic_n do_v not_o so_o uniform_o as_o the_o jesuite_n pretend_v submit_v their_o opinion_n to_o he_o but_o contrariwise_o when_o occasion_n be_v offer_v they_o utter_o refuse_v both_o he_o and_o his_o definition_n and_o this_o be_v so_o true_a that_o he_o which_o will_v deny_v it_o must_v be_v repute_v ignorant_a of_o all_o sense_n and_o experience_n the_o which_o manifest_o show_v that_o not_o only_o the_o christian_a catholic_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n but_o the_o popish_a catholic_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n this_o day_n themselves_o have_v reject_v his_o determination_n and_o hold_v opinion_n against_o he_o digression_n 25._o wherein_o it_o be_v show_v that_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n the_o pope_n determination_n be_v not_o think_v a_o infallible_a truth_n neither_o do_v the_o christian_n for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o unity_n submit_v themselves_o thereunto_o 2_o for_o many_o catholic_a bishop_n in_o those_o day_n dissent_v from_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o refuse_v his_o decree_n be_v not_o think_v therefore_o to_o break_v any_o unity_n in_o the_o church_n for_o aeneas_n silvius_n who_o be_v himself_o a_o pope_n about_o seven_o score_n year_n since_o 301._o since_o epist_n 301._o write_v that_o before_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a every_o man_n live_v to_o himself_o and_o small_a respect_n be_v have_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 8._o rome_n sozom._n l._n 3._o c._n 8._o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o east_n withstand_v julius_n in_o the_o cause_n of_o athanasius_n and_o charge_v he_o that_o he_o have_v do_v against_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n 11._o church_n theod_n l._n 5._o c._n 23._o sozom_n l._n 7._o c._n 11._o flavianus_n the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n about_o his_o succeed_a meletius_n in_o that_o sea_n against_o paulinus_n resist_v four_o pope_n one_o after_o another_o when_o they_o will_v have_v have_v he_o give_v room_n to_o paulinus_n 44._o paulinus_n epi._n ad_fw-la vrsac_n &_o valent._n &_o germin_n apud_fw-la baron_n annal_n to_o 3._o ann_n 357._o nu_fw-la 44._o liberius_n who_o be_v pope_n in_o the_o year_n 360._o confess_v that_o athanasius_n be_v separate_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n yea_o 46._o yea_o baron_fw-fr ibid._n nu_fw-la 43._o &_o 46._o the_o papist_n themselves_o acknowledge_v this_o liberius_n condemn_v athanasius_n and_o enter_v communion_n with_o the_o arrian_n which_o show_v against_o all_o exception_n that_o in_o those_o day_n the_o godly_a christian_n do_v not_o think_v either_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o head_n of_o unity_n or_o that_o all_o be_v of_o the_o true_a church_n that_o hold_v communion_n with_o he_o for_o then_o the_o arrian_n have_v be_v good_a catholic_n and_o athanasius_n with_o all_o that_o take_v part_n with_o he_o have_v be_v heretic_n which_o no_o man_n dare_v say_v about_o the_o year_n 450._o 16._o 450._o act._n 16._o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n wherein_o be_v 630._o bishop_n withstand_v leo_n then_o pope_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o question_n of_o his_o supremacy_n concern_v which_o matter_v 748._o matter_v concor_fw-fr cathol_n l._n 2._o c._n 20._o pag_n 748._o cusanus_fw-la a_o cardinal_n bear_v witness_v it_o be_v manifest_a say_v he_o that_o pope_n leo_n will_v not_o in_o certain_a point_n receive_v the_o constitution_n of_o the_o chalcedon_n council_n special_o that_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n shall_v go_v before_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n but_o always_o gainsay_v they_o as_o some_o other_o pope_n do_v after_o he_o and_o yet_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n always_o prevail_v which_o experience_n prove_v that_o in_o those_o time_n the_o bishop_n over_o all_o the_o world_n will_v as_o occasion_v serve_v refuse_v the_o pope_n judgement_n and_o yet_o they_o be_v count_v good_a catholic_n for_o all_o that_o so_o likewise_o in_o the_o year_n 418._o 105._o 418._o cap._n 105._o the_o sixth_o council_n of_o carthage_n have_v in_o it_o 217._o bishop_n resist_v three_o pope_n one_o after_o another_o decree_a thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o 263._o as_o contaré_fw-fr sum_fw-la council_n magis_fw-la illustr_n pag._n 263._o the_o papist_n themselves_o expound_v the_o council_n whereof_o cusanus_fw-la supra_fw-la cusanus_fw-la vbi_fw-la supra_fw-la write_v thus_o the_o council_n of_o africa_n withstand_v celestin_n in_o that_o he_o will_v do_v against_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o celestin_n reply_v not_o that_o he_o may_v do_v it_o but_o allege_v for_o himself_o the_o council_n though_o corrupt_v which_o opposition_n make_v against_o the_o pope_n be_v so_o apparent_a that_o many_o papist_n indeed_o labour_v to_o excuse_v it_o but_o none_o deny_v it_o and_o 77._o and_o sic_fw-la undique_fw-la carthaginenses_n patres_fw-la constringuntur_fw-la ut_fw-la elabi_fw-la nullo_fw-la modo_fw-la possint_fw-la quis_fw-la iam_fw-la ferat_fw-la crassissimae_fw-la igno●antiae_fw-la illam_fw-la vocem_fw-la in_o tot_fw-la &_o tantis_fw-la patribus_fw-la ubi_fw-la illa_fw-la augustini_fw-la &_o reliquorum_fw-la prudentia_fw-la alan_n cope_n dial_n pag_n 76._o 77._o the_o despiteful_a speech_n of_o some_o papist_n against_o s._n austin_n and_o the_o bishop_n bewray_v that_o they_o discover_v the_o same_o resistance_n make_v by_o the_o council_n against_o the_o pope_n that_o i_o mention_n 3_o again_o in_o the_o year_n 167._o inde_fw-la 167._o euseb_n hist_o l._n 5._o c._n 23._o &_o inde_fw-la niceph._n l._n 4._o c._n 37._o &_o inde_fw-la there_o arise_v a_o contention_n in_o the_o church_n about_o the_o keep_n of_o easter_n whereby_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o east_n and_o west_n be_v divide_v in_o which_o contention_n the_o pope_n definitive_a sentence_n be_v not_o receive_v but_o refuse_v without_o any_o offence_n against_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n for_o first_o polycarpe_n come_v to_o anicetus_n that_o be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o his_o time_n will_v not_o yield_v to_o he_o neither_o can_v anicetus_n persuade_v polycarpe_n to_o lay_v by_o his_o manner_n of_o observation_n 26._o observation_n euseb_n li._n 5._o c._n 26._o say_v the_o story_n and_o yet_o both_o side_n retain_v unity_n about_o thirty_o year_n after_o the_o question_n be_v renew_v 25._o renew_v cap._n 25._o and_o victor_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v earnest_n against_o the_o eastern_a bishop_n excommunicate_v they_o but_o this_o say_v eusebius_n please_v they_o not_o for_o they_o write_v unto_o he_o reprove_v he_o sharp_o and_o bitter_o as_o namely_o polycrates_n the_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n and_o irenaeus_n the_o bishop_n of_o lion_n here_o in_o the_o west_n these_o have_v many_o on_o their_o side_n that_o stand_v against_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o which_o afterward_o take_v up_o the_o controversy_n be_v not_o his_o
authority_n but_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a now_o it_o be_v very_o probable_a that_o if_o these_o bishop_n have_v think_v the_o subjection_n mention_v by_o the_o jesuit_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v necessary_o require_v to_o the_o essence_n of_o unity_n they_o will_v have_v yield_v whereas_o by_o their_o resistance_n it_o be_v plain_a they_o think_v themselves_o bind_v to_o his_o determination_n no_o more_o than_o he_o may_v think_v himself_o bind_v to_o they_o 4_o about_o the_o year_n 258._o there_o arise_v a_o question_n whether_o they_o who_o heretic_n have_v baptize_v if_o they_o return_v to_o the_o catholic_a church_n shall_v be_v baptize_v again_o here_o no_o doubt_n the_o pope_n judgement_n be_v to_o be_v follow_v if_o it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o authority_n and_o certainty_n of_o judgement_n be_v he_o and_o all_o true_a catholic_n shall_v yield_v unto_o he_o but_o mark_v what_o fall_v out_o 14._o out_o euseb_n l._n 7._o c._n 5._o cypr._n ep_v 74._o ad_fw-la pomp._n august_n de_fw-fr unic_n bapt_v c._n 14._o stephen_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n forbid_v rebaptisation_n and_o think_v they_o worthy_a excommunication_n that_o use_v it_o but_o cyprian_n the_o bishop_n of_o carthage_n and_o a_o martyr_n of_o the_o church_n withstand_v he_o and_o will_v never_o accept_v his_o decree_n with_o he_o take_v part_n firmilianus_n the_o metropolitan_a of_o caesarea_n confute_v the_o decree_n that_o stephen_n have_v make_v who_o 75._o who_o apud_fw-la cypr._n ep_v 75._o in_o a_o certain_a epistle_n he_o thus_o reprove_v what_o can_v be_v more_o base_a or_o vain_a then_o to_o hold_v contention_n with_o so_o many_o bishop_n throughout_o the_o world_n break_n peace_n with_o every_o one_o through_o diverse_a kind_n of_o discord_n sometime_o with_o the_o eastern_a people_n sometime_o with_o you_o of_o the_o south_n not_o suffer_v the_o bishop_n send_v from_o they_o so_o much_o as_o to_o come_v to_o his_o speech_n but_o forbid_v the_o brethren_n to_o give_v they_o room_n and_o lodging_n be_v this_o to_o hold_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o bond_n of_o peace_n to_o cut_v himself_o from_o the_o unity_n of_o love_n and_o in_o all_o thing_n to_o make_v himself_o strange_a unto_o his_o brethren_n yea_o and_o through_o the_o fury_n of_o contention_n to_o rebel_v against_o faith_n and_o sacrament_n see_v how_o this_o man_n 28._o man_n menolog_n graec._n in_o octobr_n 28._o who_o the_o church_n so_o honour_v that_o they_o put_v his_o name_n into_o the_o calendar_n take_v up_o the_o pope_n and_o set_v at_o nought_o his_o definitive_a sentence_n with_o these_o take_v part_n also_o a_o cyprian_n a_o council_n carth._n apud_fw-la cyprian_n council_n of_o 87._o bishop_n yea_o many_o great_a synod_n 5._o synod_n euseb_n l._n 7._o c._n 5._o say_v dionysius_n alexandrinus_n and_o whole_a country_n who_o yet_o be_v not_o therefore_o repute_v to_o live_v out_o of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o dionysius_n himself_o the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n consent_v herein_o with_o cyprian_a and_o the_o synod_n of_o africa_n as_o jerom_n dionysio_n jerom_n de_fw-fr script_n eccle_n in_o dionysio_n testify_v here_o they_o we_o see_v the_o pope_n at_o one_o time_n resist_v by_o 3._o metropolitan_o many_o counsel_n and_o by_o the_o most_o bishop_n in_o africa_n cappadocia_n egypt_n cilicia_n galatia_n and_o other_o country_n and_o yet_o the_o jesuite_n will_v needs_o persuade_v that_o all_o catholic_a man_n have_v acknowledge_v one_o chief_a pastor_n the_o pope_n and_o yield_v themselves_o evermore_o to_o his_o censure_n when_o these_o example_n show_v the_o contrary_a and_o make_v it_o more_o than_o plain_a that_o till_o now_o of_o late_a subjection_n to_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v never_o esteem_v appertain_v to_o the_o essence_n of_o unity_n nor_o put_v into_o the_o definition_n thereof_o digression_n 26._o show_v that_o the_o papist_n themselves_o do_v not_o so_o constant_o and_o uniform_o submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o pope_n judgement_n nor_o believe_v his_o infallible_a authority_n as_o be_v pretend_v 5_o indeed_o the_o jesuite_n report_v it_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n this_o day_n that_o all_o the_o learned_a man_n and_o people_n thereof_o submit_v their_o opinion_n and_o judgement_n in_o all_o thing_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o this_o be_v general_o boast_v among_o they_o and_o object_v as_o a_o matter_n full_o prove_v their_o unity_n but_o they_o only_o say_v it_o for_o we_o know_v the_o contrary_a supremacy_n contrary_a a_o memorable_a example_n hereof_o be_v the_o modern_a conclusion_n publish_v by_o the_o venetian_n against_o the_o present_a pope_n pa●lus_n quintus_n and_o his_o supremacy_n and_o discover_v daily_a as_o much_o headinesse_n among_o they_o against_o their_o pope_n and_o counsel_n as_o ever_o be_v in_o any_o government_n mark_v else_o their_o own_o word_n it_o be_v a_o great_a matter_n indeed_o say_v 13._o say_v de_fw-fr certitud_n gratiae_fw-la assert_v 13._o catharinus_n a_o archbishop_n among_o they_o and_o in_o very_a truth_n too_o hard_a a_o case_n to_o bind_v the_o understanding_n of_o the_o wise_a with_o every_o answer_n of_o the_o pope_n that_o may_v be_v produce_v for_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v not_o always_o and_o in_o every_o word_n assist_v they_o and_o 8●_n and_o q._n in_o vesper_n pag._n 133._o print_v at_o the_o end_n of_o his_o moral_n in_o 8●_n almain_n a_o great_a doctor_n in_o their_o school_n it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o man_n believe_v thing_n determine_v by_o the_o pope_n although_o the_o contrary_a be_v not_o public_o to_o be_v teach_v and_o bellarmine_n though_o unaduised_o possible_a yet_o say_v plain_o touch_v cyprian_n withstand_v of_o pope_n stephen_n that_o 7._o that_o de_fw-fr ro._n pont._n l._n 4_o c._n 7._o after_o the_o pope_n definition_n yet_o it_o be_v free_a to_o think_v otherwise_o yea_o he_o hold_v that_o 7._o that_o de_fw-fr ro._n pont._n l._n 2._o c._n 29._o arg_n 7._o as_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o resist_v the_o pope_n assault_v our_o body_n so_o may_v we_o resist_v he_o when_o he_o invade_v our_o soul_n or_o trouble_v the_o commonweal_n and_o much_o more_o if_o he_o practise_v the_o destruction_n of_o the_o church_n in_o this_o case_n i_o say_v it_o be_v lawful_a to_o resist_v he_o by_o not_o do_v what_o he_o command_v and_o hinder_v that_o his_o will_n be_v not_o execute_v caietan_n 26._o caietan_n de_fw-fr authorit_fw-fr pap._n &_o council_n c._n 26._o hold_v that_o in_o case_n of_o heresy_n he_o may_v be_v depose_v 2._o depose_v cap._n 27._o ad_fw-la 2._o and_o when_o he_o rend_v the_o church_n in_o sunder_o he_o may_v be_v resist_v to_o his_o face_n and_o franciscus_n victoria_n 133_o victoria_n relect._n 4._o de_fw-fr potest_fw-la pap._n &_o council_n pag._n 133_o say_v if_o a_o council_n declare_v a_o thing_n to_o be_v matter_n of_o faith_n or_o belong_v to_o divine_a right_n the_o pope_n herein_o can_v declare_v otherwise_o or_o change_v any_o thing_n special_o if_o such_o a_o matter_n pertain_v to_o faith_n or_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n see_v how_o these_o man_n all_o resolve_a papist_n and_o the_o learn_a of_o that_o sort_n yet_o assume_v it_o as_o out_o of_o question_n that_o the_o pope_n judgement_n be_v not_o always_o of_o undoubted_a truth_n but_o he_o may_v err_v yea_o be_v a_o heretic_n and_o make_v havoc_n of_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o may_v be_v resist_v and_o in_o very_a deed_n the_o conceit_n of_o his_o infallible_a judgement_n be_v the_o beginning_n and_o foundation_n of_o his_o authority_n it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o they_o which_o call_v the_o former_a in_o question_n must_v needs_o doubt_v of_o the_o late_a 6_o and_o let_v the_o most_o resolute_a papist_n that_o be_v but_o think_v serious_o of_o this_o point_n and_o answer_v how_o it_o be_v possible_a they_o shall_v so_o willing_o obey_v his_o decree_n and_o yield_v their_o opinion_n to_o his_o judgement_n when_o it_o be_v a_o rule_v case_n among_o they_o all_o that_o the_o pope_n may_v err_v yea_o as_o 6._o as_o de_fw-fr sign_n eccl_n to_o 2._o l._n 18._o c._n 6._o bozius_n affirm_v be_v a_o heretic_n writing_n teach_v and_o preach_v heresy_n for_o will_v they_o obey_v he_o in_o error_n and_o scandal_n or_o do_v they_o think_v his_o decree_n can_v alter_v the_o nature_n of_o that_o which_o be_v false_a and_o make_v it_o true_a that_o they_o may_v with_o security_n of_o conscience_n entertain_v it_o they_o dare_v not_o say_v so_o franciscus_n victoria_n council_n victoria_n relect._n 4._o de_fw-fr potest_fw-la pap._n &_o council_n dispute_v at_o large_a against_o his_o dispensation_n affirm_v that_o a_o council_n shall_v do_v well_o to_o bridle_v he_o and_o that_o they_o which_o use_v such_o immoderate_a dispensation_n as_o he_o give_v be_v not_o thereby_o secure_v in_o conscience_n that_o they_o may_v use_v they_o lawful_o no_o doubt_v they_o which_o
where_o the_o accuser_n and_o witness_n be_v unless_o peradventure_o a_o few_o desperate_a and_o graceless_a person_n think_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n in_o africa_n that_o have_v judge_v they_o to_o be_v less_o this_o which_o cyprian_n say_v be_v afterward_o decree_v in_o counsel_n both_o general_a and_o provincial_a which_o can_v not_o have_v be_v if_o the_o pope_n have_v be_v supreme_a judge_n of_o all_o the_o church_n and_o head_n of_o the_o unity_n thereof_o nay_o cyprian_n say_v lidere_fw-la say_v oportet_fw-la utique_fw-la eos_fw-la quibus_fw-la prae_fw-la sumus_fw-la non_fw-la circumcursare_fw-la nec_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la concordiam_fw-la cohaerentem_fw-la sva_fw-la temeritate_fw-la col_fw-fr lidere_fw-la the_o unity_n of_o bishop_n be_v break_v when_o man_n run_v from_o their_o own_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o eight_o general_a council_n hold_v at_o constantinople_n have_v this_o 26._o this_o can._n 26._o decree_n the_o order_n of_o appeal_n shall_v be_v this_o that_o he_o which_o think_v himself_o wrong_v by_o his_o own_o bishop_n may_v appeal_v to_o his_o metropolitan_a who_o shall_v call_v the_o matter_n before_o he_o but_o if_o bishop_n think_v they_o be_v wrong_v by_o their_o metropolitan_a be_v it_o lawful_a for_o they_o to_o appeal_v to_o the_o patriarch_n who_o shall_v end_v the_o strife_n that_o in_o no_o case_n a_o metropolitan_a have_v any_o power_n over_o his_o neighbour_n metropolitan_a or_o a_o bishop_n over_o his_o neighbour_n bishop_n the_o like_a be_v decree_v long_o before_o by_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n 9_o chalcedon_n cap._n 9_o which_o express_o make_v the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n the_o last_o and_o high_a judge_n under_o the_o council_n for_o all_o matter_n fall_v out_o in_o greece_n and_o 22._o and_o c_o 22._o the_o council_n of_o mileu●_n excommunicate_v all_o that_o will_v appeal_v to_o place_n out_o of_o africa_n where_o then_o be_v the_o pope_n supreme_a authority_n in_o these_o day_n when_o the_o counsel_n and_o discipline_n thus_o hem_v man_n in_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o come_v at_o he_o this_o some_o papist_n see_v well_o enough_o and_o confess_v cusanus_fw-la 13._o cusanus_fw-la concord_n l._n 2._o c._n 13._o say_v the_o pope_n have_v it_o not_o from_o the_o church-rule_a that_o he_o may_v hurt_v the_o jurisdiction_n of_o other_o bishop_n because_o this_o be_v to_o disturb_v order_n therefore_o we_o do_v not_o read_v that_o the_o ancient_a pope_n ever_o put_v themselves_o into_o such_o matter_n and_o peradventure_o it_o will_v not_o have_v be_v suffer_v for_o the_o council_n of_o africa_n whereto_o s._n austin_n subscribe_v allow_v no_o appeal_n from_o the_o synod_n to_o the_o pope_n because_o it_o be_v not_o find_v allow_v in_o the_o church_n canon_n but_o contrariwise_o the_o nicen_n council_n decree_v that_o a_o synod_n shall_v end_v every_o cause_n where_o it_o be_v begin_v 28_o the_o three_o experience_n be_v that_o he_o have_v no_o authority_n over_o general_a counsel_n either_o of_o his_o own_o power_n to_o call_v they_o or_o be_v call_v to_o be_v sole_a precedent_n or_o have_v decree_v any_o thing_n to_o judge_v or_o rule_v or_o countermand_v they_o all_o which_o he_o now_o use_v but_o then_o do_v none_o of_o they_o for_o first_o the_o power_n of_o assemble_v counsel_n be_v in_o temporal_a magistrate_n so_o pr●oem_n so_o l._n 5._o hist_o pr●oem_n say_v socrates_n when_o once_o the_o emperor_n beg●n_n to_o be_v christian_o from_o that_o time_n forward_o the_o church_n affair_n depend_v upon_o they_o and_o the_o great_a counsel_n be_v assemble_v and_o so_o still_o be_v at_o their_o appointment_n and_o this_o appear_v to_o be_v true_a by_o go_v through_o the_o particular_n for_o let_v all_o the_o ancient_a counsel_n be_v read_v and_o there_o be_v not_o one_o of_o they_o but_o the_o very_a act_n and_o title_n thereof_o will_v show_v the_o prince_n call_v it_o which_o be_v so_o true_a that_o pighius_fw-la a_o learned_a papist_n 1._o papist_n hier._n l_o 6._o c._n 1._o write_v the_o assemble_v of_o general_a counsel_n be_v the_o invention_n of_o constantine_n the_o first_o general_a council_n be_v that_o of_o nice_n 5._o nice_n gelas_n cyzic_n pag._n 67._o euseb_n vit_fw-mi const_n l._n 3._o c._n 6._o theod._n l._n 1._o c._n 7._o sozom._n l._n 1._o c._n 17._o nicet_fw-la thesau_fw-fr l._n 5._o c._n 5._o assemble_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o constantine_n the_o great_a the_o second_o be_v at_o constantinople_n 30._o constantinople_n sozo_n l._n 7._o c._n 7._o theod._n l._n 5._o c._n 7._o zon._n to_o 3._o p._n 30._o call_v by_o theodosius_n the_o elder_a the_o three_o be_v at_o ephesus_n 3._o ephesus_n council_n eph._n graec_fw-la euagr._fw-la l._n 1._o c._n 3._o call_v by_o theodosius_n the_o young_a the_o four_o be_v at_o chalcedon_n 39_o chalcedon_n council_n cale_n act_n 1._o zon._n tom_n 3._o pag._n 39_o call_v by_o valentinian_n and_o martian_a the_o five_o be_v at_o constantinople_n 27._o constantinople_n niceph._n l._n 17._o c._n 27._o call_v by_o justinian_n the_o sixth_o be_v again_o at_o constantinople_n 1._o constantinople_n conc._n gen_fw-la 6._o act._n 1._o call_v by_o constantinus_n pogonatus_n the_o seven_o as_o the_o papist_n reckon_v it_o be_v at_o nice_a 4._o nice_a zon._n tom_n 3._o p._n 95._o sigon_n de_fw-fr regn_n ital._n l._n 4._o call_v by_o the_o empress_n irene_n the_o eight_o be_v again_o at_o constantinople_n 5._o constantinople_n zon._n tom_n 3._o pag._n 134._o sigon_n ibid._n l._n 5._o call_v by_o basilius_n macedo_n the_o council_n of_o sardica_n be_v 4_o be_v theod._n l._n 4._o c._n 4_o call_v by_o constantius_n the_o council_n of_o syrmium_fw-la against_o photinus_n 6._o photinus_n socr._n l._n 2_o c._n 29._o sozo_n l._n 4._o c._n 6._o by_o constantine_n the_o great_a the_o counsel_n of_o 36._o of_o socr_n l_o 2_o c._n 36._o milan_n 37_o milan_n socr._n l._n 2._o c._n 37_o ariminum_n and_o 794._o and_o carol._n the_o imag_n sigon_n de_fw-fr reg._n ital._n a_o 794._o frankford_n all_o assemble_v by_o the_o emperor_n more_o particular_n may_v be_v give_v but_o these_o be_v enough_o and_o 9.23.24.26_o and_o ep._n 9.23.24.26_o the_o earnest_a suit_n that_o leo_n make_v to_o the_o emperor_n and_o empress_n both_o in_o his_o time_n for_o a_o council_n to_o be_v hold_v in_o italy_n which_o yet_o he_o can_v not_o obtain_v make_v it_o out_o of_o question_n that_o all_o power_n of_o assemble_v counsel_n be_v in_o the_o emperor_n yea_o the_o point_n be_v so_o clear_a that_o 21._o that_o aen._n sylu._n de_fw-fr gest_n conc_fw-fr bas_n l._n 1._o cusan_a conc_fw-fr l._n 2_o c_o 2._o marsil_n def_n part_n 2_o c._n 21._o many_o papist_n deny_v it_o not_o and_o 162._o and_o fr._n victo_n relect_v 4._o p._n 162._o some_o hold_n that_o at_o this_o day_n in_o certain_a case_n a_o general_a council_n may_v be_v call_v against_o the_o pope_n mind_n whether_o he_o will_v or_o no._n 29_o next_o he_o be_v precedent_n in_o no_o council_n of_o a_o long_a time_n and_o when_o he_o be_v yet_o other_o be_v precedent_n as_o well_o as_o he_o the_o say_a office_n import_v no_o such_o command_n over_o the_o council_n as_o now_o the_o pope_n usurp_v the_o which_o duarenus_n a_o learned_a papist_n confess_v 39_o confess_v de_fw-fr sacris_fw-la eccl_n benef_n &_o minist_n p._n 39_o say_v the_o office_n be_v no_o more_o but_o to_o call_v the_o rest_n together_o and_o to_o speak_v unto_o they_o concern_v the_o matter_n to_o be_v handle_v as_o the_o speaker_n in_o the_o parliament_n call_v the_o assembly_n etc._n etc._n but_o have_v no_o power_n over_o they_o yea_o the_o power_n of_o determine_v be_v in_o the_o court_n itself_o which_o may_v also_o command_v he_o thus_o be_v it_o in_o time_n past_a say_v he_o but_o now_o i_o know_v not_o how_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o chief_a government_n over_o all_o christian_n be_v give_v to_o he_o alone_o that_o he_o become_v free_a after_o the_o manner_n of_o emperor_n from_o all_o law_n and_o council_n decree_v the_o which_o speech_n of_o this_o our_o adversary_n be_v to_o be_v note_v because_o the_o jesuit_n will_v make_v you_o believe_v all_o catholic_a man_n have_v evermore_o receive_v he_o from_o christ_n own_o hand_n as_o the_o supreme_a judge_n of_o all_o and_o the_o refuse_v of_o his_o will_n be_v the_o violate_v of_o the_o church_n unity_n but_o that_o which_o i_o have_v say_v be_v easy_o confirm_v for_o in_o the_o nicen_n council_n hosius_n the_o bishop_n of_o corduba_n macarius_n the_o patriarch_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o eustathius_n the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n 6._o antioch_n athan._n ep._n ad_fw-la solit._n nicet_fw-la the_o saur_n l._n 5._o c._n 6._o be_v precedent_n if_o not_o the_o emperor_n himself_o also_o with_o they_o for_o gr_n for_o gelas_n cyzic_n act._n conc_fw-fr nic._n c._n 8_o socrat._n l._n 1._o p._n 174_o gr_n the_o story_n say_v that_o out_o of_o his_o chair_n
have_v do_v it_o this_o argument_n foul_o trouble_v our_o adversary_n and_o therefore_o they_o will_v fain_o outface_v it_o by_o salve_v such_o pope_n as_o be_v touch_v from_o heresy_n but_o all_o in_o vain_a for_o what_o say_v 2._o say_v 4._o d._n 18._o pro._n 25_o co●ol_n 2._o ouandus_fw-la the_o which_o pope_n though_o some_o catholic_n will_v feign_v clear_a yet_o shall_v they_o not_o deny_v as_o they_o do_v that_o they_o be_v heretic_n see_v the_o pope_n may_v err_v at_o least_o as_o a_o private_a man_n thus_o marcellin_n thus_o conc._n sinew_n apud_fw-la baron_n a_o 303._o nu_fw-la 89._o carranz_n in_o marcellin_n marcellinus_n commit_v idolatry_n and_o offer_v sacrifice_n to_o jupiter_n saturn_n hercules_n &_o the_o pagan_a god_n and_o be_v thereupon_o examine_v judge_v and_o condemn_v by_o a_o council_n of_o 300._o bishop_n the_o which_o story_n 102._o story_n tom._n 2._o a_o 302_o nu_fw-la 102._o baronius_n confess_v be_v from_o the_o beginning_n believe_v with_o a_o general_a consent_n and_o keep_v in_o the_o ancient_a martyrologue_n and_o breviaries_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n 43.44_o church_n athan._n ep_v ad_fw-la solita_fw-la fascic_fw-la temp_n a_o 353._o baron_fw-fr tom_n 3._o a_o 357._o n._n 43.44_o liberius_n that_o be_v pope_n about_o the_o year_n 350._o fall_v into_o arianisme_n subscribe_v to_o the_o unjust_a condemnation_n of_o athanasius_n whereupon_o athanasius_n fall_v from_o his_o community_n and_o himself_o as_o a_o obstinate_a heretic_n be_v depose_v and_o cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n 23._o church_n anast_n bibliot_n in_o leone_n 2._o nilus_n de_fw-fr pri●at_fw-la pag._n 23._o honorius_n the_o first_o that_o be_v pope_n in_o the_o year_n 626._o be_v a_o monothelite_n heretic_n hold_v that_o christ_n have_v but_o one_o will_n and_o so_o withal_o but_o one_o nature_n for_o the_o which_o the_o church_n condemn_v he_o in_o 7._o in_o synod_n 6._o act_n 4.12.13_o synod_n 7._o act_n ult._n synod_n 8._o act_n 7._o three_o general_a counsel_n inde_fw-la counsel_n see_v d_o reyn._n apolog_n thes_n nu_fw-la 39_o &_o inde_fw-la it_o be_v a_o world_n to_o see_v how_o the_o papist_n strive_v to_o clear_v this_o matter_n and_o can_v though_o they_o blush_v not_o in_o his_o defence_n to_o discredit_v all_o antiquity_n yea_o to_o fly_v one_o in_o the_o face_n of_o another_o as_o pighius_fw-la 8._o pighius_fw-la hier._n l._n 4._o c._n 8._o have_v take_v great_a pain_n to_o discredit_v the_o story_n lect_n story_n pigh_a diatrib_o in_o ep_v ad_fw-la lect_n a_o certain_a learned_a man_n wish_v he_o to_o recant_v syn._n recant_v diatrib_n de_fw-fr act_n 6._o syn._n whereupon_o he_o set_v afresh_o upon_o the_o matter_n but_o canus_n ult._n canus_n loc._n lib._n 6._o c._n ult._n ask_v how_o can_v pighius_fw-la clear_v he_o who_o psellus_n tharasius_n theodorus_n with_o his_o council_n at_o jerusalem_n epiphanius_n and_o pope_n adrian_n affirm_v to_o have_v be_v a_o heretic_n but_o 31._o but_o an._n 681._o nu_fw-la 31._o baronius_n turn_v upon_o canus_n again_o and_o sententia_fw-la and_o quem_fw-la voluissem_fw-la sensibus_fw-la potiùs_fw-la canum_fw-la quàm_fw-la nomine_fw-la totus_fw-la praeceps_fw-la in_o ferenda_fw-la de_fw-la re_fw-la tanta_fw-la sententia_fw-la descant_v upon_o his_o name_n shake_v he_o off_o as_o if_o he_o have_v be_v a_o protestant_n that_o i_o may_v a_o little_a by_o the_o way_n note_v the_o unity_n of_o papist_n even_o there_o where_o it_o be_v most_o convenient_a they_o shall_v agree_v 35_o and_o of_o late_a day_n when_o they_o begin_v first_o to_o broach_v this_o conceit_n of_o the_o pope_n infallible_a judgement_n it_o please_v god_n to_o check_v that_o fond_a opinion_n &_o by_o sensible_a example_n of_o some_o present_a pope_n to_o teach_v they_o the_o vanity_n thereof_o that_o if_o reason_n can_v not_o persuade_v they_o yet_o experience_n shall_v convince_v they_o or_o if_o they_o will_v believe_v none_o that_o have_v write_v he_o may_v be_v a_o heretic_n yet_o they_o shall_v see_v it_o with_o their_o own_o eye_n and_o then_o let_v they_o hold_v he_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n at_o their_o peril_n 3._o peril_n theod._n nicmens_n de_fw-fr schism_n l._n 3_o c._n 44._o pag._n 91._o antonin_n sum_fw-la hist_o part_n 3._o tit_n 22._o c_o 5._o §_o 3._o for_o in_o the_o year_n 1408._o in_o the_o council_n of_o pisa_n consist_v of_o a_o thousand_o divine_n and_o lawyer_n they_o be_v fain_o to_o depose_v two_o pope_n at_o once_o gregory_z the_o 12._o and_o bennet_n the_o 13_o the_o tenor_n of_o which_o deprivation_n call_v they_o notorious_a schismatics_n obstinate_a maintainer_n of_o schism_n heretic_n depart_v from_o the_o faith_n scandalize_a the_o whole_a church_n unworthy_a the_o papacy_n cut_v off_o from_o the_o church_n and_o whereas_o bennet_n continue_v pope_n still_o for_o all_o this_o 2._o this_o conci_fw-la const_n sess_v 37._o anton._n ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la c._n 6._o §_o 2._o a_o second_o council_n hold_v at_o constance_n depose_v he_o again_o and_o declare_v that_o he_o have_v no_o right_n to_o the_o papacy_n command_v all_o man_n to_o esteem_v he_o as_o a_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n 12._o schismatic_n sess_n 11._o &_o 12._o the_o same_o council_n depose_v also_o another_o pope_n john_n 23_o where_o it_o be_v prove_v against_o he_o that_o he_o hold_v and_o defend_v as_o his_o judgement_n that_o there_o be_v no_o eternal_a life_n nor_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n nor_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a 34._o dead_a sess_n 34._o a_o while_n after_o the_o council_n of_o basill_n depose_v eugenius_n the_o four_o declare_v he_o to_o be_v a_o rebel_n against_o the_o sacred_a canon_n a_o notorious_a disturber_n and_o scandalizer_n of_o the_o peace_n and_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n a_o simonist_n a_o perjure_a wretch_n incorrigible_a a_o schismatic_n a_o obstinate_a heretic_n thus_o we_o see_v their_o own_o self_n in_o express_a term_n lay_v to_o the_o pope_n charge_n schism_n heresy_n scandal_n breach_n of_o the_o church_n unity_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n depose_v he_o &_o refuse_v to_o obey_v he_o and_o yet_o another_o while_n they_o will_v defend_v he_o can_v err_v christ_n have_v give_v he_o infalliblenesse_n of_o judgement_n and_o supremacy_n over_o all_o man_n all_o that_o will_v be_v count_v true_a catholic_n must_v submit_v themselves_o to_o he_o and_o the_o protestant_n can_v have_v no_o unity_n because_o they_o acknowledge_v not_o his_o authority_n digression_n 29._o declare_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o saint_n peter_n successor_n 36_o this_o point_n be_v proper_o prove_v by_o show_v the_o difference_n between_o the_o pope_n and_o saint_n peter_n faith_n for_o if_o the_o pope_n be_v depart_v from_o that_o which_o saint_n peter_n teach_v than_o it_o will_v plain_o appear_v he_o be_v not_o his_o successor_n because_o true_a succession_n stand_v in_o hold_v the_o same_o faith_n but_o i_o will_v not_o go_v this_o way_n to_o work_v now_o because_o i_o have_v touch_v it_o particular_o in_o 22.23_o in_o digr_n 22.23_o other_o place_n and_o handle_v it_o general_o throughout_o this_o book_n and_o all_o our_o writing_n and_o doctrine_n and_o disputation_n tend_v to_o nothing_o else_o but_o to_o show_v it_o 37_o next_o it_o be_v prove_v by_o this_o that_o as_o jerome_n euagr._fw-la jerome_n ad_fw-la euagr._fw-la say_v and_o novo_fw-la and_o d._n 21._o in_o novo_fw-la the_o pope_n own_o canon_n grant_v all_o bishop_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n for_o if_o all_o the_o apostle_n be_v equal_a and_o all_o bishop_n succeed_v they_o then_o what_o singular_a matter_n be_v there_o in_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n succession_n more_o than_o in_o the_o succession_n of_o other_o or_o why_o shall_v he_o be_v call_v saint_n peter_n successor_n more_o than_o other_o for_o as_o marsilius_n 16._o marsilius_n defen_n part_n 2._o c._n 16._o note_v they_o be_v all_o successor_n which_o in_o life_n and_o conversation_n resemble_v they_o as_o ult._n as_o mat._n 12._o ult._n christ_n say_v they_o be_v my_o mother_n and_o my_o brethren_n which_o do_v the_o will_n of_o my_o father_n beside_o if_o he_o be_v saint_n peter_n successor_n all_o the_o privilege_n give_v by_o christ_n to_o peter_n must_v be_v derive_v to_o he_o as_o to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n which_o some_o pope_n have_v not_o be_v able_a to_o do_v and_o few_o of_o late_a will_v take_v the_o pain_n to_o do_v to_o work_v miracle_n to_o be_v free_a from_o heresy_n to_o hold_v perfect_a the_o love_n of_o christ_n to_o indite_v scripture_n which_o i_o think_v the_o jesuite_n himself_o will_v not_o attribute_v to_o the_o pope_n 38_o but_o omit_v these_o and_o such_o like_a reason_n the_o principal_a thing_n i_o now_o desire_v to_o show_v be_v that_o as_o loud_a as_o the_o papist_n be_v with_o the_o pope_n succession_n and_o although_o the_o trial_n of_o all_o papistry_n depend_v upon_o it_o yet_o be_v it_o but_o a_o humane_a constitution_n not_o only_o because_o there_o be_v
stand_v not_o dispute_v the_o matter_n as_o the_o jesuite_n do_v here_o with_o quo_fw-la tempore_fw-la quo_fw-la pontifice_fw-la qua_fw-la via_fw-la qua_fw-la vi_fw-la quibus_fw-la incrementis_fw-la be_v the_o workman_n all_o asleep_a be_v they_o all_o so_o cold_a and_o negligent_a for_o by_o this_o argument_n the_o tare_n may_v have_v be_v prove_v to_o be_v good_a corn_n but_o it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o he_o to_o espy_v they_o when_o he_o come_v into_o the_o field_n and_o to_o discern_v they_o from_o the_o wheat_n and_o to_o give_v charge_n to_o his_o servant_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o bind_v they_o up_o therewith_o and_o thus_o come_v the_o change_n of_o religion_n into_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o these_o tare_n be_v sow_v in_o the_o husbandman_n field_n 7_o thus_o i_o have_v sufficient_o show_v that_o forsomuch_o as_o we_o find_v the_o romish_a faith_n to_o be_v against_o the_o scripture_n we_o have_v just_o condemn_v it_o as_o heresy_n against_o the_o catholic_a faith_n though_o we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o note_v any_o time_n when_o it_o begin_v or_o person_n that_o first_o deliver_v it_o or_o people_n that_o resist_v it_o but_o we_o have_v another_o issue_n with_o our_o adversary_n about_o the_o second_o proposition_n wherein_o the_o jesuite_n you_o see_v with_o much_o confidence_n assume_v it_o that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o proof_n make_v of_o any_o time_n or_o person_n wherein_o his_o church_n alter_v the_o ancient_a faith_n he_o bid_v we_o show_v who_o bring_v in_o the_o profession_n of_o a_o new_a faith_n and_o when_o the_o old_a fail_v he_o ask_v at_o what_o time_n under_o what_o pope_n what_o rumour_n what_o lamentation_n do_v it_o breed_v what_o resistance_n be_v make_v against_o it_o what_o historiographer_n write_v it_o do_v none_o oppose_v themselves_o and_o so_o conclude_v that_o no_o mention_n be_v make_v in_o any_o story_n that_o such_o a_o alteration_n be_v it_o be_v sure_a there_o be_v no_o such_o at_o all_o in_o which_o word_n contain_v the_o sum_n of_o all_o that_o remain_v in_o this_o section_n he_o require_v we_o to_o show_v two_o point_n first_o when_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n change_v her_o religion_n and_o who_o they_o be_v therein_o that_o bring_v in_o a_o new_a faith_n next_o what_o resistance_n be_v make_v against_o she_o when_o she_o do_v so_o wherein_o i_o be_o resolve_v the_o jesuite_n speak_v against_o his_o own_o knowledge_n only_o to_o set_v a_o good_a face_n on_o the_o matter_n for_o be_v it_o possible_a he_o shall_v be_v so_o ignorant_a as_o to_o imagine_v these_o demand_n can_v be_v satisfy_v such_o as_o he_o be_v may_v speak_v bold_o and_o peremptory_o but_o they_o that_o trust_v they_o will_v be_v deceive_v as_o i_o will_v plain_o show_v in_o the_o two_o next_o digression_n wherein_o i_o will_v out_o of_o sufficient_a record_n make_v direct_a proof_n first_o that_o the_o begin_n of_o many_o principal_a point_n of_o the_o romish_a faith_n may_v be_v show_v both_o concern_v the_o time_n and_o the_o person_n that_o begin_v they_o second_o that_o in_o all_o age_n the_o corruption_n of_o that_o church_n have_v be_v resist_v as_o they_o come_v in_o the_o show_v of_o which_o two_o point_n will_v full_o answer_v all_o that_o be_v contain_v in_o this_o section_n digression_n 51._o name_v seven_o point_n of_o the_o popish_a religion_n with_o the_o time_n when_o and_o manner_n how_o they_o gate_n into_o the_o church_n thereby_o to_o show_v that_o there_o be_v sufficient_a record_n to_o detect_v the_o novelty_n of_o the_o present_a roman_a faith_n 8_o this_o point_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o pardon_n be_v so_o clear_a that_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v for_o the_o most_o learned_a papist_n that_o be_v acknowledge_v the_o use_n of_o they_o to_o be_v come_v very_o late_o into_o the_o church_n which_o be_v so_o it_o must_v necessary_o be_v grant_v there_o be_v some_o thing_n alter_v and_o begin_v among_o they_o since_o the_o apostle_n time_n durand_n 3._o durand_n 4._o d._n 20._o q._n 3._o say_v there_o be_v few_o thing_n to_o be_v affirm_v for_o certainty_n concern_v pardon_n because_o the_o scripture_n speak_v not_o express_o of_o they_o and_o the_o saint_n ambrose_n hilary_n austin_n jerome_n speak_v not_o of_o they_o at_o all_o caietan_n 1._o caietan_n tract_n de_fw-fr indulg_n c._n 1._o say_v there_o can_v no_o certainty_n be_v find_v touch_v the_o beginning_n of_o pardon_n there_o be_v no_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n or_o ancient_a father_n greek_a or_o latin_a that_o bring_v it_o to_o our_o knowledge_n alphonsus_n indulgen_n alphonsus_n haeres_fw-la verbo_fw-la indulgen_n say_v their_o use_n seem_v to_o have_v come_v but_o late_o into_o the_o church_n and_o henriquez_n the_o jesuite_n scol_n jesuite_n sum._n moral_a l._n 7._o c._n 3._o scol_n say_v there_o be_v certain_a late_a divine_n which_o affirm_v it_o be_v no_o rashness_n if_o a_o man_n say_v the_o use_n and_o practice_v of_o indulgence_n be_v not_o from_o the_o apostle_n time_n if_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o they_o in_o the_o scripture_n nor_o father_n nor_o in_o the_o ancient_a church_n how_o can_v it_o be_v shift_v off_o but_o they_o have_v a_o late_a beginning_n and_o so_o be_v not_o catholic_a 9_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n usurp_v over_o other_o bishop_n be_v in_o boniface_n the_o three_o for_o fr._n duarenus_n a_o papist_n 10._o papist_n de_fw-fr sacris_fw-la eccl_n benefic_n l._n 1._o c._n 10._o write_v that_o with_o great_a ado_n he_o obtain_v of_o phocas_n that_o he_o may_v be_v make_v the_o universal_a and_o ecumenical_a bishop_n which_o authority_n say_v he_o his_o successor_n have_v wonderful_o enlarge_v whereas_o in_o the_o beginning_n as_o 1._o as_o respon_n de_fw-fr privileg_n patriar_fw-la charum_fw-la in_o jure_fw-la graecoroman_n tom_fw-mi 1._o balsamon_n a_o greek_a writer_n witness_v the_o five_o patriarch_n be_v of_o equal_a honour_n and_o stand_v all_o in_o steed_n of_o one_o head_n over_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n the_o beginning_n of_o his_o supremacy_n over_o counsel_n be_v of_o late_a since_o the_o counsel_n of_o 5._o of_o sess_n 4._o &_o 5._o constance_n and_o 18._o and_o sess_n 2_o &_o 18._o basil_n decree_v within_o these_o hundred_o year_n in_o the_o council_n of_o 11._o of_o sess_n 11._o lateran_n by_o a_o few_o italian_a bishop_n whereas_o in_o the_o ancient_a church_n it_o be_v otherwise_o for_o cedrenus_n a_o greek_a historiographer_n 〈◊〉_d historiographer_n annal._n p._n 361._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d write_v that_o the_o ecumenical_a or_o general_a counsel_n be_v so_o call_v for_o that_o by_o the_o command_n of_o the_o emperor_n the_o chief_a bishop_n throughout_o the_o roman_a empire_n be_v assemble_v and_o 25._o and_o concord_n l._n 2._o c._n 25._o cusanus_fw-la a_o late_a cardinal_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n say_v how_o all_o the_o eight_o general_a counsel_n be_v gather_v by_o the_o emperor_n the_o beginning_n of_o his_o supremacy_n claim_v over_o prince_n be_v but_o of_o late_a for_o sigebert_n mention_v the_o pope_n proceed_v against_o henry_n the_o emperor_n about_o 300._o year_n since_o 470._o since_o chron._n ann_n 1088._o pag._n 129._o idem_fw-la auentin_n annal_n boio_fw-la l._n 5._o pag._n 470._o say_v be_v it_o speak_v with_o the_o leave_n of_o all_o good_a man_n this_o novelty_n that_o i_o say_v not_o heresy_n have_v not_o as_o yet_o spring_v up_o in_o the_o world_n that_o god_n priest_n shall_v teach_v the_o people_n that_o they_o owe_v no_o subjection_n to_o evil_a prince_n and_o though_o they_o have_v swear_v allegiance_n to_o he_o yet_o they_o owe_v he_o no_o fidelity_n neither_o shall_v be_v count_v perjure_a which_o think_v against_o the_o king_n yea_o he_o that_o obey_v he_o shall_v be_v count_v for_o excommunicate_v and_o he_o that_o do_v against_o the_o king_n shall_v be_v absolve_v from_o the_o guilt_n of_o injustice_n and_o perjury_n in_o which_o word_n we_o see_v how_o a_o friar_n of_o their_o own_o 300._o year_n since_o call_v that_o novelty_n and_o heresy_n that_o now_o be_v cherish_v among_o our_o adversary_n and_o maintain_v for_o a_o piece_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n and_o the_o jesuite_n possible_a call_v campian_n a_o glorious_a martyr_n because_o he_o be_v tie_v up_o for_o the_o practice_n thereof_o for_o it_o be_v well_o enough_o know_v that_o neither_o he_o nor_o any_o other_o priest_n be_v ever_o execute_v in_o the_o queen_n time_n but_o only_o for_o publish_v and_o practise_v that_o which_o here_o you_o see_v sigebert_n call_v novelty_n beside_o the_o pope_n clawback_n be_v it_o because_o they_o be_v beggarly_a both_o in_o wealth_n and_o learning_n as_o fr._n victoria_n 39_o victoria_n relect._n 1._o de_fw-fr potest_fw-la eccles_n pag._n 39_o note_v of_o they_o now_o adays_o publish_v in_o print_n 131._o print_n carer_n potest_fw-la rom._n pont._n l_o 2._o
yet_o he_o condemn_v all_o worship_n of_o they_o as_o sin_n which_o he_o can_v not_o have_v do_v if_o the_o church_n have_v believe_v the_o contrary_n and_o the_o proceed_n of_o the_o council_n of_o frankford_n against_o the_o nicen_n immediate_o after_o it_o be_v do_v with_o the_o mislike_n that_o most_o man_n then_o live_v have_v thereof_o and_o the_o general_a grudge_n of_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n against_o it_o show_v this_o to_o be_v true_a that_o i_o say_v 1549._o say_v opus_fw-la illustriss_n caroli_n magni_fw-la etc._n etc._n an._n 1549._o the_o book_n of_o charles_n the_o great_a 31._o great_a bell._n the_o imag_n c._n 14._o baron_fw-fr a_o 794._o nu_fw-la 31._o contain_v the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n of_o frankford_n and_o confute_v that_o of_o nice_n be_v extant_a and_o as_o soon_o as_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o nicen_n council_n come_v abroad_o and_o be_v know_v the_o faithful_a refuse_v it_o and_o speak_v against_o it_o as_o against_o a_o new_a conceit_n never_o hear_v of_o before_o 792._o before_o hoveden_n continuat_fw-la bedae_n ann_n 792._o a_o good_a historiographer_n write_v that_o charles_n the_o king_n of_o france_n send_v over_o into_o england_n a_o book_n contain_v the_o act_n of_o a_o synod_n he_o mean_v the_o second_o nicen_n council_n direct_v to_o he_o from_o constantinople_n wherein_o out_o alas_o for_o grief_n many_o thing_n be_v find_v inconvenient_a and_o contrary_a to_o the_o true_a faith_n special_o because_o by_o the_o uniform_a consent_n almost_o of_o all_o the_o eastern_a bishop_n no_o less_o than_o three_o hunndred_n or_o more_o it_o be_v confirm_v that_o image_n shall_v be_v adore_v which_o thing_n god_n church_n altogether_o detest_v against_o which_o book_n albinus_n write_v a_o epistle_n marvellous_o confirm_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o together_o with_o the_o book_n offer_v it_o to_o the_o king_n of_o france_n in_o the_o name_n of_o our_o bishop_n and_o noble_n the_o bishop_n of_o rheims_n live_v at_o the_o same_o time_n 564._o time_n refert_fw-la alan_n cope_n dial_n 4._o c._n 18._o p._n 564._o write_v thus_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o emperor_n charles_n by_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n there_o be_v a_o general_a council_n celebrate_v the_o say_a emperor_n call_v it_o wherein_z according_a to_o the_o path_n way_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o tradition_n of_o our_o ancestor_n that_o false_a synod_n of_o the_o greek_n be_v destroy_v and_o whole_o abrogate_a and_o the_o bishop_n of_o orleans_n at_o the_o same_o time_n likewise_o 1._o likewise_o jonas_n the_o cult_a imag_n lib._n 1._o write_v that_o the_o image_n of_o saint_n and_o story_n of_o divine_a thing_n may_v be_v paint_v in_o the_o church_n not_o to_o be_v worship_v but_o to_o be_v a_o ornament_n and_o to_o bring_v into_o the_o mind_n of_o simple_a people_n thing_n do_v and_o pass_v but_o say_v he_o to_o adore_v the_o creature_n or_o to_o give_v it_o any_o portion_n of_o divine_a honour_n we_o count_v a_o vile_a wickedness_n and_o detest_v the_o doer_n of_o such_o a_o wickedness_n and_o with_o open_a mouth_n we_o proclaim_v he_o worthy_a to_o be_v accurse_v will_v so_o great_a peer_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o so_o universal_o have_v thus_o bitter_o tax_v the_o nicen_n council_n if_o it_o have_v not_o bring_v in_o and_o begin_v a_o new_a doctrine_n do_v the_o christian_a world_n thus_o exclaim_v when_o nothing_o be_v alter_v weigh_v their_o word_n well_o and_o you_o will_v not_o think_v it_o 13_o the_o doctrine_n touch_v the_o merit_n of_o work_n be_v begin_v late_o by_o the_o schoolman_n for_o waldensis_n 30_o waldensis_n sacramental_a tit_n 1._o cap._n 7._o p._n 30_o say_v it_o be_v pelagianisme_n and_o charge_v they_o to_o have_v invent_v the_o term_n of_o condignity_n and_o congruity_n thereby_o to_o utter_v it_o and_o it_o may_v easy_o be_v know_v to_o be_v to_o by_o this_o that_o the_o say_v schoolman_n agree_v no_o better_o in_o it_o for_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a they_o shall_v be_v so_o contrary_a one_o to_o another_o therein_o if_o it_o have_v be_v a_o catholic_a truth_n receive_v from_o the_o begin_n without_o alteration_n 14_o the_o mass_n begin_v not_o all_o at_o once_o but_o by_o degree_n for_o the_o latin_a language_n come_v not_o in_o where_o the_o people_n understand_v it_o not_o till_o the_o time_n of_o gregory_n six_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n as_o 153._o as_o declarat_fw-la ad_fw-la censur_fw-la theol_fw-it paris_n p._n 153._o erasmus_n affirm_v the_o church_n in_o former_a time_n use_v the_o service_n in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n the_o transubstantiation_n now_o believe_v to_o be_v therein_o be_v acknowledge_v by_o scotus_n and_o biel_n to_o be_v no_o elder_a than_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n for_o so_o c._n so_o tom._n 3._o do_v 50_o s●ct_n 1._o p._n 628._o c._n suarez_n the_o jesuite_n report_v of_o they_o which_o report_n our_o adversary_n be_v bind_v to_o credit_n come_v from_o the_o mouth_n of_o so_o great_a a_o man_n of_o their_o own_o side_n the_o sacrifice_n conceit_v to_o be_v make_v therein_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o diverse_a learned_a papist_n be_v not_o do_v by_o christ_n for_o 8._o for_o instit_fw-la moral_a l._n 1●_n c._n 8._o azorius_fw-la the_o jesuite_n write_v that_o some_o catholic_n deny_v that_o christ_n offer_v up_o himself_o under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n in_o his_o last_o supper_n the_o which_o be_v true_a indeed_o and_o thence_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o opinion_n of_o such_o a_o sacrifice_n be_v not_o found_v on_o christ_n deed_n but_o upon_o some_o late_a invention_n since_o he_o and_o it_o be_v very_o plain_a that_o thomas_n of_o aquin_n three_o hundred_o year_n since_o know_v it_o not_o for_o 1._o for_o qu._n 83._o art_n 1._o dispute_v how_o christ_n be_v sacrifice_v in_o the_o eucharist_n he_o answer_v that_o he_o be_v say_v so_o to_o be_v in_o two_o respect_n first_o because_o the_o ministration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v a_o image_n represent_v the_o passion_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v his_o true_a immolation_n and_o image_n use_v to_o be_v call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o those_o thing_n whereof_o they_o be_v image_n second_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o effect_n of_o his_o passion_n because_o by_o the_o sacrament_n we_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o fruit_n of_o his_o passion_n and_o say_v he_o as_o concern_v this_o second_o manner_n it_o be_v proper_a to_o this_o sacrament_n that_o christ_n be_v immolate_a or_o sacrifice_v therein_o these_o reason_n of_o he_o show_v that_o he_o know_v no_o such_o kind_n of_o sacrifice_n as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n now_o defend_v because_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v in_o his_o opinion_n but_o a_o image_n of_o the_o true_a sacrifice_n of_o christ_n he_o can_v think_v it_o to_o be_v no_o true_a sacrifice_n univocal_o so_o call_v but_o only_o by_o external_a relation_n and_o say_v again_o that_o christ_n be_v sacrifice_v therein_o by_o reason_n we_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o fruit_n of_o his_o passion_n he_o show_v clear_o he_o know_v no_o real_a sacrifice_n because_o we_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o that_o even_a in_o baptism_n also_o where_o no_o man_n imagine_v christ_n to_o be_v sacrifice_v they_o that_o be_v acquaint_v with_o thomas_n manner_n of_o writing_n will_v soon_o perceive_v that_o have_v he_o know_v nor_o believe_v such_o a_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o mass_n as_o be_v now_o conceit_a he_o will_v have_v utter_v it_o in_o other_o more_o effectual_a term_n and_o express_v it_o as_o full_o as_o the_o jesuite_n have_v do_v since_o he_o and_o touch_v the_o outward_a form_n of_o the_o mass_n i_o need_v say_v no_o more_o than_o cusanus_fw-la the_o cardinal_n have_v confess_v 857._o confess_v ep_v 7._o p._n 857._o he_o say_v the_o apostle_n make_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n by_o say_v the_o pater_fw-la noster_fw-la as_o saint_n gregory_n affirm_v and_o that_o diverse_a form_n be_v use_v before_o one_o scolasticus_fw-la come_v who_o compose_v that_o which_o at_o this_o day_n our_o church_n use_v the_o which_o also_o be_v diverse_a according_a to_o the_o diversity_n of_o place_n but_o we_o which_o live_v under_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v receive_v the_o order_n of_o the_o mass_n from_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n themselves_o who_o successive_o have_v add_v thereunto_o one_o after_o another_o and_o so_o it_o come_v to_o be_v a_o perfect_a service_n or_o liturgy_n this_o confession_n be_v enough_o to_o show_v when_o many_o substantial_a point_n be_v bring_v against_o former_a antiquity_n into_o the_o mass_n for_o at_o this_o day_n the_o liturgy_n and_o rite_n thereof_o contain_v many_o substantial_a error_n invocation_n of_o the_o dead_a commemoration_n and_o intercession_n for_o soul_n in_o purgatory_n adoration_n cross_v etc._n etc._n all_o which_o by_o
the_o apostle_n time_n increase_v by_o the_o heresy_n and_o ignorance_n and_o superstition_n of_o some_o that_o daily_o corrupt_v 7._o corrupt_v euseb_n hist_o l._n 3._o c._n 32._o &_o l._n 4._o c._n 22._o niceph._n l._n 4._o c._n 7._o the_o truth_n for_o the_o story_n remember_v we_o of_o a_o say_n of_o hegesippus_n that_o the_o church_n continue_v a_o virgin_n undefiled_a as_o long_o as_o the_o apostle_n live_v but_o when_o that_o generation_n be_v pass_v the_o conspiracy_n of_o wicked_a heresy_n through_o the_o seducement_n of_o those_o which_o teach_v other_o doctrine_n take_v beginning_n but_o hereof_o 3.18_o hereof_o act._n 20.28_o phil._n 3.18_o the_o apostle_n give_v warning_n even_o with_o tear_n and_o 70._o and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d basil_n ep_v 70._o the_o ancient_a father_n complain_v that_o we_o may_v see_v the_o papacy_n to_o have_v be_v resist_v when_o it_o be_v yet_o in_o the_o cockatrice_n egg_n 21_o after_o 600._o year_n be_v expire_v that_o the_o several_a point_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n begin_v one_o after_o another_o to_o be_v more_o gross_o corrupt_v and_o change_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o first_o fifty_o i_o name_v imago_fw-la name_v alphons_n v._o imago_fw-la serenus_n the_o bishop_n of_o marsil_n in_o france_n who_o break_v the_o image_n that_o begin_v to_o be_v set_v up_o in_o his_o diocese_n and_o gregory_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n 32.34.38.39_o rome_n l._n 4._o ep_n 32.34.38.39_o resist_v the_o supremacy_n and_o 3._o and_o plat._n bonif._n 3._o the_o whole_a greek_a church_n complain_v when_o phocas_n have_v first_o confer_v it_o on_o boniface_n 22_o after_o 650._o to_o 700_o i_o name_v the_o sixth_o general_a council_n 13._o council_n sext._n syn._n can._n 13._o decree_a the_o marriage_n of_o priest_n against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n labour_v to_o restrain_v it_o 82._o it_o carranz_n in_o can._n 82._o and_o forbid_v to_o make_v the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o likeness_n of_o a_o dove_n 1._o dove_n council_n bracar_n 3._o c._n 1._o the_o council_n hold_v in_o portugal_n where_o the_o cup_n be_v appoint_v to_o be_v minister_v to_o the_o people_n in_o the_o sacrament_n against_o the_o practice_n of_o some_o that_o use_v to_o dip_v the_o bread_n and_o so_o give_v it_o which_o be_v one_o beginning_n of_o the_o half_a communion_n 23_o after_o 700._o to_o 750_o i_o name_v 84._o name_v synod_n c._n 138._o zon._n tom_n 3._o pag._n 84._o the_o general_a council_n of_o constantinople_n under_o leo_n isaurus_n against_o image_n 633._o image_n illyric_n catal_a test_n tom_fw-mi 1._o pag._n 633._o and_o clemens_n scotus_n and_o adelbartus_n who_o preach_v against_o the_o supremacy_n tradition_n image_n &_o in_o the_o defence_n of_o priest_n marriage_n also_o against_o purgatory_n and_o mass_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o be_v therefore_o persecute_v by_o zachary_n the_o pope_n which_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o in_o some_o history_n they_o be_v so_o hardly_o censure_v 24_o after_o 750._o to_o 800_o i_o name_v 141._o name_v zon._n tom_n 3._o pag._n 88_o synod_n c._n 141._o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n under_o constantinus_n copronymus_n and_o 2._o and_o rhegino_n chro_fw-la l._n 2._o of_o frankford_n under_o charles_n the_o great_a against_o image_n and_o the_o book_n yet_o extant_a that_o he_o cause_v to_o be_v make_v against_o the_o second_o nicene_n council_n with_o another_o set_v forth_o by_o ludovicus_n his_o son_n to_o the_o same_o effect_n both_o which_o be_v to_o be_v see_v at_o this_o day_n 25_o after_o 800._o to_o 850_o i_o name_v joannes_n scotus_n a_o great_a learned_a man_n 1._o man_n danae_n resp_n de_fw-fr euchar._n l._n 1._o c._n 1._o who_o resist_v the_o real_a presence_n which_o in_o that_o time_n some_o private_a man_n begin_v to_o set_v on_o foot_n be_v therefore_o murder_v the_o same_o time_n bertram_n also_o write_v against_o it_o who_o book_n be_v extant_a tr●heinius_n script_n tr●heinius_n catal._n script_n say_v of_o he_o that_o he_o be_v a_o man_n very_o skilful_a in_o the_o scripture_n exceed_o learned_a and_o of_o a_o holy_a life_n imag_n life_n jonas_n aurel._n the_o cult_a imag_n claudius_n the_o bishop_n of_o tower_n in_o france_n resist_v image_n worship_n of_o saint_n and_o pilgrimage_n 2._o pilgrimage_n anast_n vit_fw-mi pont._n in_o serg._n 2._o lotharius_n the_o emperor_n reduce_v the_o pope_n to_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o empire_n for_o which_o cause_n he_o send_v three_o archbishop_n twenty_o bishop_n and_o diverse_a noble_a man_n to_o rome_n who_o dispute_v against_o he_o and_o confute_v he_o 26_o after_o 850._o to_o 900_o i_o name_v volutianus_n a_o bishop_n that_o write_v to_o nicolas_n the_o first_o in_o the_o defence_n of_o priest_n marriage_n michael_n marriage_n ep._n nicol_n ad_fw-la michael_n michael_n the_o emperor_n and_o phorius_fw-la the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n resist_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n 1_o supremacy_n anast_n in_o nicol_n 1_o as_o also_o do_v the_o bishop_n of_o ravenna_n 27_o after_o 900._o to_o 950_o and_o so_o forward_o such_o abuse_n be_v note_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o 68_o that_o fascic_fw-la temp_n pag._n 68_o a_o ancient_a history_n mention_v the_o same_o complain_v alas_o alas_o lord_n god_n how_o be_v gold_n obscure_v and_o the_o colour_n change_v what_o offence_n do_v we_o read_v to_o have_v happen_v about_o these_o time_n even_o in_o the_o holy_a apostolic_a seat_n which_o hitherto_o with_o such_o zeal_n thou_o preserue_v what_o contention_n emulation_n sect_n envy_n ambition_n intrusion_n persecution_n o_o the_o worst_a time_n that_o ever_o be_v wherein_o the_o holy_a fail_v and_o truth_n be_v diminish_v from_o the_o son_n of_o man_n to_o the_o same_o effect_n 8._o effect_n an._n 912._o nu_fw-la 8._o write_v baronius_n what_o be_v then_o the_o face_n of_o the_o holy_a roman_a church_n how_o filthy_a be_v it_o when_o potent_a and_o withal_o base_a whore_n bear_v all_o the_o sway_n at_o rome_n at_o who_o lust_n sea_n be_v change_v bishop_n be_v bestow_v and_o that_o which_o be_v horrible_a to_o hear_v and_o not_o to_o be_v utter_v their_o lover_n be_v thrust_v into_o saint_n peter_n chair_n in_o such_o time_n as_o these_o be_v the_o reader_n may_v easy_o think_v there_o be_v matter_n enough_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o deserve_a resistance_n as_o 1039._o as_o osbern_n vit_fw-mi s._n odonis_n quem_fw-la refert_fw-la fox_n in_o martyrol_n pag._n 1039._o certain_a of_o the_o english_a clergy_n maintain_v the_o sacrament_n to_o be_v only_o a_o figure_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n against_o the_o real_a presence_n then_o increase_v 28_o after_o 950._o to_o 1000_o we_o have_v 963._o have_v sigon_n reg._n ital._n l._n 7._o a_o 963._o otho_n the_o great_a that_o depose_v john_n the_o pope_n and_o assume_v into_o his_o hand_n the_o nominate_n and_o make_v of_o pope_n hereafter_o which_o be_v a_o manifest_a resistance_n make_v against_o the_o growth_n of_o the_o primacy_n aelfr_n primacy_n homil._n saxon_n aelfr_n aelfricus_fw-la the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n that_o preach_v and_o publish_v his_o homily_n against_o the_o real_a presence_n come_v in_o and_o i_o name_v 22._o name_v refert_fw-la baron_n a_o 992._o nu_fw-la 22._o arnulphus_n who_o in_o a_o synod_n hold_v at_o rheims_n note_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v antichrist_n o_o rome_n say_v he_o to_o be_v lament_v which_o to_o our_o ancestor_n yeeld_v shine_a light_n of_o father_n in_o our_o time_n send_v monstrous_a darkness_n which_o in_o the_o age_n to_o come_v shall_v be_v infamous_a what_o o_o you_o reverend_a father_n what_o i_o say_v think_v you_o he_o to_o be_v which_o sit_v thus_o in_o a_o lofty_a throne_n in_o purple_a robe_n and_o glitter_a gold_n certain_o if_o he_o be_v void_a of_o charity_n lift_v and_o puff_v up_o only_o with_o knowledge_n he_o be_v antichrist_n sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n and_o show_v himself_o as_o if_o he_o be_v god_n but_o if_o he_o want_v both_o charity_n and_o knowledge_n then_o be_v he_o a_o idol_n and_o to_o seek_v to_o he_o for_o answer_n be_v to_o inquire_v of_o the_o marble_n stone_n 29_o after_o 1000_o to_o 1050_o i_o name_v rodulfus_n ardeus_n preach_v against_o 1._o against_o homil._n dominic_n in_o sept._n &_o 18._o dominic_n post_fw-la trin._n ho._n 1._o merit_n and_o 2._o and_o 18._o dom_fw-la trin._n hom_n 2._o ability_n to_o keep_v the_o law_n baron_n law_n his_fw-la l._n 2._o c._n 4._o quem_fw-la refert_fw-la baron_n glaber_n rodulphus_fw-la that_o write_v how_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v have_v nothing_o to_o do_v in_o another_o man_n diocese_n the_o which_o he_o also_o say_v be_v the_o opinion_n of_o all_o the_o prelate_n in_o france_n 5._o france_n baron_fw-fr a_o 100_o 4._o nu_fw-la 5._o leuthericus_fw-la a_o archbishop_n in_o france_n deny_v the_o real_a presence_n 30_o after_o 1050._o to_o 1100_o i_o name_v gl._n name_v d._n
flesh_n of_o christ_n §_o 52._o four_o the_o protestant_n church_n be_v not_o apostolic_a because_o they_o can_v derive_v their_o pedigree_n lineal_o without_o interruption_n from_o the_o apostle_n as_o the_o roman_a church_n can_v from_o s._n peter_n but_o be_v enforce_v to_o acknowledge_v some_o other_o as_o luther_n or_o caluin_n or_o some_o such_o from_o who_o mediate_o or_o immediate_o they_o have_v receive_v by_o succession_n the_o preacher_n of_o their_o faith_n luther_n and_o caluin_n themselves_o be_v not_o send_v of_o any_o to_o teach_v this_o new_a faith_n nor_o succeed_v lawful_o to_o any_o apostolic_a bishop_n or_o pastor_n but_o be_v as_o optatus_n milevitanus_fw-la say_fw-la lib._n 2._o contra_fw-la parmen_fw-la victor_n the_o donatist_n a_o heretic_n be_v filii_fw-la sine_fw-la patre_fw-la &_o discipuli_fw-la sine_fw-la magistro_fw-la child_n without_o a_o father_n scholar_n without_o a_o master_n or_o as_o s._n cyprian_n lib._n 1._o epist_n write_v of_o novatus_fw-la nemini_fw-la succ●dentes_fw-la à_fw-la seipsis_fw-la episcopi_fw-la ordinati_fw-la sunt_fw-la succeed_v to_o none_o be_v ordain_v bishop_n of_o themselves_o the_o answer_n 1_o our_o answer_n be_v that_o the_o succession_n require_v to_o make_v a_o church_n apostolic_a must_v be_v define_v by_o the_o doctrine_n and_o not_o by_o the_o place_n or_o person_n that_o be_v to_o say_v they_o must_v be_v repute_v the_o apostle_n successor_n which_o believe_v the_o apostle_n doctrine_n although_o they_o have_v not_o this_o outward_a succession_n of_o pastor_n visible_o follow_v one_o another_o in_o one_o place_n throughout_o all_o age_n as_o the_o jesuite_n say_v it_o be_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o saint_n paul_n 2.20_o paul_n ephes_n 2.20_o tell_v the_o ephesian_n they_o be_v build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n in_o respect_n of_o their_o call_n to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o yet_o they_o have_v not_o lineal_o as_o the_o jesuite_n mean_v it_o descend_v from_o the_o prophet_n and_o nazianzene_n say_v athan._n say_v laud._n athan._n succession_n in_o godliness_n be_v proper_o to_o be_v account_v succession_n for_o he_o that_o hold_v the_o same_o doctrine_n be_v also_o partaker_n of_o the_o same_o succession_n as_o he_o that_o be_v against_o the_o doctrine_n must_v be_v repute_v to_o be_v also_o out_o of_o the_o succession_n which_o be_v grant_v the_o jesuite_n discourse_n about_o succession_n be_v soon_o answer_v to_o the_o same_o effect_n speak_v his_o own_o facile_fw-la own_o d._n 4._o non_fw-fr est_fw-fr facile_fw-la canon_n they_o be_v not_o the_o child_n of_o the_o saint_n that_o sit_v in_o their_o place_n but_o which_o do_v their_o work_n yea_o the_o jesuite_n confess_v this_o for_o possevine_a 11._o possevine_a not._n verbi_fw-la dei_fw-la pag._n 328._o ad_fw-la interrog_n 11._o write_v that_o the_o true_a church_n be_v call_v apostolic_a not_o only_o for_o the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n from_o the_o apostle_n but_o also_o for_o the_o consanguinity_n of_o doctrine_n and_o gregory_n of_o valenza_n 4._o valenza_n tom._n 3._o pag._n 141._o proprietas_fw-la 4._o tell_v why_o the_o church_n be_v call_v apostolic_a in_o the_o nicene_n creed_n give_v only_o three_o reason_n first_o because_o it_o begin_v in_o the_o apostle_n next_o because_o by_o they_o it_o be_v spread_v all_o over_o the_o world_n three_o because_o it_o still_o follow_v their_o faith_n and_o authority_n waldensis_n 18._o waldensis_n tom._n 1._o doctrinal_a l._n 2._o art_n 2._o cap._n 18._o say_v the_o apostle_n fill_v the_o whole_a church_n with_o wholesome_a doctrine_n and_o in_o that_o respect_n the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n be_v also_o call_v apostolic_a by_o all_o which_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o for_o the_o be_v of_o a_o apostolic_a church_n it_o be_v sufficient_a if_o it_o hold_v the_o apostle_n faith_n though_o it_o want_v the_o jesuite_n succession_n mention_v 2_o whence_o it_o follow_v that_o although_o it_o be_v grant_v the_o roman_a church_n can_v show_v a_o perpetual_a succession_n of_o prelate_n without_o interruption_n from_o s._n peter_n which_o the_o jesuit_n say_v may_v be_v show_v but_o digress_v but_o see_v digress_v i_o deny_v yet_o be_v it_o not_o thereby_o prove_v apostolic_a unless_o these_o prelate_n have_v also_o retain_v s._n peter_n doctrine_n that_o the_o reader_n may_v see_v all_o other_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n must_v be_v try_v by_o the_o doctrine_n and_o that_o the_o jesuit_n succession_n and_o unity_n and_o universality_n prove_v nothing_o unless_o the_o true_a faith_n concur_v therewith_o 3_o whence_o it_o follow_v again_o that_o it_o be_v no_o disadvantage_n to_o the_o protestant_a church_n if_o hold_v the_o apostle_n doctrine_n they_o want_v external_a succession_n of_o place_n &_o person_n such_o as_o the_o jesuite_n boast_v of_o because_o the_o apostolicknesse_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o to_o be_v define_v by_o it_o but_o wheresoever_o the_o true_a faith_n contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n be_v profess_v and_o embrace_v there_o be_v the_o whole_a and_o full_a nature_n of_o a_o apostolic_a church_n 4_o and_o so_o i_o answer_v the_o jesuite_n discourse_n in_o particular_a that_o we_o can_v derive_v our_o faith_n from_o the_o apostle_n and_o that_o without_o interruption_n in_o that_o to_o this_o day_n it_o be_v never_o interrupt_v though_o such_o as_o succeed_v visible_o in_o bishop_n throne_n do_v not_o always_o profess_v it_o it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o their_o malice_n can_v never_o extinguish_v it_o and_o the_o professor_n and_o teacher_n thereof_o live_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n itself_o which_o beside_o all_o other_o testimony_n we_o know_v by_o this_o that_o it_o be_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o can_v be_v extinguish_v but_o grow_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o all_o her_o enemy_n 5_o and_o touch_v luther_n and_o caluin_n i_o answer_v luther_n touch_v the_o call_n of_o luther_n that_o whatsoever_o be_v say_v against_o they_o depend_v upon_o another_o point_n which_o be_v the_o faith_n that_o they_o teach_v for_o if_o that_o be_v the_o truth_n they_o no_o doubt_n they_o be_v send_v of_o god_n to_o teach_v it_o &_o we_o hear_v they_o receive_v it_o of_o they_o no_o otherwise_o then_o god_n faithful_a people_n be_v bind_v to_o receive_v the_o gospel_n of_o their_o pastor_n and_o whereas_o he_o say_v they_o succeed_v no_o apostolic_a bishop_n neither_o have_v any_o calling_n to_o preach_v that_o new_a faith_n i_o answer_v that_o for_o the_o external_a succession_n whereof_o i_o have_v speak_v we_o care_v not_o it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o in_o doctrine_n they_o succeed_v the_o apostle_n and_o primitive_a church_n and_o those_o faithful_a witness_n which_o in_o all_o age_n since_o embrace_v the_o same_o in_o persecution_n though_o they_o succeed_v not_o in_o that_o open_a manner_n that_o be_v use_v afore_o heresy_n and_o persecution_n grow_v and_o albeit_o the_o roman_a church_n will_v not_o hear_v they_o yet_o have_v they_o a_o lawful_a call_n first_o inward_o from_o god_n who_o stir_v they_o up_o give_v they_o gift_n direct_v they_o by_o his_o spirit_n and_o bless_v their_o labour_n then_o outward_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n itself_o where_o they_o be_v create_v doctor_n of_o divinity_n and_o pastor_n to_o teach_v the_o people_n as_o they_o be_v baptize_v by_o virtue_n whereof_o they_o may_v lawful_o preach_v afterward_o that_o which_o by_o the_o scripture_n they_o find_v to_o be_v the_o truth_n and_o do_v lineal_o succeed_v the_o true_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n that_o live_v before_o they_o if_o it_o be_v object_v that_o have_v their_o call_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n it_o will_v follow_v thereupon_o that_o only_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o true_a church_n this_o be_v easy_o answer_v by_o deny_v the_o consequence_n for_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o the_o papacy_n be_v mingle_v together_o and_o be_v both_o call_v by_o one_o name_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n by_o reason_n that_o in_o diverse_a thing_n that_o be_v good_a and_o indifferent_a they_o communicate_v so_o that_o even_o in_o the_o papacy_n many_o of_o the_o thing_n of_o god_n church_n remain_v as_o the_o scripture_n baptism_n and_o these_o calling_n which_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o clergy_n occupy_v do_v as_o pirate_n that_o occupy_v another_o man_n ship_n and_o his_o good_n therein_o and_o therefore_o confer_v baptism_n and_o calling_n to_o diverse_a person_n that_o afterward_o forsake_v the_o pope_n the_o say_a person_n notwithstanding_o right_o inherit_v they_o as_o the_o true_a church_n good_n which_o the_o papacy_n usurp_v and_o whereas_o the_o jesuite_n say_v they_o be_v not_o send_v to_o preach_v this_o new_a faith_n i_o answer_v he_o that_o this_o new_a faith_n as_o he_o style_v it_o be_v the_o true_a faith_n &_o therefore_o even_o that_o send_v which_o they_o have_v bind_v they_o to_o preach_v it_o though_o at_o the_o first_o it_o reveal_v it_o not_o
thereof_o but_o suffer_v itself_o to_o fall_v into_o opinion_n and_o with_o the_o conceit_n thereof_o as_o it_o be_v with_o iron_n and_o fetter_n like_o a_o prisoner_n to_o be_v shut_v up_o in_o the_o bottom_n of_o a_o loathsome_a dungeon_n where_o they_o can_v find_v nothing_o but_o the_o crawl_a of_o blind_a error_n and_o unsettle_a opinion_n and_o irksome_a uncertainty_n as_o vermin_n creep_v round_o about_o they_o if_o ever_o any_o thing_n deserve_a 〈◊〉_d deserve_a agathias_n hist_o lib._n 1._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d pity_n it_o be_v to_o see_v ignorant_a man_n and_o woman_n that_o know_v nothing_o themselves_o thus_o to_o be_v imprison_v in_o the_o jail_n of_o opinion_n by_o the_o deceit_n of_o cunning_a seducer_n eye_n seducer_n the_o quodlibet_n make_v full_a demonstra●●●_n of_o all_o this_o beside_o that_o which_o we_o see_v with_o our_o eye_n that_o seek_v nothing_o hereby_o but_o to_o rob_v and_o spoil_v they_o possess_v the_o wife_n lead_v the_o child_n use_v the_o good_n to_o swagger_v and_o serve_v their_o own_o luxuriousnesse_n that_o since_o the_o harpy_n be_v chase_v away_o and_o bel_n be_v overthrow_v never_o be_v there_o such_o a_o greedy_a and_o ravenous_a idol_n as_o the_o seminary_n with_o his_o back_n and_o belly_n sink_v and_o drown_v all_o that_o entertain_v he_o i_o never_o think_v hereof_o but_o moloch_n the_o idol_n of_o the_o ammonite_n come_v into_o my_o mind_n 18.21_o mind_n paul_n pagius_n paraphr_fw-mi chaldaic_n in_o levit._n 18.21_o it_o be_v a_o image_n hollow_a and_o have_v seven_o chamber_n or_o ambry_n in_o it_o they_o open_v the_o first_o and_o offer_v meal_n into_o it_o in_o the_o second_o they_o put_v pigeon_n the_o three_o receive_v a_o sheep_n the_o four_o a_o ram_n the_o five_o a_o calf_n the_o sixth_o a_o ox_n and_o if_o any_o man_n will_v offer_v his_o son_n or_o daughter_n the_o seven_o be_v ready_a for_o he_o his_o face_n be_v like_o a_o calf_n and_o his_o hand_n altogether_o frame_v to_o receive_v gift_n of_o the_o stander_n by_o the_o lively_a portraiture_n of_o these_o seducer_n if_o we_o please_v but_o a_o little_a to_o compare_v the_o shape_n and_o condition_n of_o the_o one_o with_o the_o other_o 5_o and_o will_v to_o god_n they_o have_v make_v our_o land_n their_o native_a country_n but_o a_o stage_n for_o these_o foolery_n and_o not_o turn_v it_o into_o a_o theatre_n of_o their_o tragedy_n and_o 71._o and_o vide_fw-la pater_fw-la si_fw-la tunica_fw-la filii_fw-la tui_fw-la sit_fw-la a_o non_fw-la apud_fw-la math._n westm_n pag._n 71._o unpriestly_a practice_n or_o have_v plant_v their_o superstition_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o subject_n so_o as_o a_o little_a more_o room_n have_v be_v leave_v for_o loyalty_n to_o the_o magistrate_n for_o what_o conclusion_n be_v these_o to_o be_v bring_v into_o a_o kingdom_n 17._o kingdom_n possevin_n biblioth_n select_a pag_n 17._o it_o be_v judge_v that_o no_o christian_a monarch_n have_v his_o crown_n whole_o give_v he_o from_o heaven_n unless_o it_o receive_v firmness_n and_o strength_n also_o from_o christ_n vicar_n the_o pope_n and_o 131._o and_o roderic_n sancius_n episco_n zamorensis_fw-la allege_a and_o follow_v by_o cárerius_n de_fw-fr potest_fw-la rom._n pont._n pag._n 131._o again_o it_o be_v to_o be_v hold_v according_a to_o the_o natural_a moral_a and_o divine_a law_n with_o the_o right_a faith_n that_o the_o lordship_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n be_v the_o true_a and_o only_o immediate_a lordship_n of_o all_o the_o world_n not_o as_o concern_v spiritual_a thing_n only_o but_o also_o as_o concern_v temporal_a thing_n and_o that_o the_o imperial_a lordship_n of_o king_n depend_v upon_o it_o and_o owe_v service_n and_o attendance_n thereunto_o as_o a_o mean_n minister_n and_o instrument_n and_o that_o by_o he_o it_o receive_v institution_n and_o ordination_n and_o at_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o papal_a lordship_n it_o may_v be_v remove_v revoke_v correct_v punish_v in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o world_n the_o secular_a lordship_n be_v not_o necessary_a either_o of_o pure_a or_o mere_a or_o expedient_a necessity_n but_o when_o the_o church_n can_v resolve_v this_o article_n therefore_o we_o say_v that_o in_o all_o the_o world_n there_o be_v but_o one_o lordship_n and_o therefore_o there_o must_v be_v but_o one_o universal_a and_o supreme_a prince_n and_o monarch_n who_o be_v christ_n vicar_n according_a to_o that_o of_o 7.14_o of_o dan._n 7.14_o daniel_n he_o give_v he_o dominion_n and_o honour_n and_o kingdom_n and_o all_o people_n and_o language_n shall_v serve_v he_o in_o he_o therefore_o be_v the_o fountain_n and_o original_n of_o all_o lordship_n and_o from_o he_o the_o other_o power_n flow_v all_o their_o religion_n be_v full_a of_o this_o doctrine_n and_o hence_o proceed_v the_o monster_n of_o conspiracy_n against_o our_o state_n whereby_o it_o appear_v it_o be_v not_o religion_n they_o strive_v for_o but_o sovereignty_n and_o not_o the_o conscience_n of_o man_n yield_v to_o their_o ceremony_n and_o superstition_n will_v satisfy_v they_o unless_o they_o may_v also_o have_v their_o will_n in_o overrule_a all_n and_o the_o crown_n of_o prince_n and_o the_o sceptre_n and_o subject_n of_o the_o king_n of_o the_o world_n be_v at_o their_o devotion_n whereby_o they_o have_v brand_v themselves_o for_o ever_o with_o the_o indelible_a character_n of_o the_o minister_n of_o antichrist_n that_o be_v but_o priest_n and_o confine_v to_o their_o book_n and_o have_v dicit_fw-la have_v mat._n 16.19_o &_o ibi_fw-la ferus_fw-la §_o tertiò_fw-la obseruandum_fw-la &_o illud_fw-la quòd_fw-la signanter_n dicit_fw-la no_o other_o commission_n but_o to_o prithee_o and_o teach_v yet_o thus_o they_o creep_v into_o throne_n fill_v the_o world_n with_o anarchy_n and_o confusion_n and_o who_o soul_n they_o shall_v win_v to_o god_n by_o minister_a the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n their_o blood_n they_o sacrifice_v to_o the_o devil_n by_o stir_v they_o up_o to_o treason_n and_o rebellion_n and_o canonize_v they_o for_o martyr_n when_o they_o have_v do_v we_o think_v it_o lamentable_a that_o be_v 168._o be_v anton._n magin_n geograph_n pag._n 168._o write_v of_o the_o great_a turk_n how_o at_o constantinople_n in_o the_o place_n that_o sometime_o be_v the_o palace_n of_o constantine_n now_o he_o keep_v fierce_a elephant_n and_o a_o thousand_o other_o cruel_a beast_n and_o in_o a_o stately_a church_n near_o to_o adjoin_v where_o god_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v honour_v he_o feed_v savage_a monster_n and_o to_o every_o pillar_n thereof_o ti_v lion_n bear_n wolf_n tiger_n 1605._o tiger_n witness_v the_o murder_n of_o the_o infant_n of_o spain_n the_o prince_n of_o orange_n the_o french_a king_n king_n john_n of_o england_n the_o irish_a war_n the_o english_a rebellion_n in_o the_o north_n the_o french_a massacre_n the_o infinite_a treason_n against_o qu._n elizabeth_n and_o his_o majesty_n and_o above_o all_o other_o the_o powder_n treason_n in_o novemb._n 1605._o this_o be_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o man_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o palace_n of_o constantine_n where_o former_o of_o old_a godly_a bishop_n have_v wont_a to_o be_v entertain_v he_o stall_v up_o purple_v machiavellian_o and_o unreasonable_a beast_n to_o prey_n upon_o constantine_n successor_n and_o devour_v the_o prince_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o to_o every_o pillar_n of_o our_o church_n wellnigh_o in_o europe_n he_o chain_v wolf_n and_o libard_n to_o fly_v at_o our_o throat_n whensoever_o we_o come_v within_o their_o reach_n and_o those_o herd_n that_o we_o see_v of_o friar_n seminary_n masspriest_n jesuite_n pretend_v to_o be_v the_o pastor_n of_o our_o soul_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o so_o many_o bear_n and_o bloody_a tiger_n chain_v to_o the_o pillar_n of_o our_o church_n the_o fatal_a enemy_n of_o prince_n and_o their_o people_n to_o suck_v their_o blood_n save_v that_o the_o turk_n lion_n at_o constantinople_n with_o feed_v and_o familiarity_n of_o their_o keeper_n become_v tame_a and_o gentle_a but_o the_o pope_n savage_n of_o rome_n by_o no_o forbearance_n or_o mercy_n show_v they_o can_v be_v mollify_v no_o gentle_a usage_n can_v tame_v their_o nature_n no_o clemency_n will_v reconcile_v they_o no_o diet_n will_v assuage_v their_o thirst_n of_o blood_n no_o benefit_n no_o patience_n no_o endurance_n can_v alter_v their_o heart_n from_o practise_v against_o their_o mercifull_a prince_n and_o dear_a country_n alas_o for_o our_o people_n that_o have_v make_v choice_n of_o such_o master_n i_o remember_v excederet_fw-la remember_v q._n curt._n l._n 6._o sequidem_fw-la gratulari_fw-la quòd_fw-la in_o numerum_fw-la deorum_fw-la receptus_fw-la esset_fw-la alexander_n caeterùm_fw-la misereri_fw-la eorum_fw-la quibus_fw-la vivendum_fw-la esset_fw-la sub_fw-la eo_fw-la qui_fw-la modum_fw-la hominis_fw-la excederet_fw-la the_o speech_n of_o philotas_n touch_v alexander_n what_o time_n he_o will_v be_v make_v a_o god_n that_o he_o be_v glad_a alexander_n be_v receive_v into_o the_o number_n of_o the_o
bungle_a workman_n that_o be_v not_o their_o craft_n master_n till_o the_o smith_n the_o carpenter_n and_o the_o painter_n come_v every_o one_o in_o his_o place_n and_o show_v his_o skill_n first_o the_o canonist_n like_o blacksmith_n blue_a with_o the_o bellows_n of_o their_o decree_n and_o hammer_v and_o heat_n it_o in_o the_o coal_n of_o the_o pope_n constitution_n these_o smith_n be_v gratian_n pope_n john_n gregory_n and_o boniface_n with_o their_o prentice_n that_o serve_v they_o hostiensis_n innocent_n panormitane_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o that_o profession_n next_o the_o carpenter_n that_o take_v it_o in_o hand_n be_v the_o friar_n and_o schoolman_n which_o stretch_v their_o line_n over_o it_o and_o bring_v it_o into_o better_a shape_n thomas_n and_o scot_n and_o alexander_n fashion_v it_o with_o line_n and_o level_a they_o stretch_v out_o the_o line_n of_o method_n over_o it_o and_o with_o the_o thread_n of_o a_o distinction_n they_o plain_v it_o where_o it_o be_v rough_a and_o with_o the_o compass_n of_o their_o logic_n and_o philosophy_n make_v it_o in_o the_o fashion_n of_o a_o man_n after_o that_o the_o great_a lateran_n council_n about_o the_o year_n 1215._o have_v polish_v it_o and_o give_v it_o strong_a joint_n to_o stand_v upon_o not_o long_o after_o the_o counsel_n of_o constance_n basil_n and_o another_o lateran_n hew_v it_o over_o again_o and_o alter_v the_o fashion_n in_o certain_a point_n touch_v the_o pope_n authority_n there_o some_o cardinal_n senensis_n and_o cusanus_fw-la think_v the_o head_n stand_v too_o high_a above_o the_o shoulder_n and_o will_v have_v have_v it_o bow_v down_o a_o little_a low_o at_o last_o they_o bring_v it_o to_o trent_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o their_o best_a workman_n as_o a._n as_o absolutissima_fw-la trident._n synod_n possevin_n biblioth_v select_v pag._n 18._o a._n they_o say_v who_o mend_v it_o from_o top_n to_o toe_n and_o set_v it_o up_o again_o when_o the_o worm_n have_v wellnigh_o consume_v it_o since_o which_o time_n the_o three_o sort_n of_o workman_n the_o painter_n have_v take_v it_o in_o hand_n the_o jesuit_n and_o their_o fellow_n who_o never_o cease_v to_o paint_v it_o day_n and_o night_n there_o be_v no_o colour_n but_o they_o have_v try_v it_o to_o make_v it_o beautiful_a some_o with_o varnish_n and_o plaster_n stop_v up_o the_o crack_n which_o the_o sun_n shine_v upon_o it_o have_v make_v that_o they_o may_v not_o be_v see_v bellarmine_n and_o his_o associate_n in_o that_o kind_n stir_v all_o colour_n together_o and_o varnish_v over_o the_o smoky_a and_o dusty_a place_n so_o skilful_o that_o a_o man_n can_v scarce_o tell_v what_o the_o colour_n be_v surius_n and_o baronius_n with_o other_o colour_n ground_n by_o legendary_n cast_v a_o shadow_n over_o it_o for_o seem_v too_o youthful_a but_o they_o have_v paint_v a_o gray_a beard_n to_o a_o green_a head_n the_o rest_n stand_v by_o such_o as_o be_v sixtus_n senensis_n lindan_n staphylus_n possevine_a like_a censor_n commend_v the_o workmanship_n and_o flatter_v the_o workman_n and_o extol_v the_o idol_n against_o they_o they_o call_v lutheran_n and_o caluinist_n thus_o at_o the_o last_o have_v they_o polish_v their_o dagon_n and_o set_v it_o up_o before_o the_o lord_n ark_n save_v that_o it_o may_v not_o be_v forget_v that_o with_o some_o of_o it_o they_o warm_v themselves_o and_o roast_v their_o meat_n as_o pardon_n the_o mass_n and_o purgatory_n and_o laugh_v in_o their_o sleeve_n at_o such_o as_o turn_v the_o spit_n ah_o i_o be_o warm_a i_o have_v be_v at_o the_o fire_n 6_o this_o be_v the_o labour_n and_o workmanship_n that_o our_o adversary_n have_v bestow_v on_o their_o religion_n to_o set_v it_o forth_o whereby_o they_o have_v make_v their_o church_n so_o seem_v catholic_a and_o indeed_o we_o have_v always_o observe_v that_o there_o be_v two_o principal_a thing_n which_o draw_v man_n conceit_n to_o papistry_n the_o first_o be_v the_o name_n and_o report_n that_o go_v of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n while_o man_n persuade_v themselves_o that_o a_o church_n so_o ancient_a and_o renown_v in_o all_o age_n can_v but_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n the_o second_o be_v the_o rumour_n and_o opinion_n of_o our_o adversary_n learning_n as_o if_o it_o be_v unpossible_a so_o learned_a man_n shall_v be_v deceive_v and_o their_o writing_n can_v be_v answer_v nevertheless_o it_o be_v easy_a enough_o to_o see_v the_o truth_n through_o all_o this_o if_o man_n will_v consider_v of_o thing_n attentive_o for_o touch_v the_o name_n and_o show_v of_o the_o roman_a church_n it_o be_v but_o a_o empty_a sound_n of_o word_n and_o title_n this_o present_a roman_a be_v whole_o depart_v in_o the_o question_n controvert_v from_o the_o ancient_a and_o retain_v nothing_o but_o the_o title_n this_o shall_v deceive_v no_o man_n for_o the_o true_a ancient_a and_o apostolic_a church_n of_o rome_n so_o much_o commend_v by_o the_o father_n and_o seek_v to_o by_o the_o world_n profess_v another_o kind_n of_o faith_n then_o this_o do_v and_o the_o same_o that_o now_o we_o defend_v against_o they_o whereas_o this_o be_v fall_v from_o it_o and_o yet_o skilful_o retain_v still_o the_o same_o seat_n and_o title_n impose_v marvellous_o upon_o the_o world_n hereby_o isidorus_n pelusiota_n 408._o pelusiota_n l._n 3._o epist_n 408._o have_v a_o say_n that_o show_v the_o likelihood_n of_o this_o in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o afterward_o when_o the_o church_n flourish_v and_o labour_v as_o yet_o of_o no_o disease_n the_o divine_a grace_n of_o god_n go_v as_o it_o be_v in_o a_o ring_n round_o about_o it_o the_o holy_a ghost_n administer_a all_o thing_n and_o all_o the_o bishop_n thereof_o incite_v and_o turn_v it_o towards_o heaven_n afterward_o it_o grow_v disease_v and_o be_v trouble_v with_o faction_n and_o then_o all_o those_o thing_n fly_v away_o thus_o the_o church_n be_v like_o a_o woman_n fall_v from_o her_o ancient_a happiness_n and_o retain_v only_o some_o sign_n thereof_o she_o have_v the_o sheath_n and_o casket_n where_o her_o ornament_n lay_v but_o the_o good_n themselves_n she_o be_v spoil_v of_o not_o through_o his_o carelessness_n and_o negligence_n that_o first_o enrich_v she_o but_o through_o their_o naughtiness_n that_o govern_v not_o thing_n as_o they_o shall_v have_v do_v this_o doctor_n well_o perceive_v that_o a_o church_n may_v lose_v the_o faith_n and_o yet_o retain_v her_o name_n still_o and_o he_o see_v that_o in_o his_o time_n thing_n fall_v to_o decay_v and_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n begin_v to_o be_v alter_v to_o what_o purpose_n then_o shall_v any_o man_n respect_v the_o name_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n when_o the_o true_a faith_n be_v change_v or_o what_o do_v the_o prerogative_n and_o royalty_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n concern_v this_o that_o be_v turn_v to_o another_o religion_n or_o who_o regard_v a_o house_n of_o stately_a building_n and_o honourable_a title_n or_o antic_a memory_n since_o john_n of_o gaunt_n when_o the_o plague_n have_v infect_v it_o and_o thief_n possess_v it_o beside_o when_o it_o be_v at_o the_o best_a in_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o after_o yet_o other_o church_n be_v commend_v as_o well_o and_o count_v as_o good_a as_o it_o 449._o it_o meditat._n &_o respon_n in_o iute_v graecoroman_n tom_fw-mi 1._o p._n 449._o these_o be_v the_o word_n of_o balsamon_n the_o five_o patriarch_n of_o rome_n alexandria_n constantinople_n jerusalem_n and_o antioch_n have_v identity_n of_o honour_n 〈◊〉_d honour_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o obtain_v the_o room_n of_o one_o head_n over_o the_o body_n that_o be_v the_o holy_a church_n of_o god_n and_o nicephorus_n the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n 307._o constantinople_n council_n ephesin_n pag._n 307._o in_o a_o epistle_n to_o leo_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n say_v and_o we_o also_o who_o have_v obtain_v the_o name_n of_o new_a rome_n be_v build_v upon_o one_o and_o the_o same_o foundation_n of_o faith_n the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n where_o christ_n our_o saviour_n and_o god_n be_v the_o corner_n stone_n 〈◊〉_d stone_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o matter_n of_o faith_n be_v nothing_o behind_o the_o elder_n roman_n for_o in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n there_o be_v nothing_o to_o be_v reckon_v before_o the_o rest_n wherefore_o let_v saint_n paul_n glory_n and_o rejoice_v in_o we_o also_o and_o join_v new_a thing_n with_o old_a and_o compare_v we_o in_o doctrine_n and_o preach_v let_v he_o glory_n in_o we_o both_o alike_o for_o we_o as_o well_o as_o they_o follow_v his_o doctrine_n and_o institution_n wherein_o we_o be_v root_v be_v confirm_v in_o the_o confession_n of_o our_o faith_n wherein_o we_o stand_v and_o rejoice_v etc._n etc._n so_o that_o the_o greek_a church_n in_o the_o east_n think_v themselves_o equal_a with_o rome_n and_o the_o commendation_n of_o the_o
there_o be_v why_o they_o shall_v disdain_v we_o suppose_v we_o have_v less_o learning_n than_o we_o have_v irenaeus_n 45._o irenaeus_n l._n 2._o c._n 45._o have_v a_o say_n which_o i_o commend_v unto_o they_o when_o they_o think_v they_o have_v so_o much_o vantage_n of_o learning_n against_o we_o it_o be_v better_a and_o more_o profitable_a to_o be_v simple_a and_o of_o small_a knowledge_n and_o by_o love_n to_o approach_v near_o god_n then_o to_o think_v themselves_o to_o know_v much_o and_o to_o be_v of_o high_a experience_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n to_o be_v find_v blasphemer_n against_o god_n 11_o we_o know_v no_o cause_n therefore_o why_o we_o shall_v not_o constant_o and_o cheerful_o go_v forward_o with_o our_o profession_n and_o confirm_v ourselves_o daily_o more_o and_o more_o therein_o against_o all_o the_o premise_n and_o opposition_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n whatsoever_o first_o we_o have_v the_o scripture_n in_o manifest_a place_n free_a from_o all_o ambiguity_n on_o our_o side_n second_o we_o have_v the_o principle_n of_o religion_n contain_v in_o the_o lord_n prayer_n the_o creed_n and_o the_o ten_o commandment_n that_o direct_o lead_v to_o every_o point_n of_o our_o faith_n which_o be_v the_o true_a reason_n why_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n forbid_v the_o read_n and_o exercise_n of_o these_o thing_n to_o the_o people_n lest_o they_o shall_v see_v so_o much_o three_o we_o have_v the_o ancient_a father_n in_o express_a term_n in_o all_o thing_n that_o they_o hold_v constant_o &_o certain_o with_o one_o consent_n i_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o our_o adversary_n in_o some_o small_a point_n as_o purgatory_n &_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a may_v make_v show_n of_o some_o particular_a opinion_n in_o the_o father_n but_o upon_o trial_n it_o will_v fall_v out_o they_o hold_v they_o waver_o &_o doubtful_o that_o no_o certainty_n can_v be_v set_v down_o touch_v their_o resolute_a judgement_n whereas_o in_o the_o principal_a point_n touch_v the_o scripture_n justification_n merit_n of_o work_n image_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n they_o write_v most_o clear_o with_o us._n four_o and_o which_o may_v persuade_v any_o man_n not_o drunken_a with_o his_o own_o prejudice_n we_o have_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n to_o plead_v for_o we_o whereby_o our_o church_n have_v be_v miraculous_o uphold_v when_o they_o threaten_v god_n defend_v we_o when_o they_o practise_v and_o expect_v our_o utter_a ruin_n god_n disappoint_v they_o when_o they_o wrought_v all_o manner_n of_o treason_n yet_o god_n deliver_v us._n five_o and_o this_o be_v our_o further_a assurance_n that_o we_o have_v do_v nothing_o against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o innumerable_a people_n in_o all_o age_n wish_v it_o long_o ago_o what_o ceremony_n what_o doctrine_n what_o custom_n what_o one_o parcel_n of_o their_o superstition_n have_v we_o refuse_v but_o the_o world_n long_o since_o complain_v of_o it_o yea_o the_o learn_a man_n that_o be_v groan_v under_o the_o very_a burden_n that_o we_o have_v have_v shake_v off_o 805._o off_o evetusto_fw-la quo●am_fw-la libro_fw-la refert_fw-la illyric_n catolog_fw-la test_n tom_fw-mi 2._o p._n 805._o it_o be_v write_v of_o gerson_n the_o chancellor_n of_o paris_n who_o live_v about_o one_o hundred_o year_n before_o luther_n that_o the_o sorbonist_n expulse_v he_o the_o university_n and_o in_o his_o old_a age_n deprive_v he_o of_o all_o his_o d_o gnities●_n because_o as_o it_o be_v like_a he_o mislike_v diverse_a error_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n what_o time_n he_o betake_v himself_o to_o teach_v of_o school_n wherein_o his_o manner_n be_v daily_o to_o cause_v all_o his_o scholar_n the_o little_a child_n to_o join_v with_o he_o in_o this_o short_a prayer_n my_o god_n my_o maker_n have_v mercy_n upon_o thy_o miserable_a servant_n gerson_n it_o shall_v seem_v by_o this_o that_o he_o take_v small_a comfort_n in_o those_o time_n when_o forsake_v all_o confidence_n in_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o church_n he_o will_v call_v for_o mercy_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n rather_o in_o the_o company_n of_o a_o few_o poor_a child_n then_o in_o the_o society_n of_o such_o as_o be_v repute_v the_o doctor_n of_o the_o world_n and_o it_o may_v easy_o be_v think_v gerson_n see_v more_o than_o he_o either_o love_v or_o like_v because_o the_o modern_a papist_n reject_v his_o judgement_n &_o gerson_n &_o resp_n card._n bellar._n ad_fw-la resolut_a io._n gerson_n confute_v his_o writing_n and_o 138._o and_o fra._n victoria_n relect_v 4._o p._n 138._o say_v this_o doctor_n in_o all_o thing_n be_v a_o enemy_n to_o the_o pope_n authority_n and_o with_o his_o heresy_n infect_v many_o other_o his_o opinion_n touch_v this_o matter_n little_a different_a from_o schism_n yea_o at_o this_o day_n they_o see_v more_o error_n than_o they_o will_v reform_v o_o god_n say_v 499._o say_v naucler_fw-mi pag._n 499._o one_o of_o their_o historiographer_n what_o will_v become_v of_o our_o age_n when_o our_o vice_n be_v grow_v to_o that_o that_o they_o have_v scarce_o leave_v we_o any_o place_n with_o god_n for_o mercy_n what_o covetousness_n be_v therein_o priest_n what_o lust_n what_o ambition_n what_o idleness_n what_o pomp_n what_o ignorance_n both_o of_o themselves_o and_o of_o christian_a doctrine_n how_o little_a religion_n and_o feign_v rather_o than_o true_a god_n have_v mercy_n on_o us._n 12_o and_o h●●●_n omit_v the_o way_n that_o be_v by_o trial_n of_o argument_n i_o offer_v certain_a external_a mark_n and_o sensible_a token_n whereby_o the_o falsehood_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n may_v be_v discover_v &_o the_o most_o resolute_a papist_n that_o live_v move_v to_o misdoubt_v his_o own_o religion_n for_o it_o be_v unpossible_a that_o these_o thing_n follow_v shall_v be_v find_v in_o the_o true_a church_n or_o practise_v by_o man_n of_o the_o right_a faith_n the_o first_o be_v their_o enmity_n with_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n the_o word_n of_o god_n whereof_o i_o have_v speak_v in_o the_o 22._o digression_n of_o this_o book_n for_o the_o word_n 8.20_o word_n esa_n 8.20_o of_o the_o prophet_n be_v clear_a to_o the_o law_n to_o the_o testimony_n if_o they_o speak_v not_o according_a to_o that_o word_n it_o be_v because_o there_o be_v no_o light_n in_o they_o and_o one_o of_o their_o practice_n against_o it_o whereby_o they_o have_v deprive_v it_o from_o be_v the_o total_a rule_n have_v leave_v they_o utter_o void_a of_o all_o mean_n to_o secure_v their_o faith_n by_o and_o to_o find_v the_o truth_n for_o the_o church_n the_o father_n the_o counsel_n the_o pope_n which_o be_v all_o they_o can_v pretend_v be_v yield_v by_o themselves_o to_o be_v subject_a to_o error_n and_o how_o can_v that_o give_v they_o assurance_n of_o their_o faith_n which_o itself_o be_v not_o assure_v from_o error_n the_o second_o be_v the_o very_a face_n and_o outward_a state_n and_o government_n of_o their_o church_n clean_o contrary_a to_o the_o first_o antiquity_n how_o unlike_a be_v their_o pope_n to_o peter_n their_o cardinal_n to_o the_o apostle_n their_o prelate_n to_o the_o ancient_a bishop_n in_o state_n in_o ambition_n in_o intermeddle_v this_o be_v note_v at_o large_a by_o many_o among_o themselves_o zabarella_n cusanus_fw-la marsilius_n occam_n duarenus_n how_o unlike_a be_v their_o private_a mass_n half_a communion_n latin_a service_n image_n worship_n to_o the_o ancient_a service_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n if_o it_o be_v the_o true_a church_n no_o continuance_n of_o time_n can_v thus_o have_v alter_v it_o age_n change_v the_o colour_n of_o a_o man_n hair_n and_o the_o sound_n of_o his_o voice_n but_o not_o his_o complexion_n or_o the_o shape_n of_o his_o body_n the_o three_o be_v that_o there_o be_v no_o point_n of_o our_o faith_n but_o many_o learned_a in_o their_o own_o church_n hold_v it_o with_o we_o and_o no_o point_n of_o papistry_n that_o we_o have_v reject_v but_o some_o of_o themselves_o have_v mislike_v it_o as_o well_o as_o we_o and_o this_o may_v be_v demonstrate_v in_o all_o the_o question_n that_o be_v between_o we_o and_o they_o know_v it_o and_o for_o that_o cause_n have_v purge_v and_o raze_v the_o principal_a book_n of_o the_o elder_n papist_n and_o some_o of_o they_o they_o have_v utter_o forbid_v in_o the_o book_n of_o latter_a catholic_n also_o 3._o also_o index_n librorum_fw-la prohib_fw-la p._n 25._o §._o 3._o say_v the_o index_n which_o be_v write_v since_o the_o year_n 1515._o if_o that_o which_o need_v correct_v can_v be_v amend_v by_o take_v away_o or_o add_v of_o a_o few_o thing_n let_v the_o corrector_n see_v it_o be_v do_v but_o otherwise_o let_v it_o be_v whole_o raze_v out_o the_o four_o be_v that_o the_o most_o point_n of_o papistry_n be_v direct_o and_o at_o the_o first_o sight_n absurd_a and_o against_o common_a sense_n and_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n for_o who_o can_v conceive_v
that_o it_o shall_v be_v the_o pope_n right_a to_o lord_n it_o thus_o over_o the_o scripture_n father_n counsel_n church_n and_o all_o the_o world_n what_o possibility_n be_v there_o that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n shall_v be_v subject_a to_o he_o what_o likelihood_n be_v there_o that_o image_n shall_v be_v worship_v our_o work_n shall_v merit_v heaven_n the_o cup_n shall_v not_o be_v allow_v to_o the_o people_n the_o service_n shall_v be_v in_o a_o language_n unknown_a the_o body_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v in_o ten_o thousand_o place_n at_o once_o the_o priest_n shall_v have_v judicial_a power_n to_o forgive_v sin_n the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n shall_v be_v make_v mediator_n for_o we_o to_o god_n he_o that_o will_v indifferent_o compare_v these_o and_o many_o point_n more_o shall_v find_v they_o manifest_o against_o the_o principle_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n what_o man_n can_v think_v it_o to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n that_o teach_v to_o equivocate_v to_o murder_v the_o king_n to_o pay_v no_o debt_n to_o blow_v up_o the_o parliament_n to_o dispense_v with_o murder_n and_o whoredom_n the_o five_o be_v their_o intemperate_a and_o unchristian_a proceed_n against_o us._n for_o if_o they_o be_v of_o the_o truth_n they_o will_v not_o defend_v themselves_o and_o confute_v we_o with_o gross_a lie_v uncharitable_a rail_n and_o irreconcilable_a malice_n which_o be_v the_o weapon_n of_o darkness_n but_o with_o gravity_n and_o sincerity_n as_o become_v christ_n gospel_n who_o will_v believe_v that_o any_o can_v be_v so_o impious_a that_o hold_v there_o be_v a_o god_n as_o to_o make_v he_o the_o author_n of_o sin_n and_o yet_o 533._o yet_o possevin_n bibl_n select_v p._n 533._o they_o shame_v not_o to_o say_v we_o do_v it_o who_o can_v think_v that_o any_o man_n be_v so_o absurd_a as_o to_o deny_v the_o necessity_n of_o good_a work_n and_o a_o godly_a life_n and_o yet_o they_o say_v our_o church_n do_v it_o there_o be_v very_o little_a of_o our_o doctrine_n but_o malicious_o they_o traduce_v and_o misreport_v it_o that_o we_o have_v need_v to_o put_v they_o in_o mind_n of_o philoxenus_n the_o poet_n arcesilao_n poet_n hesych_n illust_n vit_fw-mi philosoph_n in_o arcesilao_n who_o hear_v certain_a potter_n sing_v his_o verse_n undecent_o break_v their_o pot_n for_o say_v he_o i_o break_v your_o pot_n and_o you_o mar_v my_o verse_n what_o truth_n or_o sincerity_n be_v it_o to_o publish_v abroad_o to_o the_o world_n that_o in_o england_n catholic_n so_o they_o call_v themselves_o untrue_o be_v so_o cruel_o persecute_v 159._o persecute_v nonnullae_fw-la de_fw-la castissimis_fw-la virginib_fw-la vestris_fw-la in_o lupanaria_fw-la aliaque_fw-la loca_fw-la inhonesta_fw-la praeclarissima_fw-la in_fw-la hoc_fw-la agnetis_fw-gr luciaeque_fw-la virginum_fw-la exempla_fw-la secutae_fw-la protrusae_fw-la sunt_fw-la alan_n consolat_a pag._n 159._o that_o young_a woman_n which_o be_v find_v to_o be_v of_o that_o religion_n be_v put_v into_o the_o stew_n and_o such_o like_a untruth_n mention_v thick_a and_o threefold_a in_o their_o cathol_a their_o concert_n eccl_n cathol_a writing_n 664_o writing_n aquiponta_fw-la de_fw-fr antichristo_fw-la p._n 110._o post_v saunder_n visib_fw-la monarch_n l._n 7._o p._n 664_o that_o ten_o thousand_o church_n and_o above_o be_v overthrow_v more_o than_o two_o hundred_o martyr_n slay_v a_o infinite_a multitude_n of_o all_o sort_n and_o sex_n imprison_v banish_a and_o bereave_v of_o their_o good_n one_o cardinal_n three_o archbishop_n eighteen_o bishop_n one_o abbot_n four_o priour_o four_o who_o covent_n thirteen_o dean_n fourteen_o archdeacon_n six_o hundred_o priest_n seventie_o seven_o doctor_n one_o queen_n eight_o earl_n ten_o baron_n six_o and_o twenty_o knight_n four_o hundred_o gentleman_n what_o can_v they_o have_v say_v more_o if_o queen_n elizabeth_n have_v be_v as_o cruel_a as_o queen_n marie_n be_v against_o we_o in_o her_o time_n yea_o their_o hatred_n against_o we_o be_v such_o that_o they_o hold_v we_o to_o be_v idol_n be_v see_v lindan_n de_fw-fr suga_fw-la idol_n possess_v not_o simple_o seduce_v but_o even_o possess_v by_o the_o devil_n and_o thereupon_o when_o any_o of_o we_o revolt_v to_o the_o papacy_n and_o be_v reconcile_v to_o they_o they_o have_v a_o order_n to_o exorcise_v the_o party_n 206._o party_n pontifical_a rom._n pag._n 206._o who_o kneel_v upon_o his_o knee_n the_o bishop_n say_v i_o conjure_v thou_o unclean_a spirit_n by_o the_o name_n of_o god_n that_o thou_o depart_v out_o of_o this_o servant_n of_o god_n who_o he_o have_v vouchsafe_v to_o deliver_v from_o thy_o error_n and_o to_o bring_v back_o to_o his_o holy_a church_n he_o command_v thou_o thou_o curse_a and_o damn_a spirit_n who_o suffer_v for_o the_o salvation_n of_o man_n etc._n etc._n beside_o their_o malicious_a inde_fw-la malicious_a staplet_n promptuar_fw-la moral_a aestiu_fw-la pag._n 493._o answer_v to_o the_o libel_n of_o engl._n justiniano_n pag._n 170._o &_o inde_fw-la threaten_n of_o the_o peace_n of_o our_o land_n even_o then_o when_o it_o have_v the_o happy_a time_n and_o unnatural_a treason_n against_o we_o show_v the_o true_a sanctification_n of_o god_n spirit_n not_o to_o be_v among_o they_o which_o teach_v meekness_n and_o forbearance_n not_o rankor_n and_o impatience_n and_o rebellion_n save_o that_o have_v say_v id._n say_v id._n they_o be_v but_o thriftless_a yonker_n vulgar_a reader_n common_a person_n that_o will_v not_o be_v persuade_v our_o country_n and_o state_n to_o be_v in_o the_o great_a and_o most_o dangerous_a term_n in_o the_o queen_n time_n that_o ever_o it_o be_v since_o or_o before_o the_o conquest_n and_o in_o far_o worse_o than_o any_o country_n in_o christendom_n it_o please_v god_n by_o the_o come_n of_o his_o majesty_n to_o deride_v these_o their_o prophecy_n and_o in_o scorn_n thereof_o at_o this_o day_n we_o enjoy_v the_o very_a same_o peace_n and_o liberty_n that_o we_o then_o have_v 13_o the_o sixth_o be_v the_o prodigious_a ignorance_n whereinto_o they_o fall_v that_o live_v in_o papistry_n for_o as_o their_o church_n commend_v it_o so_o their_o people_n follow_v it_o most_o desperate_o even_o in_o the_o chief_a thing_n touch_v their_o salvation_n i_o will_v not_o speak_v how_o unable_a they_o be_v to_o render_v account_n of_o the_o faith_n to_o understand_v the_o point_n of_o the_o catechism_n to_o judge_v of_o thing_n lawful_a and_o unlawful_a and_o such_o like_a i_o will_v only_o mention_v what_o i_o see_v and_o learn_v dwell_v among_o they_o concern_v the_o say_n of_o their_o prayer_n for_o what_o man_n be_v he_o who_o heart_n tremble_v not_o to_o see_v simple_a people_n so_o far_o seduce_v that_o they_o know_v not_o how_o to_o pronounce_v or_o say_v their_o daily_a prayer_n or_o so_o to_o pray_v as_o all_o that_o hear_v they_o shall_v be_v fill_v with_o laughter_n and_o while_o superstitious_o they_o refuse_v to_o pray_v in_o their_o own_o language_n with_o understanding_n they_o speak_v that_o which_o their_o leader_n may_v blush_v to_o hear_v these_o example_n i_o have_v observe_v from_o the_o common_a people_n 42._o people_n the_o manner_n how_o the_o vulgar_a sort_n of_o people_n addict_v to_o papistry_n say_v their_o prayer_n the_o which_o i_o have_v observe_v by_o live_v and_o converse_v with_o they_o and_o set_v down_o for_o no_o other_o purpose_n but_o to_o note_v the_o pitiful_a ignorance_n and_o confusion_n whereinto_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n plunge_v her_o child_n non_fw-la verenda_fw-la reteg●_n sed_fw-la inverecunda_fw-la resuto_fw-la utinam_fw-la nobis_fw-la reliquerint_fw-la moderni_fw-la not_o unde_fw-la à_fw-la nobis_fw-la possent_fw-la aliquaten_fw-mi operiti_fw-la bern._n ep_v 42._o the_o creed_n creezum_fw-la zuum_fw-la patrum_fw-la onitentem_fw-la creatorum_fw-la eius_fw-la anicum_fw-la dominum_fw-la nostrum_fw-la qui_fw-la cum_fw-la sop_n virigini_fw-la mariae_fw-la crixus_fw-la fixus_fw-la ponchi_fw-la pilati_n audubitier_n morti_fw-la by_o sunday_n father_n a_o ferne_n sclere_o un_o iudicarum_fw-la finis_fw-la a_o mortibus_fw-la creezum_fw-la spirituum_fw-la santum_fw-la ecli_fw-la cathóli_fw-la remissurum_fw-la peccaturum_fw-la communiorum_fw-la obliutorum_fw-la hitam_fw-la &_o turnam_fw-la again_o the_o little_a creed_n little_a creed_n can_v i_o need_v kneel_v before_o our_o lady_n knee_n candle_n light_n candle_n burn_v our_o lady_n pray_v to_o her_o dear_a son_n that_o we_o may_v all_o to_o heaven_n come_v little_a creed_n amen_n this_o that_o follow_v they_o call_v the_o white_a pater_fw-la noster_fw-la white_a pater_fw-la noster_fw-la saint_n peter_n brother_n what_o have_v in_o the_o the_o one_o hand_n white_a book_n leave_v what_o haste_n in_o the_o tother_o hand_n heaven_n yate_fw-mi key_n open_v heaven_n yate_n and_o shut_v and_o shut_v steike_v hell_n yate_n and_o let_v every_o crysom_n child_n creep_v to_o it_o own_o mother_n white_a pater_fw-la noster_fw-la amen_o another_o prayer_n i_o bless_v i_o with_o god_n and_o the_o rood_n with_o his_o sweet_a flesh_n and_o precious_a blood_n with_o his_o cross_n and_o his_o
decree_n how_o reconcile_v together_o 40._o 45._o touch_v freewill_n and_o the_o determination_n thereof_o by_o god_n providence_n 40._o 46_o predestination_n not_o for_o work_v foresee_v 40._o 49._o god_n be_v not_o the_o author_n of_o sin_n the_o papist_n in_o this_o point_n go_v as_o far_o as_o the_o protestant_n 40._o 50._o again_o touch_v freewill_n at_o large_a show_v all_o the_o question_n in_o that_o point_n 40._o 52._o &_o inde_fw-la wherein_o true_a holiness_n stand_v 41._o 1._o how_o good_a work_v become_v a_o infallible_a sign_n of_o true_a holiness_n 41._o touch_v the_o certainty_n of_o grace_n and_o salvation_n the_o point_n explicate_v 41._o 5._o the_o miracle_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n do_v the_o papist_n at_o this_o day_n no_o good_a 42._o 1._o the_o ancient_a monk_n be_v not_o like_o the_o modern_a 42._o 3._o touch_v miracle_n object_v by_o the_o papist_n a_o answer_n 42._o 4._o &_o inde_fw-la incredible_a miracle_n and_o ridiculous_a report_v 42._o 8._o the_o abuse_n of_o monk_n and_o monastery_n detect_v 42._o 10._o a_o proof_n that_o the_o protestant_n doctrine_n exclude_v liberty_n of_o the_o flesh_n 43._o 2._o the_o roman_a doctrine_n be_v a_o occasion_n of_o their_o sinful_a life_n 43._o 3._o some_o point_n of_o papistry_n name_v that_o invite_v man_n to_o liberty_n 43._o 5._o &_o inde_fw-la the_o roman_a faith_n a_o mere_a device_n invent_v to_o maintain_v ambition_n and_o covetousness_n 43._o 7._o the_o universality_n of_o the_o protestant_n church_n be_v show_v and_o expound_v 44._o 1._o &_o inde_fw-la touch_v the_o ancient_a father_n their_o authority_n and_o usage_n with_o we_o and_o the_o papist_n compare_v 44._o 4._o &_o inde_fw-la who_o be_v father_n with_o the_o papist_n and_o who_o all_o the_o father_n 44._o 9_o the_o pope_n usher_n the_o father_n 44._o 11._o the_o papist_n be_v notorious_a for_o contemn_v all_o the_o ancient_a writer_n exemplify_v 44._o 12._o &_o inde_fw-la the_o protestant_n answer_v to_o they_o that_o bid_v they_o show_v their_o church_n in_o all_o age_n 45._o 1._o &_o inde_fw-la the_o papist_n have_v not_o the_o church_n catholic_a either_o in_o time_n or_o place_n 46._o the_o roman_a church_n have_v forsake_v her_o ancient_a faith_n 47._o &_o inde_fw-la transubstantiation_n a_o late_a device_n 47._o 8._o 9_o the_o present_a roman_a church_n have_v convert_v no_o country_n to_o the_o true_a faith_n 48._o 1._o &_o inde_fw-la the_o indies_n know_v the_o true_a faith_n afore_o the_o papist_n come_v there_o 48._o 3._o touch_v the_o conversion_n of_o england_n by_o austin_n the_o monk_n 49._o how_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v convert_v the_o indies_n spanish_a massacre_n 49._o 5._o &_o inde_fw-la the_o question_n when_o do_v the_o faith_n fail_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n answer_v and_o dispute_v 50._o 4._o &_o inde_fw-la the_o time_n &_o manner_n of_o the_o come_n in_o of_o some_o point_n in_o papistry_n 50._o 8._o &_o inde_fw-la the_o resistance_n make_v in_o former_a time_n against_o the_o papacy_n with_o a_o catalogue_n 50_o 18._o &_o inde_fw-la a_o answer_n to_o some_o thing_n object_v against_o the_o former_a catalogue_n 50._o 40._o papistry_n come_v in_o secret_o and_o by_o little_a and_o little_a expound_v 51._o 2._o 3._o image_n notorious_o resist_v when_o they_o come_v in_o 51._o 5._o the_o papist_n worship_n stock_n and_o stone_n as_o well_o as_o the_o gentile_n 51._o 6._o &_o inde_fw-la touch_v adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n 51._o 9_o the_o manner_n of_o christ_n presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n explicate_v as_o we_o hold_v it_o 51._o 10._o the_o papist_n have_v write_v most_o spiteful_o against_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n 51._o 11._o succession_n be_v in_o our_o church_n and_o of_o what_o kind_n it_o be_v 52._o 1._o the_o calling_n of_o luther_n and_o our_o bishop_n justify_v and_o declare_v 52._o 5._o the_o father_n commend_v the_o succession_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o their_o time_n do_v not_o help_v it_o now_o 53._o the_o place_n produce_v out_o of_o they_o be_v answer_v 53._o 5._o ephes_n 4.11_o allege_a to_o prove_v outward_a succession_n answer_v 54._o 2._o 3._o externall_n succession_n of_o person_n in_o one_o place_n be_v neither_o only_a in_o the_o roman_a church_n nor_o there_o at_o all_o 55._o 2._o seven_o thing_n object_v against_o the_o succession_n of_o pope_n to_o show_v it_o have_v be_v gross_o interrupt_v 55._o 4._o &_o inde_fw-la touch_v the_o credit_n of_o anastasius_n book_n of_o the_o pope_n life_n 55._o 7._o it_o be_v not_o know_v who_o succeed_v peter_n 55._o 5._o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n have_v be_v long_o void_a 55._o 6._o a_o woman_n be_v pope_n 55._o 7._o heretic_n have_v be_v pope_n and_o intruder_n and_o boy_n 55._o 8._o 9_o pope_n have_v be_v make_v and_o cast_v out_o again_o at_o the_o will_v of_o famous_a whore_n 55._o 9_o pope_n for_o wickedness_n more_o than_o monstrous_a 55._o 9_o many_o pope_n at_o one_o time_n and_o the_o right_a pope_n not_o know_v 55._o 10._o the_o father_n commendation_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n expound_v 56._o imputation_n lay_v upon_o the_o protestant_n as_o if_o they_o have_v forsake_v the_o church_n answer_v 57_o 1_o 2._o luther_n defend_v touch_v his_o departure_n from_o the_o pope_n his_o writing_n his_o life_n his_o marriage_n and_o his_o death_n 57_o 3._o &_o inde_fw-la monster_n of_o lie_n devise_v against_o luther_n 57_o 7._o luther_n a_o honest_a man_n than_o any_o pope_n in_o his_o time_n and_o many_o more_o 57_o 9_o again_o the_o call_n of_o our_o minister_n be_v defend_v 58._o touch_v the_o power_n of_o a_o priest_n in_o remit_v sin_n and_o the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n 58._o 4._o &_o inde_fw-la miracle_n not_o concur_v with_o all_o extraordinary_a call_n 59_o 1._o extraordinary_a calling_n distinguish_v 59_o 2._o luther_n need_v no_o miracle_n and_o why_o 59_o 3._o all_o man_n have_v not_o be_v in_o love_n with_o papistry_n 60._o the_o objection_n that_o luther_n make_v to_o himself_o when_o he_o depart_v from_o the_o pope_n 61._o 1._o the_o protestant_n have_v not_o forsake_v the_o high-beaten-way_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n 61._o 2._o touch_v the_o salvation_n of_o our_o ancestor_n under_o the_o papacy_n 61._o 4._o the_o scriptuy_n be_v sure_a token_n of_o the_o truth_n then_o the_o popish_a miracle_n 62._o a_o brief_a exhortation_n of_o the_o author_n to_o his_o countryman_n 63._o a_o table_n of_o the_o digression_n contain_v in_o this_o book_n with_o their_o title_n the_o number_n set_v before_o signify_v the_o number_n of_o the_o digression_n the_o number_n follow_v signify_v the_o §._o under_o which_o it_o stand_v 1._o prove_v that_o the_o papist_n ground_v the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n on_o tradition_n make_v they_o equal_a to_o the_o write_a word_n 1._o 2._o show_v the_o enfold_v faith_n of_o the_o papist_n and_o confute_v the_o same_o as_o not_o entire_a 2._o 3._o wherein_o by_o the_o scripture_n father_n and_o reason_n and_o the_o papist_n own_o confession_n it_o be_v show_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n 5._o 4._o contain_v the_o very_a cause_n why_o the_o papist_n disable_v the_o scripture_n so_o from_o be_v the_o rule_n 5._o 5._o wherein_o against_o the_o jesuit_n conceit_n secret_o imply_v in_o his_o first_o conclusion_n it_o be_v show_v that_o the_o scripture_n ought_v to_o be_v translate_v into_o the_o mother_n tongue_n and_o so_o read_v indifferent_o by_o the_o lie_v people_n of_o all_o sort_n 5._o 6._o declare_v how_o the_o assurance_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v not_o build_v on_o the_o church_n authority_n but_o on_o the_o illumination_n of_o god_n spirit_n shine_v in_o the_o scripture_n itself_o 6._o 7._o wherein_o the_o trent-vulgar-latine_a and_o our_o english_a translation_n be_v brief_o compare_v together_o 6._o 8._o show_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o so_o obscure_a but_o that_o they_o plain_o determine_v all_o appoint_v of_o faith_n 7._o 9_o declare_v that_o the_o papist_n have_v reason_n to_o hold_v the_o scripture_n be_v obscure_a because_o the_o article_n of_o their_o religion_n be_v hardly_o or_o not_o at_o all_o to_o be_v find_v therein_o 7._o 10._o assign_v the_o true_a cause_n of_o man_n error_n in_o expound_v the_o scripture_n 8._o 11._o prove_v that_o the_o scripture_n itself_o have_v that_o outward_a authority_n whereupon_o our_o faith_n be_v build_v and_o not_o the_o church_n 8._o 12._o wherein_o it_o be_v show_v that_o the_o scripture_n prove_v itself_o to_o be_v the_o very_a word_n of_o god_n and_o receive_v not_o authority_n from_o the_o church_n 9_o 13._o show_v against_o the_o jesuit_n assumption_n that_o all_o substantial_a point_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v sufficient_o determine_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o reason_n why_o the_o papist_n call_v so_o fast_o for_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n 9_o 14._o
book_n among_o they_o that_o examine_v their_o religion_n 11._o religion_n annot._n on_o act._n 17._o v._n 11._o the_o rhemist_n say_v the_o hearer_n must_v not_o try_v and_o judge_v whether_o their_o teacher_n doctrine_n be_v true_a or_o no_o neither_o may_v they_o reject_v that_o which_o they_o find_v not_o in_o the_o scripture_n and_o this_o be_v also_o common_o defend_v by_o 2._o by_o hosius_n the_o express_a dei_fw-la verb._n andrad_n defence_n trident._n l._n 2._o other_o and_o whereas_o scripture_n whereas_o prolegom_n count_n petrum_fw-la à_fw-la sot_n et_fw-la confess_v wittenber_n cap._n the_o sacr_n scripture_n brentius_n have_v write_v no_o less_o godly_a than_o true_o that_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o our_o salvation_n we_o may_v not_o so_o cleave_v to_o another_o man_n opinion_n that_o we_o shall_v embrace_v it_o without_o the_o approof_n of_o our_o own_o judgement_n and_o it_o belong_v to_o every_o private_a man_n to_o judge_v of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o religion_n and_o to_o discern_v the_o truth_n from_o falsehood_n 3._o falsehood_n bellarm._n de_fw-fr verb._n dei_fw-la lib._n 3._o c._n 3._o the_o jesuite_n very_o scornful_o reject_v his_o say_n 5_o three_o they_o extol_v ignorance_n to_o the_o sky_n and_o encourage_v their_o people_n to_o it_o 11._o it_o rhem._n annot_fw-mi ●n_n 1._o cor._n 14._o &_o on_o luk._n 12._o v._n 11._o they_o require_v no_o knowledge_n of_o the_o thing_n we_o pray_v for_o but_o prefer_v ignorance_n nor_o yet_o ability_n to_o profess_v the_o particular_n of_o our_o faith_n when_o possible_a we_o be_v to_o die_v in_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o same_o far_o contrary_a to_o that_o which_o 3.15_o which_o 1._o pet._n 3.15_o the_o scripture_n so_o plain_o teach_v and_o the_o rather_o to_o hearten_v the_o people_n in_o this_o blindness_n 20._o blindness_n rhem._n upon_o 1._o joh._n 2._o v._n 20._o they_o promise_v they_o a_o part_n in_o other_o man_n gift_n &_o grace_n which_o have_v knowledge_n 18._o knowledge_n conf._n petrie_n cap._n 14._o pag._n 18._o hosius_n say_v to_o know_v nothing_o be_v to_o know_v all_o thing_n and_o ignorance_n in_o most_o thing_n be_v best_a of_o all_o 6_o this_o be_v the_o whole_a entire_a faith_n mention_v here_o in_o the_o jesuite_n discourse_n whereby_o nothing_o be_v mean_v but_o the_o collier_n faith_n whereof_o 53._o whereof_o apologie_n transtate_v by_o staplet_n part_n 1._o pag._n 53._o i_o speak_v and_o staphylus_n write_v thus_o the_o collier_n be_v at_o the_o point_n of_o death_n and_o tempt_v of_o the_o devil_n what_o his_o faith_n be_v answer_v i_o believe_v and_o die_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n church_n be_v again_o demand_v what_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n church_n be_v that_o faith_n say_v he_o that_o i_o believe_v in_o thus_o the_o devil_n get_v no_o other_o answer_n be_v overcome_v and_o put_v to_o flight_n by_o this_o faith_n of_o the_o collier_n every_o unlearned_a man_n may_v try_v the_o spirit_n of_o man_n whether_o they_o be_v of_o god_n or_o no_o by_o this_o faith_n he_o may_v resist_v the_o devil_n and_o judge_v the_o true_a interpretation_n from_o the_o false_a and_o discern_v the_o catholic_a from_o the_o heretical_a minister_n the_o true_a doctrine_n from_o the_o forge_a i_o can_v scarce_o believe_v this_o to_o be_v their_o doctrine_n of_o entire_a faith_n upon_o the_o report_n of_o so_o base_a a_o companion_n as_o staphylus_n but_o when_o i_o see_v the_o same_o conceit_n as_o grave_o set_v forth_o by_o 1._o by_o hosius_n contra_fw-la proleg_n brentij_fw-la lib._n 3._o pag._n 146._o pigh_a hierarch_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 5._o jacob_n de_fw-fr graffijs_fw-la decision_n part_n 1._o lib._n 1._o cap._n 26._o nu_fw-la 34._o antonin_n part_n 1._o tit_n 5._o c._n 2._o §._o 1._o skilfull_a clerk_n than_o he_o than_o i_o perceive_v the_o collier_n faith_n be_v canonize_v for_o the_o papist_n creed_n and_o the_o proverb_n true_a that_o like_a to_o like_v be_v the_o devil_n and_o the_o collier_n save_v that_o it_o have_v bring_v such_o a_o flood_n of_o ignorance_n upon_o their_o people_n that_o 298._o that_o imman_n sa._n aphor_n verbo_fw-la parochus_n pag._n 298._o a_o doctor_n of_o their_o own_o cry_n out_o upon_o all_o the_o clergy_n for_o it_o woe_n to_o our_o parish_n priest_n woe_n to_o our_o bishop_n woe_n to_o our_o prelate_n 7_o and_o woe_n to_o they_o indeed_o from_o he_o that_o so_o plentiful_o in_o 5.11_o in_o es_fw-ge 53.11_o joh._n 17.3_o ro._n 10.14.17_o col._n 3.16_o heb._n 5.11_o the_o scripture_n have_v condemn_v this_o ignorance_n and_o in_o vain_a do_v christ_n 5.39_o christ_n joh_n 5.39_o command_v the_o people_n to_o search_v the_o scripture_n and_o 20.31_o and_o rom._n 15.4_o joh_n 20.31_o paul_n and_o john_n teach_v that_o whatsoever_o thing_n be_v write_v be_v write_v for_o our_o learning_n and_o that_o we_o may_v believe_v if_o to_o assent_v to_o the_o church_n without_o any_o knowledge_n thereof_o be_v a_o sound_n whole_a and_o a_o entire_a faith_n 118._o faith_n enarrat_fw-la in_o psalm_n 118._o hilary_n say_v many_o think_v the_o simplicity_n of_o their_o faith_n shall_v suffice_v to_o accomplish_v their_o hope_n of_o eternal_a life_n as_o if_o the_o study_n of_o innocence_n according_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o world_n need_v not_o the_o precept_n of_o heavenly_a doctrine_n it_o be_v write_v of_o 3.15_o of_o 2_o tim._n 3.15_o timothy_n and_o neocaesar_n and_o basil_n aschet_fw-mi prolog_n de_fw-fr iudic_n dei_fw-la et_fw-la epis_fw-la 75._o ad_fw-la neocaesar_n basil_n that_o of_o child_n they_o be_v train_v up_o in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o religion_n and_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n 5._o church_n just_a martyr_n apolog_n 2._o euse_n demonstrat_fw-la evang_v l._n 1._o c._n 6._o theod._n the_o curand_n graecorun_n affect_v l._n 5._o the_o doctrine_n and_o several_a point_n of_o religion_n be_v know_v and_o discourse_v by_o the_o mean_a of_o the_o people_n and_o 27._o and_o chrysos_fw-la hom_n 3._o in_o lazarum_fw-la orig_n in_o num._n hom_n 27._o the_o bishop_n exhort_v they_o thereunto_o which_o practice_n declare_v manifest_o enough_o that_o in_o those_o day_n knowledge_n of_o the_o thing_n believe_v be_v think_v necessary_a to_o a_o entire_a faith_n though_o now_o the_o case_n be_v alter_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o jesuite_n own_o reason_n prove_v as_o much_o for_o 3._o for_o thom._n 22._o qu._n 1._o art_n 10._o 3._o athanasius_n creed_n be_v a_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o therefore_o show_v we_o be_v bind_v both_o to_o believe_v and_o know_v the_o thing_n contain_v in_o it_o else_o he_o may_v as_o well_o have_v point_v down_o the_o collier_n creed_n again_o to_o what_o purpose_n shall_v god_n propound_v all_o the_o point_n of_o our_o faith_n one_o as_o well_o as_o another_o unless_o his_o will_n be_v that_o we_o shall_v learn_v they_o all_o according_a to_o 29.29_o to_o deut._n 29.29_o that_o of_o moses_n secret_a thing_n belong_v to_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n but_o the_o thing_n reveal_v belong_v to_o we_o and_o to_o our_o child_n that_o we_o may_v do_v all_o the_o word_n of_o the_o law_n 21._o law_n in_o joh._n tract_n 21._o augustine_n saying_n be_v to_o be_v note_v some_o may_v object_v we_o do_v rash_o in_o discuss_v and_o search_v out_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o why_o be_v they_o utter_v if_o they_o may_v not_o be_v know_v why_o have_v they_o sound_v if_o they_o may_v not_o be_v hear_v and_o why_o be_v they_o hear_v but_o that_o we_o shall_v understand_v they_o §_o 3._o four_o as_o this_o one_o infallible_a entire_a faith_n be_v necessary_a to_o the_o salvation_n of_o every_o one_o as_o well_o the_o unlearned_a as_o the_o learned_a so_o we_o must_v say_v that_o almighty_a god_n qui_fw-la vult_fw-la omnes_fw-la homines_fw-la saluos_fw-la fieri_fw-la &_o ad_fw-la cognitionem_fw-la veritatis_fw-la venire_fw-la 1._o tim._n 2._o have_v for_o proof_n that_o this_o for_o his_o part_n be_v a_o true_a will_n provide_v some_o certain_a and_o infallible_a rule_n and_o mean_n whereby_o every_o man_n learned_a and_o unlearned_a may_v sufficient_o in_o all_o point_n question_n or_o doubt_n of_o faith_n be_v infallible_o instruct_v what_o be_v to_o be_v hold_v for_o true_a faith_n and_o that_o the_o only_a cause_n why_o a_o man_n miss_v of_o the_o true_a faith_n be_v that_o he_o do_v not_o seek_v and_o find_v this_o infallible_a rule_n or_o have_v find_v it_o will_v not_o with_o a_o obedient_a mind_n captivate_v his_o understanding_n selfe-iudgement_n and_o contrary_a opinion_n in_o obsequium_fw-la christi_fw-la for_o the_o service_n of_o christ_n and_o in_o all_o point_n yield_v infallible_a assent_n unto_o it_o as_o every_o christian_n ought_v credamus_fw-la deo_fw-la say_v s._n chrysostome_n hom_n 83._o in_o matth._n nec_fw-la repugnemus_fw-la etiamsi_fw-la sensui_fw-la &_o cogitationi_fw-la nostrae_fw-la absurdum_fw-la videatur_fw-la quod_fw-la dicit_fw-la let_v we_o believe_v god_n without_o
romish_a multitude_n and_o though_o their_o person_n be_v not_o the_o rule_n yet_o when_o they_o follow_v that_o which_o be_v the_o rule_n we_o believe_v they_o §_o 13._o the_o four_o and_o last_o conclusion_n of_o this_o question_n be_v that_o this_o infallible_a rule_n which_o we_o ought_v obedient_o to_o follow_v in_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n be_v the_o doctrine_n and_o teach_n faith_n and_o belief_n of_o the_o true_a church_n this_o i_o prove_v because_o to_o this_o agree_v all_o the_o condition_n which_o i_o say_v to_o be_v requisite_a in_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n first_o this_o be_v a_o thing_n infallible_a as_o shall_v be_v prove_v second_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n easy_a to_o be_v know_v three_o it_o be_v such_o a_o thing_n as_o may_v universal_o resolve_v and_o determine_v we_o in_o all_o question_n and_o doubt_n and_o instruct_v all_o sort_n of_o man_n in_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o consequent_o whosoever_o will_v obedient_o yield_v assent_n to_o this_o rule_n in_o all_o point_n as_o we_o all_o profess_v in_o our_o creed_n say_v credo_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la catholicam_fw-la shall_v not_o err_v in_o any_o point_n that_o these_o three_o condition_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n agree_v to_o the_o doctrine_n and_o teach_n of_o the_o universal_a or_o catholic_a church_n i_o prove_v the_o answer_n 1_o we_o will_v not_o stand_v with_o the_o jesuite_n about_o this_o conclusion_n but_o free_o grant_v it_o if_o no_o more_o be_v mean_v thereby_o then_o the_o word_n make_v show_v of_o that_o the_o doctrine_n and_o faith_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n for_o that_o doctrine_n be_v only_o the_o content_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o we_o yield_v to_o be_v the_o rule_n for_o 3._o for_o in_o 1._o ep._n joh._n tract_n 3._o austin_n say_v our_o mother_n the_o church_n give_v her_o child_n milk_n out_o of_o her_o two_o breast_n the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n but_o he_o have_v a_o further_a reach_n and_o mean_v a_o high_a matter_n first_o that_o the_o church_n word_n and_o authority_n be_v the_o rule_n without_o refer_v the_o same_o to_o the_o scripture_n second_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v this_o true_a and_o universal_a church_n three_o that_o all_o the_o authority_n and_o efficacy_n thereof_o be_v in_o the_o pope_n alone_o this_o be_v the_o plain_a english_a of_o the_o conclusion_n howsoever_o the_o word_n be_v fair_a and_o clean_o and_o the_o jesuite_n defend_v it_o must_v show_v all_o the_o property_n of_o the_o rule_n to_o appertain_v to_o the_o present_a church_n and_o pope_n of_o rome_n or_o else_o he_o do_v but_o trifle_n and_o spend_v time_n digression_n 16._o show_v how_o the_o papist_n pretend_v at_o every_o word_n the_o catholic_a church_n mean_v nothing_o thereby_o but_o the_o pope_n determination_n 2_o first_o howsoever_o these_o word_n be_v tolerable_a the_o doctrine_n teach_v faith_n and_o belief_n of_o the_o true_a church_n be_v the_o infallible_a rule_n in_o all_o point_n to_o be_v follow_v yet_o the_o popish_a meaning_n be_v absurd_a that_o whatsoever_o the_o church_n teach_v though_o it_o be_v not_o contain_v in_o the_o bible_n must_v be_v accept_v as_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o that_o upon_o her_o own_o authority_n yet_o thus_o they_o hold_v as_o i_o have_v 6.9_o have_v digress_v 1._o c._n 6.9_o show_v and_o may_v further_o be_v perceive_v by_o the_o jesuite_n word_n in_o this_o section_n whosoever_o will_v yield_v assent_n to_o the_o church_n in_o all_o point_n as_o we_o profess_v in_o our_o creed_n say_v i_o believe_v the_o catholic_a church_n shall_v not_o err_v in_o any_o point_n which_o word_n of_o the_o creed_n mean_v no_o more_o but_o symbo_n but_o ruffin_n expos_fw-gr symbo_n that_o we_o believe_v there_o be_v one_o holy_a catholic_a church_n whereof_o ourselves_o be_v member_n he_o expound_v of_o yield_a assent_n in_o all_o point_n to_o it_o which_o exposition_n may_v be_v further_o understand_v by_o that_o which_o 44._o which_o staplet_n def_n eccles_n potest_fw-la adu_fw-la whitak_n l._n 1._o cap_n 9_o rhem._n annot_fw-mi 1._o tim._n 3.15_o bristo_n they_fw-mi 44._o other_o papist_n say_v more_o full_o i_o believe_v the_o catholic_a church_n the_o literal_a sense_n whereof_o be_v that_o thou_o believe_v whatsoever_o the_o catholic_a church_n hold_v and_o teach_v be_v to_o be_v believe_v which_o exposition_n be_v a_o gloss_n beside_o the_o text_n and_o yet_o this_o be_v tolerable_a in_o comparison_n of_o the_o next_o 3_o for_o have_v devolue_v all_o power_n over_o to_o the_o church_n in_o the_o next_o place_n they_o define_v this_o church_n to_o be_v the_o roman_a company_n for_o mark_fw-mi for_o mot._n 12._o in_o mark_fw-mi bristo_n say_v the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o catholic_a church_n and_o s●●i●_n and_o annot._fw-la rom._n 1_o 8._o idem_fw-la b._n run_v annal._n tom_n 1._o a_o 58._o nu_fw-la 49._o see_v posseu_n bibl_n select_a lib._n 4._o c._n 13._o ●_o interdum_fw-la quoque●aud_fw-la s●●i●_n the_o rhemist_n the_o catholic_a and_o roman_a faith_n be_v all_o one_o wherein_o their_o meaning_n be_v to_o win_v authority_n to_o the_o romish_a faction_n persuade_v man_n there_o be_v no_o salvation_n but_o in_o that_o religion_n and_o make_v room_n for_o themselves_o in_o all_o those_o place_n of_o scripture_n which_o commend_v unto_o we_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v a_o jest_n so_o gross_a that_o it_o deserve_v to_o be_v smile_v at_o rather_o then_o confute_v and_o yet_o it_o stay_v not_o here_o neither_o but_o go_v a_o degree_n further_o which_o i_o think_v be_v a_o note_n above_o éla_o 4_o for_o as_o they_o take_v all_o authority_n and_o sufficiency_n from_o the_o scripture_n and_o give_v it_o the_o church_n so_o all_o the_o church_n authority_n they_o give_v to_o the_o pope_n so_o say_v gregory_n of_o valence_n pontificis_fw-la valence_n dispu●_n theo_fw-la tom_fw-mi 3_o ●isp_n 1._o ●u_n 1._o punct_a 1._o p._n 24._o item_n cater_n 22_o q._n 1._o art_n 9_o &_o 10._o &_o dom._n ban_n ibid._n apud_fw-la d._n tho_n nam_fw-la pro_fw-la eodem_fw-la omnino_fw-la reputatur_fw-la authoritas_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la universalis_fw-la &_o authoritas_fw-la concilij_fw-la &_o authoritas_fw-la sum_fw-la mi_fw-mi pontificis_fw-la by_o the_o church_n we_o mean_v her_o head_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o roman_a bishop_n 136._o bishop_n analys_n fidei_fw-la pag._n 136._o in_o who_o reside_v that_o full_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n when_o he_o please_v to_o determine_v matter_n of_o faith_n whether_o he_o do_v it_o with_o a_o council_n or_o without_o thomas_n say_v 10._o say_v 22._o q_o 1._o art_n 10._o the_o make_n of_o a_o new_a creed_n belong_v to_o the_o pope_n as_o all_o other_o thing_n do_v which_o belong_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n 2.3_o church_n 22._o cue_n 1_o ●_o art_n 2.3_o yea_o the_o whole_a authority_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n abide_v in_o he_o 2._o he_o defence_n fid_fw-we trident_n lib._n 2._o andradius_fw-la say_v all_o power_n to_o interpret_v the_o scripture_n and_o reveal_v the_o hide_a mystery_n of_o our_o religion_n be_v give_v from_o heaven_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o their_o counsel_n yea_o 40_o yea_o decis_fw-la aur_fw-it case_z part_n 2_o l._n 2._o c_o 7_o nu_fw-la 40_o say_v graffius_fw-la the_o common_a opinion_n be_v he_o may_v do_v it_o without_o they_o and_o so_o 28._o so_o de_fw-fr christ_n l._n 2_o c._n 28._o say_v bellarmine_n himself_o without_o any_o council_n may_v decree_v matter_n of_o faith_n and_o 2._o and_o sum_n sylu_a verbo_fw-la fides_fw-la nu_fw-la 2._o sylvester_n the_o power_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n remain_v all_o in_o he_o and_o 6._o and_o de_fw-fr planctu_fw-la eccl._n lib._n 1._o artic_a 6._o aluarus_n pelagius_n we_o be_v bind_v to_o stand_v to_o his_o judgement_n alone_o rather_o than_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o the_o world_n beside_o and_o the_o canon_n law_n say_v gloss_n say_v in_o sext._n extt._fw-la joh._n 22_o tit_n 14_o c._n cum_fw-la inter_fw-la in_o gloss_n it_o be_v heresy_n to_o think_v our_o lord_n god_n the_o pope_n may_v not_o decree_v as_o he_o do_v ibid._n do_v dist_n 19_o in_o canonicis_fw-la &_o glos_fw-la ibid._n yea_o his_o rescript_n and_o decretal_a epistle_n be_v canonical_a scripture_n stapleton_n doctrinal_a stapleton_n praefat._v princip_n fidei_fw-la doctrinal_a say_v the_o foundation_n of_o our_o religion_n be_v of_o necessity_n place_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o this_o man_n teach_v in_o which_o we_o hear_v god_n himself_o speak_v and_o final_o the_o jesuite_n himself_o §._o himself_o §._o hereafter_o say_v all_o catholic_a man_n must_v necessary_o submit_v their_o judgement_n and_o opinion_n either_o in_o expound_v the_o scripture_n or_o otherwise_o to_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o apostolic_a seat_n and_o god_n have_v bind_v his_o church_n to_o hear_v the_o chief_a pastor_n in_o all_o point_n by_o all_o which_o we_o see_v what_o be_v
mean_v by_o those_o importunate_a brag_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o why_o the_o papist_n rely_v so_o much_o upon_o it_o 19_o it_o audito_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la nomin●_n hostess_fw-la expalluit_fw-la campian_n that_fw-mi 3._o apud_fw-la posseu_n bibl_n select_v lib._n 7._o c._n 19_o they_o make_v their_o vaunt_n that_o the_o very_a name_n of_o the_o church_n appall_v we_o and_o good_a reason_n if_o the_o pope_n be_v it_o god_n enemy_n and_o we_o but_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n themselves_o may_v blush_v thus_o to_o tell_v the_o ignorant_a a_o tale_n of_o the_o church_n and_o will_v the_o foolish_a protestant_n be_v wise_a than_o the_o catholic_a church_n supra_fw-la church_n nomen_fw-la callide_fw-la retinuit_fw-la tem_fw-la ipsam_fw-la funditus_fw-la desini●ndo_fw-la fustulit_fw-la camp_n ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la and_o yet_o this_o church_n when_o thing_n come_v to_o the_o reckon_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o pope_n §_o 14._o and_o first_o that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n in_o all_o point_n be_v infallible_a thus_o i_o reason_n if_o our_o saviour_n christ_n have_v promise_v to_o any_o company_n of_o man_n the_o assistance_n of_o himself_o and_o of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n for_o this_o special_a purpose_n to_o teach_v and_o instruct_v they_o in_o every_o truth_n give_v withal_o peculiar_a commission_n to_o they_o to_o teach_v all_o nation_n and_o warrant_v and_o commandment_n to_o all_o to_o hear_v they_o and_o to_o do_v in_o all_o thing_n according_a to_o their_o say_n and_o further_o threaten_v that_o he_o that_o will_v not_o hear_v they_o and_o do_v in_o all_o thing_n according_a to_o their_o say_n shall_v be_v account_v as_o a_o ethnic_n and_o publican_n then_o certain_o the_o doctrine_n and_o the_o teach_n of_o this_o company_n of_o man_n be_v in_o all_o point_v infallible_a and_o most_o true_a for_o look_v what_o he_o promise_v must_v needs_o be_v perform_v and_o whatsoever_o he_o warrant_v or_o command_v to_o be_v do_v may_v safe_o and_o without_o danger_n of_o error_n be_v do_v nay_o must_n of_o necessity_n be_v do_v especial_o when_o he_o threaten_v those_o that_o will_v not_o do_v it_o and_o consequent_o if_o he_o promise_v to_o send_v his_o holy_a spirit_n to_o teach_v any_o company_n of_o man_n all_o truth_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o he_o send_v this_o his_o spirit_n and_o by_o he_o teach_v they_o all_o truth_n and_o since_o the_o teach_n of_o this_o spirit_n be_v infallible_a we_o have_v not_o to_o doubt_v but_o that_o this_o company_n to_o which_o this_o promise_n shall_v be_v make_v shall_v in_o all_o point_n be_v infallible_o teach_v the_o truth_n if_o also_o the_o same_o our_o saviour_n give_v warrant_n and_o commandment_n that_o we_o shall_v hear_v and_o do_v in_o all_o point_n according_a to_o the_o say_n of_o this_o company_n of_o man_n be_v thus_o infallible_o teach_v and_o have_v commission_n to_o teach_v we_o may_v not_o likewise_o doubt_v but_o that_o they_o shall_v infallible_o teach_v we_o the_o truth_n in_o all_o point_n for_o otherwise_o by_o this_o his_o commandment_n we_o shall_v sometime_o be_v bind_v to_o hear_v and_o believe_v that_o which_o be_v not_o true_a and_o to_o do_v that_o which_o be_v not_o right_a and_o good_a which_o without_o blasphemy_n to_o christ_n verity_n and_o goodness_n can_v no_o way_n be_v teach_v but_o so_o it_o be_v that_o christ_n our_o saviour_n have_v in_o holy_a scripture_n promise_v give_v commission_n warrant_v command_v and_o threaten_v in_o manner_n aforesaid_a therefore_o we_o have_v not_o to_o doubt_v but_o that_o a_o certain_a company_n of_o man_n there_o be_v to_o wit_n that_o company_n which_o be_v call_v the_o true_a catholic_a church_n which_o both_o be_v in_o all_o point_v teach_v infallible_o by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o be_v in_o like_a manner_n to_o teach_v we_o all_o truth_n the_o promise_n we_o have_v mat._n ultim_fw-la ego_fw-la vobiscum_fw-la sum_fw-la omnibus_fw-la diebus_fw-la usque_fw-la ad_fw-la consummationem_fw-la seculi_fw-la i_o be_o with_o you_o all_o the_o day_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n in_o which_o word_n be_v promise_v the_o continual_a presence_n of_o christ_n himself_o the_o master_n of_o truth_n with_o his_o holy_a church_n not_o for_o a_o while_n then_o nor_o for_o a_o while_n now_o but_o all_o the_o day_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n also_o we_o have_v another_o promise_n joh._n 14._o ego_fw-la rogabo_fw-la patrem_fw-la meum_fw-la &_o alium_fw-la paracletum_fw-la dabit_fw-la vobis_fw-la spiritum_fw-la veritatis_fw-la ut_fw-la maneat_fw-la vobiscum_fw-la in_o aeternum_fw-la i_o will_v ask_v my_o father_n and_o he_o will_v give_v you_o another_o paraclete_a that_o he_o may_v remain_v with_o you_o not_o only_o for_o six_o hundred_o year_n but_o for_o ever_o and_o to_o show_v we_o for_o what_o purpose_n he_o will_v have_v his_o holy_a spirit_n to_o remain_v with_o we_o for_o ever_o he_o say_v again_o cum_fw-la autem_fw-la venerit_fw-la ille_fw-la spiritus_fw-la veritatis_fw-la docebit_fw-la vos_fw-la omnem_fw-la veritatem_fw-la job._n 16._o and_o when_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n shall_v come_v he_o shall_v teach_v you_o all_o truth_n the_o commission_n we_o have_v mat._n ultim_fw-la euntes_fw-la docete_fw-la omnes_fw-la gentes_fw-la the_o warrant_n also_o we_o have_v luc._n 10._o qui_fw-fr vos_fw-fr audit_n i_o audit_n by_o which_o word_n appear_v plain_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n will_v have_v we_o to_o hear_v and_o give_v credit_n to_o his_o church_n no_o less_o than_o to_o himself_o the_o commandment_n we_o have_v mat._n 23._o super_fw-la cathedram_fw-la mosis_fw-la sedent_fw-la scribae_fw-la &_o pharisaei_n omne_fw-la ergo_fw-la quaecunque_fw-la dixerint_fw-la vobis_fw-la seruate_v &_o facite_fw-la out_o of_o which_o word_n we_o may_v gather_v that_o we_o be_v command_v in_o all_o point_n to_o do_v according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o prelate_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n though_o it_o shall_v happen_v that_o their_o life_n shall_v not_o be_v commendable_a or_o good_a for_o though_o in_o this_o place_n our_o saviour_n do_v only_o speak_v of_o the_o chair_n of_o moses_n in_o which_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o old_a law_n do_v sit_v yet_o it_o must_v be_v understand_v à_fw-la fortiori_fw-la of_o the_o chair_n of_o s._n peter_n in_o which_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o new_a law_n do_v succeed_v so_o do_v the_o ancient_a father_n understand_v and_o especial_o s_n austin_n epist_n 165._o who_o say_v thus_o in_o illum_fw-la ordinem_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la qui_fw-la ducitur_fw-la ab_fw-la ipso_fw-la petro_n ad_fw-la anastasium_n qui_fw-la nunc_fw-la in_o eadem_fw-la cathedra_fw-la sedet_fw-la etiamsi_fw-la quisquam_fw-la traditor_fw-la per_fw-la illa_fw-la tempora_fw-la subrepsisset_fw-la nihil_fw-la praeiudicaret_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la &_o innocentibus_fw-la christianis_fw-la quibus_fw-la dominus_fw-la providens_fw-la ait_fw-la de_fw-fr praepositis_fw-la malis_fw-la quae_fw-la dicunt_fw-la facite_fw-la quae_fw-la faciunt_fw-la facere_fw-la nolite_fw-la into_o the_o order_n of_o bishop_n which_o be_v derive_v from_o s._n peter_n himself_o unto_o anastasius_n who_o now_o sit_v upon_o the_o same_o chair_n although_o some_o traitor_n have_v creep_v in_o for_o the_o time_n he_o shall_v nothing_o hurt_v or_o prejudice_n the_o church_n of_o the_o innocent_a christian_n unto_o who_o our_o lord_n provide_v say_v of_o evil_a prelate_n what_o they_o say_v do_v what_o they_o do_v do_v not_o the_o threat_n we_o may_v gather_v out_o of_o luc._n 10._o where_o our_o saviour_n say_v qui_fw-la vos_fw-la spernit_fw-la i_o spernit_fw-la he_o that_o despise_v you_o despise_v i_o signify_v what_o sin_n it_o be_v not_o to_o hear_v but_o to_o despise_v the_o preach_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n himself_o that_o we_o shall_v account_v it_o the_o same_o sin_n to_o despise_v and_o not_o to_o give_v heed_n and_o credit_n to_o his_o catholic_a church_n insinuate_v thereby_o a_o threat_n of_o like_a punishment_n for_o the_o say_a contempt_n also_o mat._n 18._o the_o same_o our_o saviour_n say_v si_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la non_fw-la audierit_fw-la sit_fw-la tibi_fw-la sicut_fw-la ethnicus_fw-la &_o publicanus_fw-la thus_o you_o see_v our_o saviour_n christ_n have_v promise_v unto_o his_o church_n the_o continual_a assistance_n of_o himself_o and_o of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n to_o teach_v we_o all_o truth_n moreover_o that_o he_o have_v give_v commission_n to_o it_o to_o teach_v we_o yea_o and_o have_v warrant_v and_o command_v we_o in_o all_o point_n to_o hear_v and_o to_o do_v according_a to_o the_o say_n of_o his_o church_n and_o have_v threaten_v great_o those_o that_o will_v not_o hear_v the_o church_n which_o prove_v that_o it_o pertain_v to_o this_o church_n to_o instruct_v we_o in_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n &_o that_o we_o ought_v to_o learn_v of_o it_o in_o all_o matter_n of_o religion_n the_o infallible_a truth_n the_o answer_n 1_o the_o drift_n of_o all_o this_o section_n be_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n in_o
apostle_n if_o it_o reach_v to_o the_o church_n so_o that_o if_o that_o be_v the_o sense_n which_o the_o jesuite_n set_v down_o than_o all_o the_o apostle_n have_v equal_a privilege_n from_o error_n with_o peter_n and_o particular_a church_n and_o man_n shall_v be_v as_o infallible_a as_o the_o whole_a church_n itself_o which_o i_o be_o sure_a the_o jesuite_n will_v not_o grant_v three_o saint_n austin_n 9_o austin_n tract_n 96._o in_o joh._n tom_n 9_o expound_v the_o word_n as_o i_o do_v he_o shall_v teach_v or_o lead_v you_o into_o all_o truth_n this_o i_o think_v can_v be_v fulfil_v in_o any_o man_n mind_n in_o this_o life_n for_o who_o be_v he_o live_v in_o this_o body_n so_o corrupt_a and_o load_v the_o soul_n that_o can_v know_v all_o truth_n when_o the_o apostle_n say_v we_o know_v but_o in_o part_n but_o forasmuch_o as_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n it_o come_v to_o pass_v who_o earnest_n we_o have_v receive_v that_o hereafter_o we_o may_v come_v to_o the_o fullness_n itself_o whereof_o the_o same_o apostle_n say_v then_o shall_v we_o see_v he_o face_n to_o face_n and_o now_o i_o know_v but_o in_o part_n but_o then_o i_o shall_v know_v as_o i_o be_o know_v not_o that_o which_o shall_v be_v in_o this_o l●fe_n only_o but_o all_o that_o which_o shall_v befall_v we_o till_o the_o perfection_n come_v the_o lord_n by_o the_o love_n of_o his_o spirit_n have_v promise_v say_v he_o shall_v teach_v you_o all_o truth_n as_o for_o the_o jesuite_n exposition_n that_o he_o may_v remain_v with_o you_o for_o ever_o not_o only_o for_o six_o hundred_o year_n it_o smell_v either_o of_o his_o malice_n or_o ignorance_n for_o which_o of_o we_o ever_o yet_o say_v the_o holy_a ghost_n depart_v from_o the_o church_n after_o six_o hundred_o year_n let_v the_o papist_n deal_v sincere_o and_o leave_v their_o coin_v 6_o the_o four_o place_n be_v math._n 28.19_o go_v teach_v all_o nation_n whereto_o i_o answer_v first_o these_o word_n be_v speak_v to_o the_o apostle_n only_o and_o not_o to_o that_o which_o the_o jesuite_n call_v the_o catholic_a church_n now_o i_o grant_v their_o teach_n be_v infallible_a and_o all_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o hear_v it_o for_o they_o teach_v that_o which_o afterward_o they_o write_v in_o the_o scripture_n yet_o so_o they_o teach_v and_o with_o such_o commission_n that_o 17.11_o that_o act_n 17.11_o the_o people_n be_v commend_v which_o examine_v their_o teach_n by_o the_o scripture_n second_o we_o grant_v the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n in_o all_o age_n have_v commission_n to_o teach_v likewise_o but_o that_o prove_v not_o all_o their_o teach_n to_o be_v always_o infallible_a because_o natural_a corruption_n hang_v on_o they_o they_o may_v fail_v in_o that_o which_o be_v commit_v to_o they_o neither_o be_v this_o any_o inconvenience_n bind_v we_o sometime_o to_o believe_v that_o which_o be_v false_a for_o the_o bond_n have_v a_o limitation_n that_o we_o hear_v they_o so_o far_o as_o they_o teach_v agreeable_a with_o the_o scripture_n and_o no_o further_o and_o by_o those_o scripture_n we_o may_v relieve_v ourselves_o if_o they_o chance_v to_o teach_v false_o 7_o the_o five_o place_n be_v luk._n 10.16_o he_o that_o hear_v you_o hear_v i_o which_o word_n be_v speak_v to_o the_o apostle_n all_o who_o teach_n and_o write_v be_v true_a infallible_o and_o therefore_o be_v sufficient_a warrant_n to_o the_o hearer_n to_o accept_v it_o but_o be_v apply_v to_o the_o church_n and_o ordinary_a pastor_n therein_o 23._o therein_o ferus_fw-la lib._n 3_o in_o math._n cap._n 23._o they_o must_v be_v understand_v with_o this_o caution_n if_o they_o hold_v they_o to_o the_o instruction_n that_o christ_n give_v they_o if_o they_o come_v in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n deliver_v his_o word_n true_o and_o consonant_a to_o the_o scripture_n for_o such_o be_v to_o be_v hear_v as_o christ_n himself_o else_o 14.32_o else_o 1._o joh._n 4.1_o 1._o cor._n 14.32_o we_o must_v try_v the_o spirit_n and_o judge_v of_o the_o prophet_n this_o place_n therefore_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v conditional_o prove_v not_o that_o which_o the_o jesuite_n conclude_v absolute_o and_o universal_o 8_o the_o sixth_o place_n be_v math._n 23.2_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n sit_v in_o moses_n chair_n all_o therefore_o whatsoever_o they_o bid_v you_o observe_v that_o observe_v and_o do_v which_o word_n i_o grant_v must_v be_v understand_v of_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o succeed_v the_o apostle_n as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o pharisee_n that_o sit_v in_o moses_n chair_n therefore_o i_o answer_v three_o thing_n 1._o i_o mislike_v it_o not_o that_o he_o compare_v the_o priest_n and_o bishop_n of_o his_o church_n to_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n 2._o by_o moses_n chair_n be_v mean_v neither_o outward_a succession_n nor_o judicial_a authority_n but_o the_o profession_n of_o moses_n law_n 3._o 4._o 3._o si_fw-mi quae_fw-la cumque_fw-la dixerint_fw-la nobis_fw-la ea_fw-la facere_fw-la iubemur_fw-la cur_n alio_fw-la loco_fw-la christus_fw-la cavere_fw-la voluit_fw-la à_fw-la fe●mento_fw-la pharisaeorum_fw-la cur_n rursum_fw-la eorum_fw-la traditiones_fw-la exemplo_fw-la etiam_fw-la proprio_fw-la contemnere_fw-la docuit_fw-la aliquid_fw-la ergo_fw-la doctrinae_fw-la propriae_fw-la puritati_fw-la evangelij_fw-la admiscere_fw-la possunt_fw-la in_fw-la quo_fw-la non_fw-la solùm_fw-la non_fw-la sunt_fw-la audiendi_fw-la sed_fw-la sunt_fw-la etiam_fw-la refutandi_fw-la id_fw-la ergo_fw-la prae_fw-la cavit_fw-la christus_fw-la ne_fw-la plebs_fw-la malis_fw-la docentium_fw-la exemplis_fw-la ad_fw-la contemptionem_fw-la verae_fw-la doctrinae_fw-la inducatur_fw-la nunc_fw-la ergo_fw-la quae_fw-la dixetint_n nobis_fw-la pharisaei_n eadem_fw-la facere_fw-la iubet_fw-la christus_fw-la cum_fw-la super_fw-la cathediam_fw-la mosis_fw-la federint_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la legem_fw-la enarraverint_fw-la docucrint_fw-la proposuerint_fw-la can._n loc_fw-la l._n 5._o c._n 4._o our_o saviour_n do_v not_o simple_o command_v the_o people_n to_o obey_v the_o pharisee_n in_o all_o point_n of_o their_o doctrine_n or_o teach_v they_o that_o their_o local_a succession_n do_v privilege_v they_o from_o error_n but_o only_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o for_o their_o evil_a life_n be_v offend_v at_o that_o which_o they_o may_v at_o any_o time_n teach_v well_o because_o though_o their_o life_n be_v wicked_a yet_o that_o which_o they_o teach_v out_o of_o moses_n chair_n that_o be_v to_o say_v according_a to_o moses_n law_n must_v be_v follow_v now_o this_o be_v far_o from_o enjoin_v they_o in_o all_o point_n to_o do_v according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n as_o i_o prove_v by_o four_o reason_n first_o 3._o first_o jansen_n concord_n evang_v cap._n 120._o em._n sa._n notat_fw-la in_o math._n 23._o v._n 3._o the_o popish_a expositor_n say_v this_o place_n bind_v we_o not_o to_o obey_v they_o if_o they_o teach_v that_o which_o be_v evil_a for_o that_o be_v to_o teach_v against_o the_o chair_n which_o exposition_n grant_v we_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o hear_v they_o in_o all_o point_n without_o limitation_n as_o 328._o as_o ecce_fw-la sine_fw-la limitatione_n aliqua_fw-la martin_n peres_n de_fw-fr tradit_fw-la part_n 3._o pag._n 328._o a_o popish_a bishop_n speak_v with_o the_o jesuite_n and_o suppose_v they_o may_v teach_v untrue_o in_o some_o point_n second_o if_o i_o may_v refuse_v they_o in_o some_o point_n than_o hence_o it_o follow_v unanswerable_o that_o there_o be_v another_o rule_n whereby_o i_o may_v be_v direct_v in_o hear_v for_o else_o how_o shall_v a_o man_n be_v able_a to_o distinguish_v those_o point_n wherein_o he_o must_v follow_v his_o teacher_n from_o those_o wherein_o he_o must_v not_o three_o the_o pharisee_n teach_v many_o error_n and_o blasphemy_n both_o 23.13_o both_o math._n 5.20_o &_o 25.3_o &_o 23.13_o against_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n and_o 19.7.15_o and_o marc._n 14.64_o joh_n 7.48_o &_o 8_o 13._o &_o 9.22.24_o &_o 19.7.15_o against_o the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n in_o which_o regard_n our_o saviour_n bid_v his_o disciple_n 26.6.12_o disciple_n mat._n 26.6.12_o to_o beware_v of_o the_o leaven_n of_o the_o pharisee_n which_o be_v their_o doctrine_n wherein_o he_o have_v gainsay_v himself_o if_o by_o moses_n chair_n he_o have_v mean_v any_o thing_n but_o the_o prescript_n of_o the_o law_n or_o by_o those_o word_n have_v command_v we_o in_o all_o point_n to_o do_v according_a to_o the_o prelate_n doctrine_n for_o then_o the_o jew_n must_v not_o have_v honour_a parent_n nor_o love_v their_o enemy_n nor_o believe_v in_o christ_n because_o the_o pharisee_n teach_v against_o these_o thing_n last_o ibid._n last_o gloss_n in_o mat._n 23.2_o nicol._n gorr_n ibid._n arias_n m●nt●n_n elucid_n ibid._n the_o papist_n themselves_o expound_v the_o place_n write_v that_o to_o sit_v in_o moses_n chair_n be_v to_o teach_v according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n and_o rule_n of_o moses_n law_n and_o to_o command_v thing_n agreeable_a thereunto_o that_o be_v to_o say_v true_a doctrine_n and_o the_o same_o
that_o moses_n teach_v wherein_o only_o they_o may_v be_v follow_v and_o no_o further_o 23._o further_o lib._n 3_o in_o mat._n cap._n 23._o ferus_fw-la say_v that_o christ_n commandment_n observe_v and_o do_v whatsoever_o they_o bid_v you_o bind_v they_o not_o to_o observe_v all_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o pharisee_n but_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o they_o agree_v with_o the_o law_n in_o like_a sort_n he_o say_v to_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n he_o that_o hear_v you_o hear_v i_o and_o he_o that_o despise_v you_o despise_v i_o but_o matthew_n have_v set_v down_o before_o that_o he_o charge_v they_o to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o apostle_n must_v be_v hear_v but_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o they_o be_v apostle_n that_o be_v as_o they_o do_v christ_n message_n and_o teach_v the_o thing_n which_o christ_n command_v but_o if_o they_o teach_v other_o thing_n or_o contrary_a to_o christ_n then_o be_v they_o no_o more_o apostle_n but_o seducer_n and_o not_o to_o be_v hear_v which_o exposition_n of_o ferus_fw-la a_o papist_n exclude_v you_o see_v the_o jesuite_n collection_n for_o the_o infalliblenesse_n of_o all_o the_o prelate_n doctrine_n and_o give_v the_o people_n liberty_n to_o examine_v it_o by_o the_o gospel_n 9_o neither_o do_v any_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n understand_v the_o place_n otherwise_o for_o austin_n in_o generos_fw-la in_o ep._n 165._o ad_fw-la generos_fw-la the_o place_n allege_v only_o affirm_v two_o thing_n first_o that_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n there_o have_v be_v a_o continual_a succession_n of_o bishop_n from_z peter_n to_o anastasius_n who_o then_o live_v which_o he_o say_v because_o the_o donatist_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o generosus_fw-la have_v pretend_v a_o certain_a succession_n of_o bishop_n from_o donatus_n the_o beginner_n of_o that_o sect_n and_o to_o satisfy_v he_o that_o if_o succession_n be_v to_o be_v stand_v upon_o then_o there_o may_v a_o succession_n of_o better_a likelihood_n be_v bring_v against_o he_o second_o he_o affirm_v that_o in_o all_o this_o roman_a succession_n there_o have_v be_v never_o a_o donatist_n and_o though_o there_o have_v yet_o shall_v the_o people_n of_o god_n incur_v no_o danger_n thereby_o because_o christ_n have_v forewarn_v they_o of_o evil_a overseer_n that_o they_o follow_v their_o teach_n and_o not_o their_o do_v in_o all_o which_o discourse_n what_o one_o word_n be_v there_o whereby_o it_o may_v be_v gather_v that_o austin_n think_v as_o the_o jesuite_n do_v that_o in_o all_o point_v we_o must_v do_v according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o prelate_n or_o that_o the_o church_n and_o bishop_n of_o rome_n can_v err_v in_o nothing_o for_o the_o succession_n mention_v impli_v no_o such_o matter_n for_o any_o thing_n that_o austin_n say_v and_o the_o other_o word_n our_o lord_n have_v provide_v for_o his_o church_n by_o say_v of_o evil_a prelate_n do_v what_o they_o say_v but_o not_o what_o they_o do_v can_v show_v no_o other_o meaning_n in_o he_o then_o be_v in_o christ_n and_o how_o christ_n mean_v they_o i_o have_v already_o set_v down_o the_o sum_n whereof_o be_v that_o no_o christian_a man_n forsake_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o pastor_n evil_a life_n but_o that_o still_o they_o hear_v they_o and_o follow_v they_o as_o long_o as_o they_o teach_v out_o of_o the_o chair_n that_o be_v according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o moses_n and_o peter_n from_o which_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v depart_v long_o ago_o so_o that_o those_o word_n do_v what_o they_o teach_v be_v refer_v to_o the_o former_a they_o sit_v in_o moses_n chair_n must_v be_v expound_v joint_o with_o they_o do_v what_o they_o teach_v out_o of_o the_o chair_n which_o be_v grant_v how_o follow_v it_o from_o hence_o that_o therefore_o the_o teacher_n can_v err_v in_o nothing_o 10_o the_o last_o place_n be_v math._n 18.17_o if_o he_o refuse_v to_o hear_v the_o church_n let_v he_o be_v unto_o thou_o as_o a_o heathen_a and_o a_o publican_n which_o word_n the_o jesuite_n say_v contain_v a_o threaten_n against_o such_o as_o do_v not_o in_o all_o thing_n follow_v the_o church_n 18.17_o church_n bellarm._n de_fw-fr verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la l._n 3._o c._n 5._o eman._n sa._n not._n mat._n 18.17_o mean_v the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n whereunto_o i_o answer_v two_o thing_n first_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o the_o church_n can_v err_v because_o we_o be_v bid_v to_o hear_v it_o for_o so_o we_o be_v command_v to_o 13.1_o to_o rom._n 13.1_o obey_v magistrate_n and_o yet_o they_o may_v command_v thing_n unlawful_a and_o 6.10_o and_o act._n 4.19_o dan._n 3.18_o &_o 6.10_o in_o such_o a_o case_n they_o must_v not_o be_v obey_v it_o be_v a_o law_n to_o the_o jew_n that_o 17.8_o that_o deut._n 17.8_o in_o matter_n of_o weight_n they_o shall_v repair_v to_o the_o priest_n and_o do_v according_a to_o that_o which_o he_o shall_v judge_v without_o decline_v from_o it_o yet_o vriah_n and_o annas_n and_o caiaphas_n be_v not_o of_o infallible_a judgement_n therefore_o the_o meaning_n be_v that_o we_o must_v obedient_o hear_v the_o church_n and_o yield_v unto_o it_o not_o simple_o in_o all_o thing_n but_o conditional_o as_o long_o as_o it_o speak_v thing_n agreeable_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o be_v answer_v to_o the_o former_a place_n second_o the_o thing_n proper_o which_o christ_n here_o mention_v and_o wherein_o he_o bid_v we_o hear_v the_o church_n be_v not_o determination_n of_o faith_n but_o church-censure_n and_o admonition_n wherein_o it_o be_v clear_a the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n may_v sometime_o miss_v it_o and_o be_v admonish_v by_o her_o child_n notwithstanding_o this_o threaten_n of_o christ_n as_o when_o 4._o when_o joh._n 9.3_o 4._o the_o jew_n excommunicate_v he_o that_o be_v bear_v blind_a and_o 33._o and_o niceph._n l._n 12._o c._n 33._o the_o east_n and_o west_n church_n censure_v one_o another_o about_o the_o keep_n of_o easter_n for_o 16._o for_o hieron_n comment_n in_o math._n c._n 16._o ignorant_a bishop_n and_o elder_n sometime_o take_v up_o the_o severity_n of_o pharisee_n condemn_v the_o innocent_a and_o acquit_v the_o guilty_a pope_n innocent_a say_v in_o saepe_fw-la in_o decretal_a greg._n lib._n 5._o de_fw-la sententia_fw-la excom_n cap._n 28._o a_o nobis_fw-la est_fw-la saepe_fw-la the_o canon_n law_n god_n judgement_n always_o lean_v upon_o the_o truth_n which_o neither_o deceive_v we_o nor_o be_v deceive_v itself_o but_o the_o church_n judgement_n oftentimes_o follow_v opinion_n which_o many_o time_n fall_v out_o both_o to_o deceive_v we_o and_o to_o be_v deceive_v itself_o whereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v sometime_o that_o he_o be_v loose_v in_o the_o church_n who_o be_v bind_v with_o god_n and_o he_o loose_v with_o god_n who_o be_v wrap_v in_o the_o church_n censure_n upon_o which_o word_n 2._o word_n super_fw-la 5._o de_fw-la sententia_fw-la excom_n à_fw-la nobis_fw-la 2._o panormitane_a writing_n say_v a_o general_a council_n represent_v the_o whole_a church_n may_v very_o well_o err_v in_o excommunicate_v he_o that_o shall_v not_o be_v excommunicate_a whereby_o we_o see_v the_o church_n may_v err_v in_o her_o censure_n notwithstanding_o these_o word_n of_o christ_n and_o if_o in_o censure_n then_o let_v the_o jesuit_n yield_v a_o sound_a reason_n why_o not_o as_o well_o in_o point_n of_o faith_n or_o else_o confess_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v mean_v as_o i_o have_v say_v §_o 15._o worthy_o therefore_o do_v s._n paul_n call_v this_o church_n columna_fw-la &_o firmamentum_fw-la veritatis_fw-la 1._o tim._n 3._o the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n also_o s._n austin_n in_o lib._n contra_fw-la cresc_n give_v this_o general_a advice_n quisquis_fw-la falli_fw-la metuit_fw-la huius_fw-la obscuritate_fw-la quaestionis_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la de_fw-la illa_fw-la consulat_fw-la quam_fw-la sine_fw-la ulla_fw-la ambiguitate_fw-la scriptura_fw-la sancta_fw-la demonstrat_fw-la whosoever_o be_v afraid_a to_o be_v deceive_v with_o the_o obscurity_n of_o this_o question_n let_v he_o require_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n which_o without_o ambiguity_n the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v demonstrate_v by_o which_o word_n he_o show_v we_o that_o the_o way_n not_o to_o be_v deceive_v in_o a_o obscure_a question_n be_v to_o ask_v and_o follow_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n the_o answer_n 1_o there_o be_v no_o man_n deni_v but_o it_o be_v a_o good_a way_n not_o to_o be_v deceive_v in_o a_o obscure_a question_n to_o ask_v and_o follow_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n so_o it_o be_v the_o true_a church_n which_o the_o roman_a company_n be_v not_o but_o yet_o neither_o be_v it_o the_o only_a way_n as_o i_o have_v touch_v already_o nor_o if_o it_o be_v do_v it_o hence_o follow_v that_o therefore_o itself_o be_v the_o rule_n and_o free_v from_o all_o blemish_n of_o error_n because_o the_o
from_o go_v and_o inquire_v to_o she_o nay_o rather_o we_o advise_v all_o people_n desirous_a of_o the_o truth_n to_o follow_v augustine_n counsel_n howsoever_o such_o as_o the_o jesuite_n be_v to_o make_v we_o odious_a give_v out_o the_o contrary_n for_o austin_n first_o attribute_v the_o perfection_n of_o truth_n to_o the_o scripture_n only_o second_o than_o he_o allow_v we_o to_o go_v to_o no_o church_n but_o that_o which_o from_o the_o scripture_n be_v demonstrate_v to_o be_v a_o true_a church_n three_o he_o say_v never_o a_o word_n that_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v the_o rule_n or_o free_a from_o all_o error_n but_o only_o that_o they_o shall_v inquire_v her_o judgement_n which_o in_o that_o question_n at_o that_o time_n he_o know_v to_o be_v sound_a though_o possible_a he_o be_v not_o ignorant_a that_o etc._n that_o euseb_n hist_o l._n 7._o c._n 5._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n many_o famous_a church_n former_o have_v not_o be_v so_o but_o have_v decree_v the_o very_a error_n that_o he_o now_o confute_v last_o 21._o last_o aduer_v cresc_n l._n 2._o c._n 21._o within_o five_o leaf_n of_o the_o place_n allege_v he_o have_v these_o word_n the_o church_n be_v subject_a to_o christ_n and_o therefore_o may_v not_o prefer_v herself_o before_o he_o for_o he_o always_o judge_v right_o but_o ecclesiastical_a judge_n be_v but_o man_n for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v deceive_v let_v the_o jesuit_n yield_v we_o thus_o much_o and_o he_o shall_v find_v himself_o a_o great_a deal_n short_a of_o that_o he_o reckon_v for_o the_o certainty_n of_o his_o church_n teach_v and_o that_o austin_n make_v not_o the_o church_n the_o rule_n as_o he_o will_v have_v it_o but_o a_o mean_n to_o direct_v we_o in_o thing_n obscure_a by_o the_o scripture_n who_o judgement_n be_v to_o be_v follow_v upon_o their_o authority_n and_o only_o so_o long_o as_o she_o determine_v according_a to_o they_o which_o point_n i_o fear_v the_o jesuite_n will_v mislike_v 6_o yet_o thus_o the_o church_n itself_o teach_v us._n for_o what_o bishop_n what_o pastor_n what_o counsel_n what_o man_n what_o church_n have_v not_o err_v though_o 13.17_o though_o mal._n 2.7_o eph._n 4_o 11._o heb._n 13.17_o god_n have_v bid_v we_o inquire_v their_o judgement_n and_o seek_v unto_o they_o the_o papist_n will_v say_v particular_a church_n may_v err_v but_o how_o do_v the_o counsel_n of_o ephesus_n seleucia_n and_o remino_n miss_v it_o bishop_n it_o the_o bishop_n at_o ephesus_n be_v 132._o at_o selculeucia_n 16●_n at_o ariminum_n 400_o whereof_o above_o 300._o be_v catholic_a bishop_n where_o the_o flower_n of_o all_o the_o christian_a pastor_n of_o the_o world_n be_v assemble_v whereof_o lucifer_n whereof_o dial._n adver_v lucifer_n jerome_n complain_v the_o whole_a world_n groan_v and_o wonder_v to_o see_v itself_o arrian_n which_o imperfection_n have_v hang_v so_o fast_o upon_o all_o counsel_n and_o church_n that_o proco_n that_o ep._n ad_fw-la proco_n nazianzen_n write_v to_o a_o friend_n of_o he_o say_v he_o never_o see_v any_o council_n have_v a_o good_a end_n and_o 4._o and_o adu_n profane_a now_o c._n 4._o vincentius_n confess_v that_o not_o only_o some_o portion_n of_o the_o church_n but_o the_o whole_a church_n itself_o be_v blot_v with_o some_o new_a contagion_n so_o that_o the_o very_a papist_n themselves_n some_o of_o they_o convince_v by_o experience_n and_o the_o church_n own_o confession_n be_v drive_v in_o the_o point_n to_o come_v home_o unto_o us._n for_o thus_o write_v 60_o write_v turrecrem_fw-la sum_fw-la de_fw-fr eccl_n l._n 2_o c._n 91._o &_o l._n 3._o c._n 60_o a_o learned_a cardinal_n that_o which_o we_o say_v the_o church_n can_v err_v in_o faith_n or_o manner_n must_v thus_o be_v take_v according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o father_n that_o god_n do_v so_o assist_v his_o church_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n that_o the_o true_a faith_n shall_v never_o fail_v out_o of_o the_o same_o for_o to_o the_o world_n end_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o time_n wherein_o some_o though_o not_o all_o shall_v not_o have_v true_a faith_n work_v by_o love_n do_v not_o the_o jesuite_n see_v here_o that_o though_o all_o of_o they_o lay_v down_o the_o conclusion_n that_o the_o church_n can_v err_v yet_o some_o of_o they_o expound_v it_o so_o that_o they_o come_v round_o home_o to_o we_o and_o do_v as_o good_a as_o deny_v it_o again_o therefore_o let_v the_o jesuite_n jar_n no_o more_o about_o this_o matter_n but_o submit_v himself_o to_o the_o cardinal_n exposition_n and_o so_o we_o will_v both_o sit_v down_o friendly_a together_o at_o his_o foot_n await_v till_o either_o he_o or_o some_o other_o speak_v protestant_n again_o and_o so_o agree_v we_o in_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o question_n that_o be_v depend_v §_o 16._o the_o first_o condition_n therefore_o of_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n to_o wit_n to_o be_v infallible_a agree_v to_o the_o teach_n of_o the_o church_n now_o that_o the_o doctrine_n and_o teach_n of_o the_o church_n have_v the_o other_o condition_n to_o wit_n that_o it_o be_v such_o as_o may_v be_v easy_o know_v to_o all_o sort_n of_o man_n and_o such_o as_o may_v universal_o teach_v they_o in_o all_o point_n will_v easy_o be_v see_v after_o i_o shall_v set_v down_o and_o prove_v that_o this_o church_n be_v always_o visible_a and_o further_o what_o particular_a company_n of_o man_n be_v those_o which_o be_v this_o true_a church_n for_o have_v by_o this_o mean_v assign_v a_o particular_a company_n of_o man_n who_o according_a as_o i_o have_v prove_v be_v in_o all_o point_v teach_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o be_v by_o god_n his_o appointment_n in_o stead_n of_o christ_n in_o all_o point_n to_o teach_v we_o the_o infallible_a truth_n there_o will_v no_o doubt_n remain_v but_o that_o their_o teach_n be_v such_o as_o may_v be_v understand_v of_o all_o since_o they_o be_v live_v man_n that_o can_v conform_v their_o teach_n to_o the_o capacity_n of_o all_o sort_n and_o such_o as_o may_v sufficient_o in_o all_o point_n instruct_v we_o in_o the_o right_a faith_n that_o the_o appointment_n and_o ordinance_n of_o god_n by_o which_o as_o i_o have_v prove_v they_o be_v ordain_v to_o teach_v we_o in_o all_o point_n may_v not_o be_v in_o vain_a and_o frustrate_a of_o the_o effect_n intend_v by_o he_o let_v we_o therefore_o first_o see_v whether_o the_o church_n or_o company_n of_o faithful_a man_n of_o which_o i_o have_v already_o speak_v be_v always_o visible_a or_o not_o the_o answer_n 1_o the_o first_o condition_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n to_o be_v infallible_a agreee_v not_o to_o the_o teach_n of_o the_o church_n because_o the_o jesuite_n by_o the_o church_n mean_v 4_o mean_v see_v digress_v 16._o nu_fw-la 4_o only_o the_o pope_n and_o all_o papist_n hold_v d._n hold_v propterea_fw-la enim_fw-la sedes_fw-la apostolica_fw-la seu_fw-la romana_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la infallibilis_fw-la dicitur_fw-la quia_fw-la be_v qui_fw-la prae_fw-la est_fw-la illi_fw-la authoritatem_fw-la habet_fw-la per_fw-la se_fw-la infallibilem_fw-la gr._n de_fw-fr val._n comment_n theol_n tom_n 3._o p._n 247._o d._n the_o infalliblnes_n thereof_o consist_v in_o his_o authority_n that_o can_v err_v and_o nothing_o else_o neither_o can_v he_o assign_v any_o company_n or_o state_n of_o man_n whereby_o she_o may_v be_v suppose_v to_o manifest_v her_o teach_n but_o the_o same_o may_v be_v subject_a to_o error_n and_o in_o experience_n have_v err_v as_o we_o see_v in_o counsel_n and_o doctor_n and_o all_o other_o mean_n which_o she_o have_v use_v in_o teach_v we_o except_o that_o of_o the_o scripture_n only_o as_o i_o have_v show_v 2_o next_o though_o it_o be_v grant_v to_o be_v infallible_a and_o the_o next_o also_o yield_v which_o the_o jesuite_n now_o begin_v to_o take_v so_o much_o pain_n to_o prove_v that_o it_o be_v both_o easy_a to_o be_v know_v and_o can_v teach_v we_o universal_o in_o all_o point_n yet_o be_v it_o not_o prove_v thereby_o to_o be_v the_o rule_n because_o there_o be_v more_o require_v to_o the_o rule_n then_o this_o as_o i_o have_v show_v and_o this_o it_o borrow_v from_o the_o scripture_n as_o the_o moon_n do_v her_o light_n from_o the_o sun_n which_o show_v against_o all_o exception_n that_o the_o scripture_n itself_o be_v the_o rule_n and_o of_o great_a authority_n than_o the_o church_n in_o that_o these_o thing_n be_v original_o in_o the_o scripture_n from_o whence_o the_o church_n but_o borrow_v whatsoever_o she_o partake_v thereof_o though_o ult._n though_o igitur_fw-la quicquid_fw-la habet_fw-la boni_fw-la a●_n perficit_fw-la scriptura_fw-la quicquid_fw-la pleni_fw-la ac_fw-la solidi_fw-la id_fw-la habet_fw-la ab_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la quae_fw-la implet_fw-la eum_fw-la qui_fw-la implet_fw-la omne_fw-la pag._n 434._o ecclesia_fw-la a●unt_fw-la constituta_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la tertimonium_fw-la exhibeat_fw-la divinis_fw-la libris_fw-la quis_fw-la
conc._n trid._n sicid_n come_v innocen_n gentil_n pag._n 132._o 135_o 158._o etc._n etc._n the_o safe_a conduct_n that_o be_v give_v out_o for_o they_o as_o it_o be_v long_o afore_o it_o can_v be_v obtain_v so_o it_o have_v a_o clause_n that_o it_o shall_v appertain_v to_o none_o but_o such_o as_o will_v repent_v and_o return_v to_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o show_v that_o it_o be_v a_o very_a jest_n to_o mock_v the_o world_n withal_o and_o the_o liberty_n grant_v by_o the_o same_o will_v have_v prove_v no_o better_o to_o the_o protestant_n then_o that_o which_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n give_v hus_n and_o hierome_n aretin_n hierome_n vide_fw-la paralip_n ad_fw-la hist_o abb._n vrsperg_n pag._n 396._o &_o pogh_n floren._n ep_v ad_fw-la aretin_n who_o never_o go_v home_o again_o but_o contrary_a to_o all_o truth_n and_o right_n be_v unmerciful_o murder_v by_o the_o council_n now_o n._n now_o panorm_a extra_fw-la de_fw-la iureiurando_fw-la ego_fw-la n._n the_o law_n say_v that_o he_o which_o have_v security_n grant_v he_o to_o come_v have_v also_o security_n to_o return_v for_o he_o come_v not_o secure_o that_o may_v not_o safe_o return_v again_o 6_o second_o all_o the_o bishop_n be_v swear_v to_o uphold_v the_o papacy_n that_o it_o may_v appear_v they_o come_v prepare_v to_o do_v that_o they_o do_v the_o oath_n be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o 9_o the_o ego_fw-la n._n de_fw-fr iureiurand_n in_o decret_a greg._n 9_o decretal_n ay_o n._n bishop_n from_o this_o day_n forward_o will_v be_v faithful_a to_o s._n peter_n and_o to_o the_o holy_a church_n of_o rome_n and_o to_o my_o lord_n the_o pope_n and_o his_o successor_n the_o papacy_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n will_v i_o help_v defend_v and_o hold_v against_o all_o man_n so_o help_v i_o god_n and_o his_o holy_a gospel_n now_o supra_fw-la now_o papat●●_n id_fw-la est_fw-la principatum_fw-la tam_fw-la in_o spiritualibus_fw-la quam_fw-la in_o temporalibus_fw-la dic_fw-la regulas_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la canon_n summorum_fw-la pontificum_fw-la etc._n etc._n panorm_a ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la this_o papacy_n be_v a_o principality_n in_o thing_n both_o temporal_a and_o spiritual_a and_o these_o rule_n be_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o other_o doctor_n allow_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n so_o that_o this_o council_n judge_v before_o it_o hear_v nay_o they_o will_v not_o hear_v but_o come_v every_o man_n prepare_v to_o condemn_v and_o therefore_o examen_fw-la therefore_o such_o as_o be_v catharinus_n dom._n à_fw-la soto_n cornelius_n must_n salapusius_n ciconia_n fontidonius_fw-la baptista_n fornerius_n and_o other_o whereof_o read_v innocent_a gentille_n examen_fw-la at_o every_o session_n they_o have_v certain_a sermon_n preach_v by_o friar_n tend_v to_o nothing_o but_o rail_n against_o the_o protestant_n and_o incite_v the_o council_n against_o they_o whereunto_o they_o add_v another_o policy_n by_o spread_a 3._o spread_a innocen_n gentille_n pag._n 32._o boz_n de_fw-fr sign_n eccles_n lib._n 18._o cap._n 3._o report_n of_o one_o abdisu_n that_o shall_v be_v patriarch_n of_o the_o assyrian_n and_o be_v come_v to_o rome_n to_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n and_o religion_n with_o many_o admirable_a particular_n all_o which_o news_n be_v spread_v for_o the_o nonce_n to_o fill_v man_n mind_n with_o a_o conceit_n and_o like_n of_o that_o which_o they_o mean_v in_o the_o council_n to_o decree_v the_o which_o partiality_n and_o cunning_a when_o the_o prince_n of_o europe_n see_v 110._o see_v see_v illyr_n protest_v count_n council_n &_o innocent_a gentille_n pag._n 28_o 31._o 96._o 98._o 110._o they_o send_v their_o protestation_n against_o the_o council_n as_o unsufficient_a to_o reform_v religion_n namely_o the_o emperor_n charles_n the_o french_a king_n the_o king_n of_o england_n and_o denmark_n the_o state_n of_o helvetia_n and_o other_o 7_o three_o in_o try_v the_o controversy_n they_o examine_v not_o by_o the_o scripture_n only_o but_o by_o tradition_n 4._o tradition_n sess_n 4._o also_o which_o afore_o that_o time_n no_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o believe_v and_o that_o which_o be_v worse_o there_o do_v nothing_o pass_v till_o the_o pope_n with_o his_o consistory_n at_o home_n have_v see_v it_o and_o whatsoever_o he_o fancy_v that_o be_v decree_v for_o which_o purpose_n there_o go_v continual_a post_n between_o trent_n and_o rome_n and_o while_o the_o doctor_n pro_fw-la forma_fw-la tantùm_fw-la be_v dispute_v at_o trent_n the_o pope_n be_v engross_n the_o canon_n at_o rome_n which_o be_v return_v in_o packet_n be_v solemn_o publish_v in_o the_o council_n and_o thus_o they_o measure_v sometime_o with_o a_o wrong_a rule_n and_o sometime_o with_o no_o rule_n at_o all_o and_o though_o they_o have_v measure_v with_o the_o right_a rule_n yet_o they_o do_v it_o not_o right_o for_o that_o they_o apply_v not_o the_o doctrine_n to_o the_o rule_n but_o bend_v the_o rule_n to_o their_o own_o doctrine_n turn_v the_o scripture_n violent_o to_o serve_v their_o opinion_n for_o in_o the_o four_o session_n they_o decree_v that_o no_o man_n shall_v give_v any_o other_o exposition_n of_o scripture_n than_o such_o as_o may_v agree_v with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n now_o that_o doctrine_n be_v the_o thing_n that_o shall_v be_v examine_v and_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o rule_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v examine_v by_o and_o therefore_o they_o wrest_v the_o rule_n to_o their_o opinion_n 8_o so_o that_o if_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o examine_v the_o teach_n of_o the_o church_n as_o the_o jesuite_n hold_v yet_o this_o example_n of_o the_o trent_n council_n may_v teach_v he_o that_o at_o least_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o try_v whether_o the_o church_n proceed_v aright_o in_o teach_v as_o many_o papist_n upon_o experience_n of_o these_o deal_n no_o doubt_n have_v not_o be_v afraid_a to_o examine_v thing_n pretend_v to_o be_v already_o conclude_v by_o counsel_n else_o that_o church_n be_v in_o a_o miserable_a plight_n that_o will_v yield_v we_o no_o reason_n of_o her_o faith_n but_o her_o own_o bare_a word_n and_o much_o doubt_v herself_o that_o will_v suffer_v none_o to_o try_v her_o teach_n by_o so_o even_o a_o rule_n as_o be_v the_o scripture_n and_o all_o papist_n her_o child_n be_v in_o worse_a case_n than_o scholiis_fw-la than_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d vita_fw-la aristoph_n praefixa_fw-la scholiis_fw-la he_o that_o be_v judge_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o philip_n of_o aegina_n only_o because_o his_o mother_n say_v so_o for_o they_o must_v not_o only_o believe_v god_n be_v their_o father_n because_o she_o tell_v they_o so_o but_o they_o must_v take_v her_o word_n too_o that_o christ_n be_v her_o husband_n contrary_a to_o a_o notorious_a suspicion_n that_o have_v long_o go_v of_o she_o and_o will_v be_v better_o clear_v then_o by_o her_o bare_a word_n 237._o word_n nos_fw-la iustitiam_fw-la nostram_fw-la &_o ecclesiae_fw-la sponsae_fw-la nostrae_fw-la nolentes_fw-la negligere_fw-la say_v boniface_n 8._o de_fw-fr immunit_fw-la eccle_n c._n quoniam_fw-la in_o sexto_fw-la &_o ibid._n de_fw-fr elect_v c._n ubi_fw-la periculum_fw-la §_o caeterumque_fw-la condemn_a by_o bernard_n epist_n 237._o that_o she_o be_v the_o pope_n concubine_n and_o have_v have_v many_o child_n by_o he_o out_o of_o lawful_a wedlock_n §_o 32._o the_o mark_n be_v especial_o those_o four_o which_o be_v gather_v out_o of_o scripture_n and_o express_o set_v down_o as_o property_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o constantinopolitan_a creed_n which_o be_v receive_v common_o of_o all_o and_o insert_v even_o in_o the_o protestant_n communion_n book_n una_fw-la sancta_fw-la catholica_fw-la apostolica_fw-la one_o holy_a catholic_a apostolic_a by_o all_o which_o if_o i_o have_v leisure_n i_o may_v show_v at_o large_a how_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o company_n which_o communicate_v and_o agree_v in_o profession_n of_o faith_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o only_a true_a church_n and_o that_o the_o protestant_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o company_n which_o from_o luther_n time_n hitherward_o have_v oppose_v themselves_o against_o the_o roman_a church_n neither_o all_o nor_o any_o particular_a sect_n of_o they_o can_v be_v the_o true_a church_n for_o the_o roman_a church_n only_o be_v true_o one_o holy_a catholic_a and_o apostolic_a whereas_o the_o protestant_n either_o want_v all_o or_o at_o the_o least_o some_o of_o these_o property_n the_o answer_n 1_o the_o constantinopolitan_a creed_n and_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n teach_v these_o four_o to_o be_v quality_n abide_v in_o the_o church_n and_o certain_a adjunct_n belong_v thereunto_o but_o not_o that_o they_o be_v the_o mark_n whereby_o to_o find_v it_o for_o we_o call_v that_o a_o mark_n whereby_o the_o thing_n question_v be_v undoubted_o bring_v to_o our_o knowledge_n which_o these_o four_o in_o the_o question_n of_o the_o
church_n perform_v not_o for_o first_o themselves_o be_v declare_v and_o prove_v by_o another_o thing_n as_o the_o jesuit_n himself_o unaware_o grant_v in_o that_o he_o say_v they_o be_v gather_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n and_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n which_o be_v all_o one_o as_o if_o he_o free_o confess_v the_o word_n of_o god_n when_o all_o be_v do_v be_v the_o thing_n whereby_o the_o church_n must_v be_v find_v and_o the_o true_a faith_n contain_v therein_o be_v know_v soon_o and_o better_o than_o the_o church_n which_o be_v not_o assure_v to_o we_o till_o those_o thing_n be_v find_v therein_o which_o agree_v with_o the_o scripture_n and_o article_n of_o faith_n this_o must_v be_v note_v because_o have_v in_o the_o eight_o former_a section_n weary_v himself_o with_o strive_v against_o we_o and_o use_v much_o diligence_n to_o persuade_v that_o the_o true_a faith_n be_v no_o competent_a mark_n to_o discern_v the_o church_n by_o yet_o now_o of_o his_o own_o accord_n he_o come_v home_o to_o we_o and_o in_o his_o first_o word_n submit_v himself_o to_o that_o which_o before_o he_o gainsay_v and_o so_o free_o revoke_v all_o his_o former_a argument_n 2_o next_o they_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o property_n of_o the_o church_n neither_o and_o therefore_o the_o unlikely_a of_o a_o thousand_o to_o be_v mark_n thereof_o for_o le●ic_fw-la for_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d phavo●in_n le●ic_fw-la they_o be_v not_o always_o inseparable_o and_o incommunicable_o find_v therein_o that_o be_v such_o as_o at_o all_o time_n remain_v in_o the_o church_n alone_o and_o in_o every_o part_n thereof_o for_o in_o the_o beginning_n it_o want_v antiquity_n and_o succession_n and_o in_o the_o progress_n it_o have_v sometime_o be_v without_o unity_n and_o universality_n and_o at_o all_o time_n the_o false_a church_n have_v make_v so_o fair_a show_n of_o all_o four_o that_o no_o man_n can_v distinguish_v they_o but_o by_o retire_v to_o the_o doctrine_n for_o chrysostome_n imperf_n chrysostome_n hom._n 49._o in_o math._n open_a imperf_n write_v thus_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o belong_v to_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n in_o truth_n the_o heresy_n may_v also_o have_v in_o schism_n they_o have_v church_n and_o the_o doctrine_n the_o the_o book_n not_o the_o doctrine_n sacred_a scripture_n yea_o bishop_n and_o other_o degree_n of_o clergy_n baptism_n the_o eucharist_n and_o all_o other_o thing_n yea_o 24.5.23_o yea_o a_o pretence_n of_o christ_n as_o math._n 24.5.23_o christ_n himself_o so_o that_o if_o any_o one_o will_v know_v which_o be_v christ_n true_a church_n he_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a in_o such_o a_o confusion_n to_o do_v it_o but_o only_o by_o the_o scripture_n and_o of_o unity_n s._n basil_n dei_fw-la basil_n aschet_fw-mi prooem_n de_fw-fr iudicio_fw-la dei_fw-la say_v he_o find_v much_o unity_n among_o all_o other_o profession_n only_o in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n he_o observe_v great_a strife_n and_o vehement_a dissension_n and_o the_o pastor_n themselves_o distract_v with_o all_o contrariety_n of_o mind_n and_o opinion_n of_o succession_n nazianzen_n athan_n nazianzen_n de_fw-fr laud_fw-la athan_n say_v this_o be_v proper_o succession_n to_o succeed_v in_o godliness_n for_o he_o that_o profess_v the_o same_o faith_n be_v also_o partaker_n of_o the_o same_o succession_n and_o he_o that_o hold_v a_o contrary_a faith_n must_v be_v repute_v contrary_a to_o the_o succession_n and_o facile_fw-la and_o d._n 40._o non_fw-fr est_fw-fr facile_fw-la the_o canon_n law_n they_o be_v not_o the_o child_n of_o the_o saint_n which_o occupy_v their_o room_n but_o which_o do_v their_o work_n of_o holiness_n supra_fw-la holiness_n vbi_fw-la supra_fw-la chrysostome_n say_v in_o former_a time_n one_o may_v have_v know_v christ_n church_n by_o her_o manner_n when_o the_o conversation_n of_o the_o christian_n either_o all_o or_o many_o be_v holy_a but_o now_o christian_n be_v either_o as_o bad_a or_o worse_o than_o heretic_n or_o gentile_n and_o there_o be_v more_o continency_n find_v among_o they_o though_o it_o be_v in_o schism_n then_o among_o christian_n and_o again_o math._n again_o hom._n 4._o in_o math._n whatsoever_o kind_n of_o holiness_n the_o servant_n of_o god_n have_v in_o truth_n the_o servant_n of_o satan_n may_v have_v in_o likeness_n for_o the_o devil_n have_v he_o that_o be_v meek_a and_o humble_a that_o be_v chaste_a and_o give_v alm_n that_o fast_o and_o do_v every_o good_a deed_n which_o god_n have_v appoint_v for_o the_o salvation_n of_o mankind_n and_o these_o form_n of_o godliness_n have_v the_o devil_n bring_v in_o to_o seduce_v we_o that_o a_o confusion_n be_v make_v between_o good_a and_o counterfeit_n simple_a man_n which_o know_v not_o the_o difference_n between_o goodness_n in_o deed_n and_o goodness_n in_o show_n while_o they_o seek_v the_o good_n servant_n of_o god_n may_v light_v upon_o the_o devil_n seducement_n 3_o and_o therefore_o allow_v the_o jesuite_n what_o leisure_n he_o will_v though_o otherwise_o any_o reader_n may_v perceive_v he_o take_v himself_o leisure_n enough_o that_o pen_v this_o discourse_n and_o though_o brief_o in_o show_n yet_o in_o sum_n and_o effect_n have_v couch_v whatsoever_o be_v extant_a in_o any_o papist_n write_v concern_v the_o matter_n question_v but_o yet_o give_v he_o a_o long_a day_n he_o can_v by_o these_o mark_n make_v it_o infallible_o sure_a that_o his_o roman_a catholic_a be_v the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o this_o himself_o know_v in_o his_o own_o conscience_n for_o bellarmine_n 3._o bellarmine_n de_n not_o eccl._n cap._n 3._o speak_v of_o these_o very_a mark_n confess_v they_o make_v it_o not_o evident_o true_a that_o it_o be_v the_o church_n but_o evident_o probable_a whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o jesuite_n for_o all_o his_o set_a countenance_n yet_o know_v well_o enough_o these_o his_o mark_n bring_v probability_n but_o no_o certainty_n and_o i_o be_o sure_a all_o papist_n of_o learning_n will_v grant_v they_o be_v no_o mark_n at_o all_o but_o when_o they_o concur_v with_o true_a faith_n whereas_o they_o say_v express_o 18._o express_o greg._n de_fw-fr valent_n comment_n theol._n tom_n 3._o disp_n 1._o qu._n 1._o punct_a 7._o §._o 18._o that_o among_o whosoever_o the_o truth_n of_o doctrine_n and_o sacrament_n be_v hold_v ecclesiam_fw-la hold_v ex_fw-la ijs_fw-la constare_fw-la veram_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la thereby_o it_o be_v know_v the_o church_n be_v there_o and_o therefore_o the_o jesuite_n may_v show_v his_o skill_n in_o fit_v his_o four_o mark_n to_o his_o roman_a church_n and_o remove_v they_o from_o we_o but_o he_o shall_v never_o come_v direct_o to_o the_o point_n until_o he_o try_v we_o by_o the_o scripture_n and_o thereby_o sufficient_o prove_v that_o which_o be_v easy_o say_v we_o be_v not_o the_o church_n of_o god_n but_o a_o company_n stand_v in_o opposition_n since_o luther_n time_n &_o divide_v into_o particular_a sect_n §_o 33._o first_o the_o protestant_n church_n be_v not_o perfect_o one_o or_o uniform_a in_o dogmatic_a point_n of_o faith_n but_o vari_v according_a to_o the_o variety_n of_o time_n and_o person_n now_o hold_v one_o thing_n than_o another_o the_o learned_a man_n thereof_o be_v so_o much_o at_o jar_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n that_o it_o be_v hard_o to_o find_v three_o in_o all_o point_n of_o one_o opinion_n the_o answer_n 1_o the_o papist_n themselves_o acknowledge_v 83._o acknowledge_v luc._n pinel_n thes_n vademont_n thes_n 83._o that_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n consist_v in_o this_o that_o the_o member_n thereof_o believe_v the_o same_o thing_n use_v the_o same_o worship_n of_o god_n and_o retain_v the_o same_o sacrament_n but_o the_o scripture_n more_o full_o teach_v we_o how_o it_o be_v one_o first_o because_o 4.4_o because_o ephes_n 4.4_o it_o be_v from_o one_o beginning_n which_o be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o as_o one_o soul_n quicken_v and_o move_v all_o the_o member_n next_o 4.15_o next_o eph._n 4.15_o it_o have_v but_o one_o head_n which_o be_v christ_n and_o three_o 12.5_o three_o eph._n 4.5_o rom._n 12.5_o it_o be_v but_o one_o body_n and_o one_o society_n partake_v the_o same_o doctrine_n sacrament_n &_o worship_n of_o god_n the_o which_o unity_n if_o the_o jesuit_n can_v show_v to_o be_v want_v among_o we_o good_a reason_n the_o game_n be_v his_o but_o for_o the_o do_v hereof_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o say_v we_o vary_v unless_o he_o can_v make_v true_a demonstration_n that_o the_o variance_n be_v in_o faith_n and_o this_o faith_n be_v change_v with_o time_n and_o person_n the_o which_o according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o his_o sect_n he_o say_v confident_o but_o show_v not_o whereas_o we_o for_o our_o purgation_n name_v europe_n name_v a_o book_n so_o call_v to_o be_v buy_v in_o every_o shop_n and_o contain_v the_o confession_n of_o all_o the_o several_a protestant_a church_n in_o europe_n the_o harmony_n of_o confession_n wherein_o
of_o england_n yet_o do_v not_o basil_n therefore_o think_v it_o be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n as_o the_o jesuite_n dispute_v against_o we_o much_o less_o do_v he_o separate_v himself_o from_o it_o but_o acknowledge_v the_o envy_n of_o satan_n who_o can_v set_v brethren_n at_o odds_n in_o their_o father_n own_o house_n who_o be_v to_o be_v advise_v to_o reconcile_v themselves_o and_o at_o length_n to_o embrace_v unity_n when_o they_o see_v papist_n their_o enemy_n scorn_v they_o and_o clap_v their_o hand_n at_o the_o bicker_n lest_o all_o to_o late_a when_o god_n judgement_n fall_v upon_o they_o as_o they_o do_v upon_o the_o primitive_a church_n for_o that_o same_o sin_n they_o learn_v by_o their_o own_o calamity_n to_o profess_v the_o faith_n in_o unity_n protesilao_n unity_n philostrat_v heroic_a in_o protesilao_n one_o say_v the_o communion_n of_o good_a thing_n often_o time_n beget_v envy_v but_o when_o man_n communicate_v in_o misery_n they_o begin_v to_o love_v one_o another_o recompense_v compassion_n for_o compassion_n §_o 34._o and_o which_o chief_o be_v to_o be_v ponder_v as_o principal_o appertain_v to_o this_o mark_n of_o unity_n they_o have_v no_o mean_n to_o end_v their_o controversy_n and_o so_o to_o return_v to_o unity_n and_o to_o continue_v therein_o for_o while_o as_o they_o admit_v no_o rule_n of_o faith_n but_o only_a scripture_n which_o scripture_n diverse_a man_n expound_v diverse_o according_a to_o the_o diverse_a humour_n and_o opinion_n or_o fancy_n of_o every_o one_o not_o admit_v any_o head_n or_o chief_a rule_n infallible_o guide_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o who_o censure_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n all_o the_o rest_n shall_v submit_v themselves_o ut_fw-la capite_fw-la constituto_fw-la schismatis_fw-la tollatur_fw-la occasio_fw-la a_o head_n or_o chiele_v ruler_n be_v ordain_v occasion_n of_o schism_n may_v be_v take_v away_o while_o they_o do_v thus_o as_o they_o all_o do_v always_o thus_o all_o proclaim_v to_o be_v rule_v by_o only_a scripture_n and_o yet_o almost_o every_o one_o expound_v scripture_n diverse_o and_o one_o contrary_a to_o another_o according_a to_o the_o seem_n of_o every_o one_o sense_n and_o never_o a_o one_o admit_v one_o superior_a infallible_o guide_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n to_o who_o judgement_n all_o the_o rest_n shall_v submit_v themselves_o while_o i_o say_v they_o do_v thus_o it_o be_v impossible_a they_o shall_v have_v the_o unity_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v require_v as_o a_o mark_n whereby_o to_o know_v christ_n true_a church_n the_o answer_n 1_o the_o jesuit_n have_v object_v that_o there_o be_v no_o unity_n among_o we_o now_o give_v his_o reason_n why_o there_o can_v be_v none_o because_o we_o make_v the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o rule_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o indeed_o it_o be_v true_a that_o all_o protestant_n profess_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n which_o the_o jesuite_n may_v repeat_v as_o often_o as_o be_v please_v come_v over_o with_o it_o again_o and_o again_o but_o no_o papist_n can_v confute_v it_o yea_o many_o papist_n seem_v in_o express_a term_n themselves_o to_o grant_v it_o as_o i_o have_v show_v digression_n 3._o where_o the_o point_n be_v handle_v at_o large_a and_o whither_o the_o reader_n must_v betake_v himself_o for_o the_o trial_n only_o i_o will_v add_v the_o word_n of_o acosta_n 15._o acosta_n biblio_fw-la select_v l._n 2_o c._n 15._o report_v and_o allow_v by_o possevinus_n the_o jesuite_n that_o the_o diligent_a attentive_a and_o frequent_a read_n as_o also_o the_o meditation_n and_o conference_n of_o the_o scripture_n have_v always_o seem_v to_o they_o the_o chief_a rule_n of_o all_o to_o understand_v by_o and_o i_o will_v repeat_v 2._o repeat_v de_fw-fr verb._n dei_fw-la l._n 1._o c._n 2._o the_o word_n of_o bellarmine_n the_o sacred_a scripture_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n most_o certain_a and_o most_o secure_a yea_o god_n have_v teach_v we_o by_o corporal_a letter_n which_o we_o may_v see_v and_o read_v what_o his_o will_n be_v we_o shall_v believe_v concern_v he_o here_o be_v three_o of_o our_o principal_a adversary_n say_v as_o much_o as_o we_o do_v and_o yet_o the_o jesuite_n allow_v it_o not_o this_o his_o vanity_n common_a with_o he_o in_o every_o issue_n between_o we_o must_v be_v chastise_v with_o those_o word_n of_o austin_n 6._o austin_n epist_n 6._o see_v how_o they_o grow_v worse_o and_o worse_o who_o runagate_n babble_v restrain_v neither_o with_o fear_n nor_o shame_n wander_v up_o and_o down_o without_o any_o punishment_n 2_o and_o though_o we_o grant_v that_o diverse_a man_n expound_v the_o scripture_n diverse_o according_a to_o their_o fancy_n yea_o contrary_a one_o to_o another_o not_o submit_v the_o exposition_n to_o one_o chief_a head_n yet_o can_v this_o disable_v it_o from_o be_v a_o sufficient_a rule_n to_o keep_v we_o in_o unity_n because_o the_o man_n that_o thus_o diverse_o expound_v be_v not_o as_o he_o speak_v all_o and_o every_o one_o that_o profess_v our_o religion_n but_o some_o private_a man_n err_v through_o ignorance_n or_o affection_n the_o open_a ministry_n of_o our_o church_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n cleave_v uniform_o to_o one_o and_o the_o same_o exposition_n which_o from_o the_o beginning_n it_o never_o alter_v and_o the_o point_n wherein_o some_o among_o we_o vary_v be_v not_o the_o article_n of_o salvation_n wherein_o alone_o the_o reason_n of_o unity_n do_v consist_v but_o some_o difficult_a place_n the_o ignorance_n whereof_o remove_v not_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n all_o which_o i_o have_v 10._o have_v §_o 7._o nu_fw-la 2._o §_o ●_o nu_fw-la 7._o &_o inde_fw-la §_o 12_o nu_fw-la 2._o &_o inde_fw-la digress_v 8._o &_o 10._o already_o handle_v in_o that_o which_o go_v before_o and_o therefore_o refer_v myself_o to_o the_o place_n if_o any_o more_o be_v to_o be_v say_v to_o this_o matter_n and_o whereas_o he_o think_v we_o shall_v admit_v one_o head_n or_o chief_a rule_n to_o who_o we_o shall_v submit_v all_o our_o faith_n that_o a_o head_n be_v ordain_v the_o occasion_n of_o schism_n may_v be_v take_v away_o herein_o he_o talk_v absurd_o for_o first_o we_o acknowledge_v one_o head_n and_o chief_a ruler_n such_o as_o he_o mention_v even_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n who_o office_n it_o be_v to_o expound_v the_o scripture_n and_o this_o exposition_n he_o utter_v in_o the_o scripture_n itself_o 11.12_o itself_o digr_n 11.12_o as_o i_o have_v show_v next_o if_o we_o will_v also_o according_o to_o his_o fancy_n betake_v ourselves_o to_o the_o external_a authority_n of_o some_o man_n or_o company_n of_o man_n rely_v upon_o they_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o exposition_n yet_o this_o will_v not_o please_v he_o neither_o unless_o the_o pope_n be_v he_o that_o you_o may_v see_v the_o vain_a importunity_n of_o the_o jesuite_n three_o when_o such_o a_o head_n as_o himself_o mean_v admit_v it_o also_o to_o be_v the_o pope_n be_v agree_v upon_o and_o all_o power_n to_o expound_v the_o scripture_n put_v into_o his_o hand_n yet_o still_o the_o same_o difficulty_n will_v remain_v that_o he_o object_v against_o us._n first_o that_o his_o determination_n though_o never_o so_o plain_o publish_v will_v not_o satisfy_v such_o as_o be_v contentious_a 24._o contentious_a see_v dig●_n 24._o for_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n notwithstanding_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n there_o be_v contention_n next_o that_o whatsoever_o he_o determine_v if_o it_o be_v the_o truth_n he_o must_v fetch_v it_o and_o show_v it_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n and_o so_o still_o we_o have_v as_o competent_a a_o judge_n for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o unity_n as_o the_o jesuite_n can_v name_v any_o and_o when_o he_o have_v traverse_v ground_n and_o fetch_v a_o compass_n how_o he_o can_v to_o avoid_v this_o judgement_n yet_o the_o violence_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o his_o own_o experience_n shall_v tumble_v he_o headlong_o into_o it_o again_o 3_o the_o phrase_n borrow_v out_o of_o jerom_n ut_fw-la capite_fw-la constituto_fw-la etc._n etc._n mean_v not_o the_o pope_n or_o any_o man_n else_o that_o shall_v be_v judge_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o the_o pastor_n and_o bishop_n ordain_v in_o every_o church_n for_o preach_v and_o government_n which_o we_o have_v and_o use_v according_a to_o jeroms_n meaning_n in_o a_o course_n more_o godly_a and_o profitable_a then_o that_o which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n usurp_v §_o 35._o contrary_a the_o roman_a church_n be_v always_o one_o and_o uniform_a in_o faith_n never_o vary_v or_o hold_v any_o dogmatic_a point_n contrary_a to_o that_o which_o in_o former_a time_n from_o the_o beginning_n it_o do_v hold_v all_o the_o learned_a man_n thereof_o though_o sometime_o differ_v in_o matter_n not_o define_v by_o the_o church_n yet_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n all_o conspire_v in_o one_o the_o answer_n 1_o that_o which_o the_o
jesuite_n now_o begin_v to_o avouch_v concern_v the_o unity_n of_o his_o roman_a church_n be_v all_o untrue_a as_o i_o will_v sufficient_o show_v in_o the_o three_o next_o digression_n and_o shall_v have_v occasion_n further_o to_o manifest_v digress_v manifest_v digress_v when_o i_o come_v to_o handle_v the_o note_n of_o universality_n this_o be_v the_o truth_n and_o all_o that_o can_v be_v say_v for_o it_o 3._o it_o isid_n pelus_n ep_v 408_o lib._n 3._o which_o pelusiota_n note_v in_o all_o heretic_n that_o the_o name_n of_o peace_n be_v indeed_o every_o where_n but_o the_o thing_n itself_o no_v where_o and_o as_o donatist_n as_o aug._n epist_n 162_o contra_fw-la pertin_n donatist_n it_o be_v among_o the_o donatist_n they_o sacrifice_v in_o schism_n and_o dissension_n and_o greet_v the_o world_n with_o the_o name_n of_o peace_n who_o they_o drive_v from_o the_o peace_n of_o their_o salvation_n this_o their_o unity_n be_v of_o seven_o sort_n 8._o sort_n illyric_n de_fw-fr sect_n whitak_n controu_fw-fr 2._o the_o eccle_n q._n 5._o c._n 8._o as_o some_o learned_a man_n among_o we_o have_v send_v they_o word_n and_o we_o think_v our_o jar_n such_o as_o they_o be_v be_v better_o than_o it_o 2_o the_o first_o be_v the_o unity_n of_o darkness_n in_o that_o they_o be_v provident_a to_o maintain_v outward_a peace_n lest_o their_o kingdom_n shall_v come_v to_o nought_o 12.16_o nought_o mat._n 12.16_o such_o a_o unity_n there_o be_v in_o hell_n and_o one_o bear_v they_o say_v will_v lie_v with_o another_o 5._o another_o petr._n martyr_n decad_a l._n 3._o c._n 5._o and_o the_o very_a cannibal_n use_v not_o to_o eat_v they_o of_o their_o own_o country_n the_o second_o be_v a_o heathenish_a unity_n when_o man_n for_o their_o credit_n will_v not_o seem_v contentious_a as_o it_o be_v very_o certain_a they_o see_v innumerable_a abuse_n in_o their_o church_n and_o doctrine_n and_o yet_o may_v be_v content_a to_o agree_v in_o all_o lest_o the_o world_n shall_v despise_v they_o the_o three_o be_v brutish_a unity_n when_o their_o people_n consent_n because_o they_o be_v beastly_a ignorant_a and_o know_v not_o their_o ow_v abomination_n so_o 1._o so_o staphyl_n apol_n part_n 1._o the_o collier_n say_v he_o be_v of_o the_o same_o belief_n the_o church_n be_v and_o yet_o he_o know_v neither_o the_o church_n nor_o h●s_n own_o belief_n the_o four_o be_v judas_n his_o unity_n who_o keep_v company_n with_o the_o other_o apostle_n because_o he_o gain_v by_o it_o as_o many_o cleave_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o agree_v therein_o because_o it_o enrich_v they_o and_o now_o &_o then_o as_o a_o sanctuary_n free_v they_o from_o the_o danger_n of_o their_o sensuality_n the_o five_o be_v tyrannical_a unity_n when_o man_n by_o fear_n be_v constrain_v to_o agree_v the_o pope_n consistory_n and_o spanish_a inquisition_n prevail_v more_o with_o their_o people_n then_o the_o conscience_n of_o religion_n as_o will_v soon_o appear_v if_o they_o be_v take_v away_o the_o sixth_o be_v herod_n unity_n for_o as_o he_o and_o pilate_n which_o be_v secret_o foe_n yet_o agree_v together_o to_o crucify_v christ_n so_o these_o man_n consent_v in_o one_o against_o the_o truth_n and_o conspire_v together_o more_o to_o suppress_v we_o then_o to_o establish_v any_o sincerity_n among_o themselves_o the_o last_o be_v the_o unity_n of_o 15.4_o of_o judg._n 15.4_o sampsons_n fox_n which_o be_v tie_v together_o by_o the_o tail_n but_o all_o their_o head_n be_v loose_a and_o every_o one_o look_v a_o sundry_a way_n so_o these_o man_n stick_v together_o by_o the_o tail_n in_o their_o religion_n all_o embrace_v one_o conceit_n of_o popery_n but_o in_o the_o maintenance_n and_o exposition_n of_o the_o same_o look_v and_o think_v as_o many_o way_n as_o there_o be_v head_n among_o they_o only_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o government_n they_o all_o profess_v because_o it_o be_v their_o vantage_n and_o in_o he_o all_o their_o tail_n meet_v together_o this_o be_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o jesuite_n church_n and_o the_o true_a genealogy_n thereof_o which_o we_o be_v content_a to_o acknowledge_v unto_o they_o digression_n 22._o object_v the_o behaviour_n of_o the_o papist_n towards_o the_o divine_a scripture_n thereby_o to_o prove_v their_o vary_v from_o that_o which_o in_o former_a time_n the_o primitive_a church_n of_o rome_n believe_v 3_o but_o whereas_o he_o say_v the_o roman_a church_n have_v not_o swerve_v from_o any_o point_n which_o former_o it_o hold_v this_o be_v untrue_a because_o it_o be_v decline_v from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o the_o old_a roman_a church_n till_o antichrist_n break_v into_o it_o hold_v inviolable_o and_o for_o proof_n hereof_o i_o will_v not_o now_o stand_v to_o compare_v the_o present_a roman_a faith_n with_o the_o scripture_n but_o only_o touch_v certain_a practice_n of_o the_o papist_n about_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v evident_a sign_n and_o clear_a demonstration_n of_o that_o i_o say_v and_o first_o their_o canonise_a now_o after_o 1500._o year_n of_o the_o vulgar_a latin_a against_o the_o hebrew_n and_o greek_a original_n for_o 4._o for_o sess_n 4._o the_o trent_n council_n charge_v all_o man_n to_o use_v it_o as_o the_o authentical_a text_n in_o all_o their_o reading_n disputation_n sermon_n and_o exposition_n and_o that_o they_o do_v not_o reject_v it_o under_o any_o pretence_n whatsoever_o yea_o other_o yea_o galatin_n de_fw-fr arcun_fw-fr l._n 1._o c._n 8._o leo_fw-la castrens_fw-la apologet_v lib._n 2._o and_o other_o the_o learned_a man_n among_o they_o accuse_v the_o hebrew_n and_o greek_a of_o corruption_n manifold_a and_o their_o general_a opinion_n thereof_o may_v be_v discover_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o ●oledoes_n conceit_n prolog_n conceit_n f._n simen_n bibl_n complut_fw-la in_o prolog_n who_o put_v forth_o the_o bible_n in_o diverse_a language_n and_o therein_o print_v his_o latin_a in_o the_o midst_n between_o the_o hebrew_n and_o greek_a say_v he_o have_v place_v they_o as_o the_o two_o thief_n on_o either_o side_n but_o the_o roman_a or_o latin_a church_n he_o have_v put_v in_o the_o midst_n between_o they_o as_o jesus_n christ_n and_o yet_o this_o their_o latin_a so_o swarm_v with_o monstrous_a corruption_n that_o vulg_n that_o lin_n la._n the_o ope_v gen_fw-la interp_v l._n 3._o ca._n 4._o reg._n bibl_a tom_n 6._o in_o var._n lect_v lat_fw-la bibl_n edit_fw-la vulg_n themselves_o complain_v of_o it_o as_o well_o as_o we_o and_o 514._o and_o molina_n in_o 1._o tho._n pag._n 399._o andrad_n defence_n trid._n lib._n 4._o alph._n mendoz._n controu_fw-fr theol_fw-it q._n 7_o pag._n 514._o diverse_a of_o they_o justify_v with_o we_o against_o their_o fellow_n the_o hebrew_n and_o greek_a and_o some_o that_o mislike_v it_o yet_o confess_v b._n confess_v possevin_n bibl_n select_v l._n 2._o c._n 6._o sixt._n sen._n bibl_a sanct_n l_o 8._o pag._n 318._o b._n the_o error_n suppose_v to_o be_v therein_o be_v not_o of_o such_o weight_n as_o that_o they_o touch_v the_o perfection_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o thing_n pertain_v to_o faith_n and_o good_a manner_n now_o it_o be_v unlikely_a they_o will_v strive_v thus_o about_o a_o edition_n against_o all_o antiquity_n and_o probability_n but_o that_o they_o see_v some_o evidence_n in_o the_o original_n which_o by_o their_o latin_n they_o hope_v they_o can_v avoid_v 4_o next_o 1.9_o next_o see_v digr_n 1.9_o they_o complain_v against_o the_o scripture_n that_o they_o contain_v not_o all_o thing_n needful_a to_o salvation_n but_o the_o best_a part_n of_o true_a religion_n be_v make_v know_v to_o we_o by_o unwritten_a tradition_n which_o if_o you_o take_v away_o many_o point_n of_o the_o faith_n will_v reel_v and_o totter_v which_o they_o may_v never_o say_v for_o shame_n if_o they_o be_v not_o decline_v from_o the_o scripture_n and_o have_v not_o devise_v this_o shift_n of_o tradition_n to_o fly_v unto_o when_o the_o scripture_n be_v press_v against_o they_o 5_o three_o 3_o three_o see_v digr_n 2._o &_o 3_o they_o forbid_v the_o people_n to_o read_v the_o scripture_n and_o will_v not_o have_v it_o translate_v into_o the_o mother_n tongue_n which_o be_v a_o sign_n they_o mistrust_v their_o faith_n and_o doubt_v lest_o the_o people_n by_o read_v shall_v find_v it_o depart_v from_o the_o scripture_n 6_o four_o 16._o four_o see_v digr_n 16._o they_o make_v the_o pope_n judge_v over_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n 4._o scripture_n council_n trid._n sess_v 4._o forbid_v all_o other_o sense_n than_o such_o as_o agree_v with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o which_o be_v prodigious_a they_o blush_v not_o to_o say_v 2.3.7_o say_v cusan_a ep_v 2.3.7_o the_o scripture_n be_v fit_v to_o the_o time_n and_o variable_o understand_v the_o sense_n thereof_o be_v one_o while_o this_o and_o again_o another_o while_n that_o according_a as_o it_o please_v the_o church_n to_o change_v her_o judgement_n
the_o rock_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o faith_n 16._o faith_n in_o mat._n 16._o lyra_n of_o who_o sanct_n who_o l._n 4._o biblioth_n sanct_n they_o say_v that_o for_o expound_v the_o scripture_n he_o have_v not_o his_o match_n and_o 16._o and_o in_o mat._n 16._o the_o interlineary_a gloss_n and_o ibid._n and_o ibid._n burgensis_n do_v all_o thus_o 13._o thus_o concord_n l._n 2._o c._n 18._o 13._o cusanus_fw-la follow_v saint_n augustine_n exposition_n set_v down_o immediate_o before_o petram_fw-la before_o in_o d._n 19_o ita_fw-la dom._n §_o ●t_z super_fw-la hanc_fw-la petram_fw-la the_o gloss_n upon_o gratian_n say_v he_o can_v think_v that_o by_o the_o rock_n our_o lord_n point_v at_o any_o other_o thing_n then_o the_o word_n which_o peter_n answer_v he_o when_o he_o say_v thou_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n because_o upon_o that_o article_n of_o faith_n the_o church_n be_v build_v therefore_o god_n found_v the_o church_n upon_o himself_o marsilius_n 28._o marsilius_n defence_n pacis_fw-la part_n 2._o ca._n 28._o say_v upon_o this_o rock_n that_o be_v upon_o christ_n in_o who_o thou_o believe_v for_o peter_n as_o long_o as_o he_o live_v may_v err_v and_o sin_n by_o the_o liberty_n of_o his_o will_n and_o such_o a_o one_o can_v not_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n petrus_n de_fw-it alliaco_fw-it chancellor_n of_o paris_n and_o a_o cardinal_n 269._o cardinal_n recommendat_fw-la sacr●●_n scripturae_fw-la pag_n 269._o write_v thus_o we_o must_v inquire_v what_o be_v the_o rock_n whereupon_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v build_v notwithstanding_o it_o seem_v not_o that_o by_o the_o rock_n peter_n shall_v be_v understand_v but_o christ_n for_o who_o may_v establish_v the_o firmitie_n of_o the_o church_n in_o peter_n infirmity_n whereof_o ask_v the_o maid_n that_o keep_v the_o door_n and_o let_v she_o answer_v at_o who_o speech_n as_o gregory_n say_v while_o he_o fear_v death_n he_o deny_v the_o life_n therefore_o see_v peter_n have_v waver_v and_o his_o vicar_n be_v not_o firm_o ground_v sacerdotes_fw-la ground_v cumque_fw-la iam_fw-la discrepent_fw-la de_fw-la summo_fw-la petri_n sacerdotio_fw-la pontifices_fw-la &_o litigent_fw-la de_fw-la summo_fw-la pontificio_fw-la sacerdotes_fw-la see_v the_o pope_n differ_v about_o peter_n high_a priesthood_n and_o the_o priest_n agree_v not_o about_o the_o pope_n high_a bishopric_n who_o dare_v presume_v to_o say_v that_o any_o man_n of_o what_o holiness_n or_o worthiness_n soever_o whether_o priest_n or_o high_a bishop_n whether_o peter_n or_o peter_n vicar_n or_o any_o other_o but_o christ_n himself_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n christ_n therefore_o upon_o himself_o as_o upon_o a_o most_o steadie_a foundation_n establish_v his_o church_n against_o the_o church_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o upon_o this_o firm_a rock_n he_o steady_o confirm_v peter_n himself_o say_v of_o he_o the_o sentence_n premise_v upon_o this_o rock_n will_v i_o build_v 17_o thus_o it_o appear_v that_o our_o saviour_n say_v upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n mean_v thereby_o no_o more_o but_o that_o he_o will_v ground_v it_o upon_o the_o true_a faith_n of_o christ_n that_o whosoever_o will_v desire_v to_o be_v join_v to_o this_o church_n shall_v believe_v the_o same_o thing_n that_o peter_n then_o profess_v or_o else_o perish_v for_o ever_o and_o the_o word_n be_v thus_o to_o be_v expound_v thou_o be_v peter_n thy_o name_n be_v stone_n and_o thou_o have_v profess_v a_o profession_n like_o thy_o name_n answer_v the_o nature_n of_o that_o whereby_o thou_o be_v call_v and_o therefore_o thy_o name_n be_v stone_n or_o rock_n and_o the_o profession_n thou_o have_v make_v be_v like_o it_o for_o thereupon_o i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n and_o they_o which_o hold_v it_o shall_v never_o be_v move_v this_o be_v far_o from_o give_v peter_n and_o the_o pope_n any_o primacy_n and_o yet_o this_o be_v all_o the_o father_n observe_v and_o as_o much_o we_o see_v as_o the_o discreet_a sort_n of_o papist_n have_v collect_v and_o it_o be_v no_o matter_n though_o in_o the_o language_n that_o christ_n speak_v the_o same_o word_n be_v use_v for_o peter_n and_o the_o rock_n thus_o thou_o be_v cephah_n and_o upon_o this_o cephah_n i_o will_v build_v or_o if_o in_o the_o greek_a use_v by_o the_o evangelist_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v one_o thing_n to_o wit_n a_o rock_n or_o stone_n as_o if_o christ_n shall_v say_v thou_o be_v rock_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v for_o in_o the_o first_o place_n the_o word_n be_v use_v proper_o to_o signify_v peter_n name_n in_o the_o second_o appellative_o to_o lay_v down_o the_o nature_n of_o his_o profession_n which_o the_o papist_n may_v have_v observe_v from_o lexic_fw-la from_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d phavor_n lexic_fw-la phavorinus_n camers_n their_o own_o bishop_n out_o of_o who_o lexicon_n they_o borrow_v their_o speculation_n concern_v the_o synonymie_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 18_o to_o the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o text_n concern_v the_o key_n i_o answer_v that_o neither_o do_v they_o prove_v saint_n peter_n or_o the_o pope_n to_o be_v chief_a pastor_n to_o who_o definitive_a sentence_n all_o the_o church_n must_v be_v subject_a but_o that_o he_o have_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o gospel_n commit_v to_o he_o with_o the_o other_o apostle_n which_o ministry_n be_v signify_v by_o the_o key_n in_o this_o respect_n because_o mankind_n through_o the_o fall_n of_o our_o first_o parent_n lay_v plunge_v in_o the_o miserable_a bondage_n of_o sin_n and_o satan_n utter_o shut_v out_o of_o heaven_n until_o it_o please_v our_o merciful_a god_n to_o reveal_v the_o gospel_n by_o preach_v whereof_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n be_v enlighten_v the_o fetter_n of_o spiritual_a darkness_n begin_v to_o fall_v from_o he_o and_o he_o rise_v into_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n will_n so_o that_o by_o believe_v in_o christ_n he_o be_v set_v at_o liberty_n from_o the_o prison_n of_o sin_n and_o condemnation_n and_o the_o door_n of_o grace_n and_o life_n be_v open_v to_o he_o this_o be_v do_v by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o gospel_n 49.9_o gospel_n esa_n 49.9_o who_o nature_n be_v to_o say_v to_o the_o prisoner_n go_v forth_o and_o to_o they_o that_o sit_v in_o darkness_n show_v yourselves_o and_o as_o 61.1_o as_o esa_n 61.1_o a_o key_n to_o open_v the_o prison_n door_n to_o they_o that_o be_v bind_v and_o to_o bring_v liberty_n to_o captive_n or_o if_o man_n love_v darkness_n better_o than_o light_n then_o have_v god_n put_v 11.6_o put_v joh._n 15.22_o 2._o cor._n 2.16_o apoc._n 11.6_o a_o effectual_a power_n into_o it_o to_o shut_v up_o against_o they_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o to_o strain_v they_o hard_o 5.22_o hard_o pro._n 5.22_o with_o the_o cord_n of_o their_o sin_n that_o they_o may_v perish_v this_o ministry_n be_v execute_v partly_o by_o preach_v and_o sacrament_n partly_o by_o church_n censure_n be_v call_v the_o key_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o likeness_n thereunto_o and_o describe_v by_o bind_v and_o lose_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o effect_n 19_o this_o exposition_n must_v needs_o be_v grant_v first_o because_o it_o sufficient_o express_v the_o use_n and_o effect_n of_o key_n which_o be_v only_o to_o let_v in_o and_o out_o or_o at_o the_o least_o that_o be_v the_o proper_a use_n thereof_o next_o 12._o next_o show_v before_o nu_fw-la 12._o this_o be_v all_o that_o be_v mean_v by_o bind_v and_o lose_v and_o bind_v and_o lose_v contain_v whatsoever_o be_v signify_v by_o the_o key_n three_o the_o papist_n that_o most_o stiff_o defend_v the_o primacy_n yet_o confess_v that_o all_o the_o apostle_n receive_v the_o key_n equal_o with_o peter_n the_o promise_n of_o christ_n concern_v the_o key_n appertain_v not_o only_o to_o peter_n but_o be_v transmit_v to_o all_o the_o apostle_n medium_n apostle_n council_n colon_n sub_fw-la adulph_n a_o 1549._o §_o sextum_fw-la medium_n say_v adolfus_fw-la the_o archbishop_n of_o colen_n and_o his_o council_n 1547._o council_n surius_n comment_n a_o 1547._o a_o man_n so_o addict_v to_o the_o popish_a religion_n and_o careful_a to_o restore_v it_o that_o he_o be_v think_v meet_a to_o succeed_v hermannus_n who_o the_o pope_n thrust_v out_o cusanus_fw-la 13._o cusanus_fw-la concord_n li._n 2._o c._n 13._o say_v nothing_o be_v speak_v to_o peter_n but_o that_o which_o be_v say_v to_o the_o rest_n for_o as_o it_o be_v say_v to_o peter_n whatsoever_o thou_o shall_v bind_v so_o be_v it_o say_v to_o the_o rest_n whatsoever_o you_o shall_v bind_v and_o though_o it_o be_v say_v to_o peter_n thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v yet_o by_o the_o rock_n we_o understand_v christ_n who_o he_o confess_v thus_o they_o
that_o time_n with_o the_o patriarch_n of_o rome_n in_o all_o thing_n touch_v jurisdiction_n and_o he_o restrain_v within_o certain_a bound_n beyond_o the_o which_o he_o may_v not_o go_v and_o so_o other_o have_v allow_v they_o as_o ample_a authotie_n in_o their_o circuit_n as_o he_o have_v in_o he_o this_o appear_v by_o the_o express_a decree_n of_o six_o counsel_n the_o first_o be_v the_o first_o general_a council_n of_o nice_a hold_v ann_n 325._o wherein_o be_v 318._o bishop_n 6._o bishop_n can._n 6._o the_o word_n be_v these_o let_v the_o ancient_a custom_n continue_v in_o force_n that_o be_v in_o egypt_n lybia_n and_o pentapolis_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n have_v the_o government_n of_o all_o these_o forsomuch_o as_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n also_o have_v the_o like_a custom_n and_o so_o likewise_o throughout_o antioch_n and_o in_o the_o other_o province_n let_v the_o church_n have_v their_o prerogative_n uphold_v they_o where_o we_o see_v the_o council_n intend_v to_o confirm_v the_o preeminence_n of_o alexandria_n against_o the_o arrian_n that_o begin_v to_o vex_v it_o make_v the_o pope_n government_n in_o his_o province_n michael_n province_n ex_fw-la cius_fw-la forma_fw-la quod_fw-la alexandrinae_n ecclesiae_fw-la tribuerit_fw-la particulariter_fw-la sumpsit_fw-la exemplum_fw-la epist_n nicol._n ad_fw-la michael_n the_o form_n of_o that_o government_n which_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o province_n of_o alexandria_n which_o show_v that_o the_o pope_n government_n reach_v but_o to_o his_o own_o province_n for_o have_v it_o stretch_v itself_o all_o over_o the_o world_n then_o will_v it_o have_v be_v no_o form_n for_o alexandria_n which_o be_v to_o abide_v in_o one_o province_n and_o no_o more_o beside_o the_o council_n say_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v the_o like_a custom_n show_v plain_o he_o of_o al●xandria_n be_v to_o be_v equal_a with_o he_o else_o it_o can_v not_o be_v the_o like_a for_o there_o be_v no_o est_fw-la no_o parilis_fw-la mos_fw-la est_fw-la parity_n between_o a_o universal_a bishop_n and_o a_o provincial_a the_o second_o and_o three_o be_v the_o first_o general_a counsel_n of_o 3_o of_o can._n 2._o &_o 3_o constantinople_n ann_n 381._o of_o 150._o bishop_n and_o of_o cyprio_n of_o cap_n 8._o sentent_fw-fr super_fw-la petit_fw-la cyprio_n ephesus_n ann_n 431._o of_o 200._o bishop_n in_o both_o which_o the_o province_n of_o the_o world_n be_v distinguish_v and_o patriarch_n restrain_v to_o their_o own_o circuit_n and_o he_o of_o constantinople_n by_o name_n be_v make_v equal_a with_o the_o pope_n in_o all_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n whatsoever_o all_o the_o difference_n be_v that_o he_o of_o rome_n have_v the_o chief_a honour_n constantinopolita_n honour_n consistebat_fw-la hic_fw-la honour_n in_fw-la hoc_fw-la videlicet_fw-la quod_fw-la ad_fw-la locum_fw-la in_o sedendo_fw-la primo_fw-la post_fw-la rom._n pontificem_fw-la &_o in_o responsionibus_fw-la h●be●et_fw-la secundam_fw-la vocem_fw-la &_o in_o subscriptionibus_fw-la turrecrem_fw-la d._n 22._o constantinopolita_n which_o consist_v not_o in_o jurisdiction_n but_o sit_v in_o the_o first_o place_n and_o such_o like_a title_n the_o four_o be_v the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n a_o 451_o wherein_o be_v 630._o bishop_n the_o word_n whereof_o be_v these_o 16._o these_o act._n 16._o follow_v the_o decree_n and_o rule_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n and_o of_o those_o 150._o bishop_n assemble_v under_o theodosius_n the_o elder_a of_o bless_a memory_n in_o the_o royal_a city_n of_o constantinople_n and_o acknowledge_v the_o same_o we_o also_o decree_v and_o ordain_v the_o same_o thing_n concern_v the_o privilege_n of_o the_o say_a church_n of_o constantinople_n which_o be_v new_a rome_n for_o our_o father_n give_v the_o privilege_n to_o the_o seat_n of_o elder_a rome_n because_o that_o city_n have_v the_o empire_n and_o the_o 150._o bishop_n move_v with_o the_o same_o intent_n give_v the_o same_o privilege_n to_o the_o most_o sacred_a throne_n of_o new_a rome_n think_v it_o reason_n the_o city_n which_o be_v honour_v with_o the_o empire_n and_o senate_n shall_v also_o have_v equal_a privilege_n with_o elder_a rome_n and_o in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n be_v advance_v alike_o with_o she_o be_v the_o next_o unto_o she_o the_o five_o be_v another_o council_n of_o constantinople_n ann_n 686._o where_o be_v 280._o bishop_n 36._o bishop_n sext._n syn._n in_o trull_n can._n 36._o who_o renew_v and_o confirm_v the_o former_a decree_n of_o chalcedon_n repeat_v it_o in_o a_o manner_n verbatim_o as_o that_o have_v renew_v and_o explain_v the_o former_a counsel_n of_o nice_a and_o constantinople_n whereby_o it_o express_o appear_v that_o constantinople_n have_v as_o much_o authority_n in_o church_n matter_n as_o rome_n and_o that_o rome_n first_o obtain_v the_o primacy_n of_o honour_n by_o reason_n it_o be_v the_o imperial_a city_n and_o this_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o first_o nicen_n and_o constantinopolitan_a counsel_n this_o the_o father_n will_v not_o have_v say_v and_o do_v if_o they_o have_v think_v christ_n himself_o have_v give_v the_o pope_n the_o supremacy_n question_v whereupon_o 13._o whereupon_o concord_n l._n l._n c._n 13._o cusanus_fw-la think_v that_o what_o of_o right_n belong_v to_o he_o be_v give_v he_o by_o the_o church_n and_o marsilius_n 18._o marsilius_n defence_n part_n 2._o c._n 18._o write_v that_o he_o have_v no_o power_n over_o other_o bishop_n and_o church_n either_o by_o god_n or_o man_n law_n but_o such_o as_o be_v give_v he_o either_o absolute_o or_o for_o a_o time_n by_o the_o nicen_n council_n the_o sixth_o be_v the_o council_n of_o carthage_n ann_n 418._o of_o 217._o bishop_n 105._o bishop_n c._n 92._o &_o 105._o in_o this_o council_n when_o sozimus_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v claim_v a_o right_a to_o receive_v appeal_n from_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o pretend_v a_o certain_a canon_n of_o the_o nicen_n council_n that_o shall_v give_v it_o he_o the_o bishop_n thereof_o by_o the_o space_n of_o four_o year_n debate_v the_o matter_n against_o he_o and_o boniface_n and_o celestin_n his_o successor_n and_o have_v search_v the_o original_a copy_n of_o the_o nicen_n council_n whereby_o the_o untruth_n of_o his_o claim_n be_v discover_v they_o write_v sharp_o to_o he_o that_o he_o shall_v not_o meddle_v with_o the_o people_n of_o their_o province_n nor_o admit_v into_o his_o fellowship_n such_o as_o they_o have_v excommunicate_v tell_v he_o that_o he_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v in_o their_o cause_n either_o to_o bring_v they_o to_o rome_n or_o to_o send_v legate_n to_o hear_v they_o at_o home_n for_o this_o be_v against_o the_o nicen_n council_n the_o evidence_n of_o this_o council_n be_v such_o against_o the_o supremacy_n that_o no_o art_n of_o our_o adversary_n can_v avoid_v it_o and_o therefore_o they_o be_v drive_v to_o use_v such_o shift_n for_o the_o answer_v thereof_o as_o it_o be_v pity_n to_o see_v and_o i_o dare_v say_v grief_n to_o themselves_o to_o be_v force_v to_o they_o 27_o the_o second_o experience_n to_o be_v observe_v be_v touch_v appeal_n for_o the_o church_n do_v always_o constant_o forbid_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n meddle_v with_o man_n or_o their_o appeal_n to_o he_o that_o be_v not_o of_o the_o roman_a patriarchy_n this_o be_v clear_a by_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o sixth_o council_n of_o carthage_n before_o mention_v the_o father_n whereof_o among_o many_o other_o thing_n celestina_n thing_n c._n 105._o ep._n conc_fw-fr ad_fw-la celestina_n write_v thus_o to_o celestine_n the_o father_n of_o nice_a do_v wise_o see_v that_o all_o business_n shall_v be_v determine_v in_o the_o place_n where_o they_o begin_v and_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n wont_v not_o to_o be_v want_v to_o assist_v the_o priest_n of_o christ_n both_o in_o see_v and_o hold_v the_o right_a special_o see_v it_o be_v free_a for_o every_o man_n if_o he_o mislike_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o arbitratour_n to_o appeal_v to_o a_o council_n either_o provincial_a or_o general_a where_o this_o be_v to_o be_v mark_v that_o by_o the_o church-government_n of_o that_o time_n a_o council_n be_v the_o last_o and_o high_a judge_n of_o all_o controversy_n arise_v and_o before_o this_o when_o certain_a person_n be_v judge_v in_o africa_n have_v flee_v to_o the_o pope_n for_o relief_n mark_v what_o cyprian_n 3._o cyprian_n lib._n 1_o ep._n 3._o write_v to_o he_o see_v it_o be_v right_o and_o just_o decree_v unto_o we_o all_o that_o every_o man_n cause_n shall_v be_v hear_v where_o the_o fault_n be_v commit_v and_o every_o pastor_n have_v a_o portion_n of_o the_o flock_n commit_v to_o he_o which_o he_o must_v govern_v as_o he_o will_v give_v account_n of_o his_o deed_n to_o the_o lord_n it_o behoove_v true_o such_o as_o be_v under_o our_o government_n not_o to_o run_v up_o and_o down_o and_o by_o their_o cunning_a rashness_n to_o break_v the_o concord_n of_o bishop_n but_o there_o to_o follow_v the_o cause_n
he_o second_o christ_n say_v simon_n love_v thou_o i_o more_o than_o these_o why_o do_v he_o examine_v he_o of_o his_o love_n more_o than_o the_o rest_n but_o that_o he_o intend_v he_o more_o authority_n i_o answer_v to_o make_v he_o see_v his_o fault_n who_o have_v late_o undertake_v more_o than_o all_o even_o to_o die_v with_o he_o though_o all_o shall_v forsake_v he_o yet_o when_o it_o come_v to_o trial_n perform_v less_o than_o any_o deny_v he_o thrice_o which_o none_o else_o do_v and_o possible_a also_o to_o let_v he_o know_v his_o sin_n be_v pardon_v 7.47_o pardon_v luc._n 7.47_o because_o more_o be_v forgive_v to_o he_o that_o love_v more_o three_o he_o not_o only_o examine_v he_o of_o his_o love_n but_o also_o thereby_o draw_v out_o of_o he_o a_o fervent_a confession_n of_o it_o i_o answer_v this_o he_o do_v also_o in_o regard_n of_o his_o former_a sin_n 103._o sin_n isid_n pelusiot_n l._n 1._o ep._n 103._o by_o a_o threefold_a confession_n to_o heal_v his_o threefold_a denial_n and_o to_o assure_v his_o fellow_n disciple_n of_o his_o repentance_n and_o to_o show_v by_o his_o example_n how_o dear_a the_o love_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v to_o they_o that_o meddle_v with_o feed_v christ_n flock_n four_o he_o bid_v he_o feed_v and_o feed_v be_v rule_v with_o fullness_n of_o power_n i_o answer_v he_o bid_v he_o feed_v his_o sheep_n and_o lamb_n which_o be_v the_o people_n and_o not_o the_o apostle_n proper_o which_o prove_v that_o feed_n have_v no_o such_o meaning_n beside_o feed_v signify_v rule_v not_o every_o way_n but_o in_o such_o manner_n as_o appertain_v to_o the_o person_n that_o do_v feed_v and_o therefore_o in_o king_n it_o be_v to_o rule_v with_o fullness_n of_o power_n but_o in_o pastor_n with_o the_o word_n and_o discipline_n only_o as_o appear_v by_o this_o that_o all_o bishop_n and_o teacher_n be_v call_v 4.11_o call_v eph_n 4.11_o pastor_n and_o bid_v 5.1_o bid_v jer._n 3.15_o ezec_n 34_o act._n 20.28_o 1._o pet._n 5.1_o feed_v the_o flock_n of_o christ_n and_o yet_o no_o man_n think_v they_o be_v make_v pope_n thereby_o last_o peter_n be_v bid_v feed_v the_o sheep_n &_o the_o apostle_n be_v a_o part_n of_o christ_n sheep_n therefore_o he_o must_v feed_v they_o i_o answer_v this_o be_v grant_v but_o then_o feed_v signify_v no_o more_o but_o edify_v by_o word_n and_o example_n and_o so_o as_o peter_n must_v feed_v the_o apostle_n the_o apostle_n must_v feed_v he_o again_o by_o the_o same_o commandment_n of_o christ_n 16._o christ_n marc._n 16._o that_o bid_v they_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o every_o creature_n as_o 2._o as_o gal._n 2._o paul_n feed_v he_o at_o antioch_n by_o reproof_n and_o whereas_o some_o urge_v that_o the_o sheep_n signify_v the_o universal_a church_n because_o christ_n say_v not_o these_o be_v those_o sheep_n in_o particular_a but_o my_o sheeepe_a in_o general_a and_o so_o peter_n be_v set_v over_o the_o universal_a church_n this_o be_v but_o a_o speculation_n for_o if_o the_o church_n be_v strain_v into_o so_o wide_a a_o signification_n he_o can_v not_o feed_v it_o because_o he_o can_v feed_v no_o more_o than_o that_o part_n which_o be_v in_o his_o time_n or_o follow_v after_o he_o wherein_o the_o other_o apostle_n feed_v in_o community_n with_o he_o and_o feed_v be_v not_o popingay_v thus_o we_o see_v that_o unless_o the_o papist_n may_v be_v allow_v to_o rack_n the_o word_n of_o scripture_n beyond_o all_o compass_n of_o ordinary_a understanding_n and_o bring_v to_o they_o the_o sense_n which_o they_o shall_v fetch_v from_o they_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o all_o the_o bible_n sufficient_a to_o uphold_v any_o part_n of_o that_o wherein_o they_o be_v so_o confident_a §_o 37._o so_o that_o this_o difference_n may_v be_v assign_v between_o any_o sort_n of_o heretic_n and_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o they_o be_v a_o company_n not_o unite_v among_o themselves_o by_o any_o link_n which_o be_v able_a to_o contain_v and_o continue_v they_o in_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n whereas_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v as_o s._n cyprian_n speak_v plebs_fw-la sacerdoti_fw-la adunata_fw-la &_o grex_fw-la pastori_fw-la svo_fw-la adhaerens_fw-la a_o people_n conjoin_v to_o their_o priest_n and_o a_o flock_n cleave_v to_o their_o chief_a pastor_n who_o while_o it_o hear_v as_o it_o be_v bind_v to_o do_v it_o be_v unpossible_a but_o it_o shall_v retain_v unity_n of_o faith_n like_o contrary_a according_a to_o the_o say_n of_o the_o same_o s._n cyprian_n lib._n 1._o epist_n 5._o ad_fw-la cornel._n contra_fw-la haeret._n non_fw-la aliunde_fw-la haereses_fw-la obortae_fw-la sunt_fw-la aut_fw-la nata_fw-la schismata_fw-la quàm_fw-la inde_fw-la quòd_fw-la sacerdoti_fw-la non_fw-la obtemperatur_fw-la nec_fw-la unus_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la ad_fw-la tempus_fw-la sacerdos_fw-la &_o unus_fw-la iudex_fw-la vice_fw-la christi_fw-la cogitatur_fw-la nor_o from_o any_o other_o root_n have_v heresy_n and_o schism_n spring_v up_o but_o from_o this_o that_o man_n do_v not_o obey_v the_o priest_n of_o god_n neither_o do_v they_o consider_v how_o that_o in_o the_o church_n there_o be_v one_o priest_n and_o one_o judge_v for_o the_o time_n in_o stead_n of_o christ_n the_o answer_n 1_o how_o well_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v link_v together_o i_o have_v say_v in_o the_o former_a section_n and_o therefore_o if_o the_o jesuit_n will_v assign_v a_o difference_n between_o it_o and_o heretic_n which_o will_v be_v the_o same_o that_o be_v between_o fish_n and_o herring_n he_o must_v do_v it_o by_o something_o else_o then_o by_o their_o unity_n whereunto_o saint_n cyprian_n give_v no_o testimony_n in_o the_o word_n allege_v but_o that_o it_o please_v the_o jesuite_n thereby_o to_o impose_v upon_o his_o ignorant_a reader_n for_o first_o he_o speak_v not_o in_o any_o of_o both_o place_n concern_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o of_o every_o part_n of_o the_o church_n whersoever_o &_o say_v it_o be_v a_o company_n adhere_v to_o their_o pastor_n etc._n etc._n next_o by_o this_o one_o pastor_n and_o judge_n whereto_o the_o church_n adher_v he_o mean_v not_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n over_o all_o the_o world_n for_o himself_o dissent_v from_o he_o in_o the_o cause_n of_o appeal_n and_o rebaptisation_n but_o every_o bishop_n in_o his_o own_o circuit_n three_o suppose_v he_o have_v conceit_v the_o pope_n and_o by_o these_o word_n immediate_o mean_v he_o yet_o what_o be_v that_o to_o the_o pope_n now_o who_o be_v degenerate_a into_o another_o creature_n then_o at_o that_o time_n he_o be_v whereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o many_o good_a thing_n may_v be_v say_v of_o he_o then_o that_o can_v now_o and_o of_o his_o church_n then_o which_o since_o that_o time_n be_v perish_v 2_o but_o the_o truth_n be_v that_o say_v the_o church_n be_v a_o people_n cleave_v to_o their_o priest_n he_o mean_v it_o not_o of_o all_o god_n church_n cleave_v to_o the_o pope_n but_o of_o every_o particular_a church_n obey_v their_o pastor_n according_a to_o saint_n paul_n admonition_n 13.17_o admonition_n heb._n 13.17_o obey_v and_o submit_v yourselves_o to_o such_o as_o have_v the_o oversight_n of_o you_o and_o the_o want_n hereof_o he_o say_v be_v the_o root_n of_o schism_n not_o the_o dissent_v from_o the_o pope_n and_o this_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v his_o meaning_n because_o in_o florent_fw-la in_o lib._n 4._o ep._n 9_o ad_fw-la florent_fw-la another_o epistle_n he_o have_v the_o same_o word_n apply_v they_o to_o himself_o and_o complain_v thereby_o that_o some_o have_v underhand_o refuse_v he_o and_o communicate_v with_o other_o for_o the_o novatians_n at_o carthage_n in_o a_o schism_n have_v make_v they_o a_o bishop_n of_o their_o own_o and_o write_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n false_o that_o he_o be_v lawful_o elect_v the_o which_o be_v against_o the_o custom_n and_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n move_v he_o to_o urge_v as_o you_o see_v the_o unity_n of_o one_o bishop_n and_o to_o defend_v the_o church-government_n of_o that_o time_n philipp_n time_n hiero._n comment_n in_o tit_n c._n 1._o chrysost_n hom_n 1_o add_v philipp_n which_o be_v to_o have_v but_o one_o bishop_n in_o one_o city_n hence_o proceed_v his_o word_n touch_v every_o bishop_n in_o his_o own_o place_n as_o the_o jesuite_n have_v allege_v they_o whereby_o you_o see_v how_o well_o he_o prove_v the_o unity_n of_o his_o church_n and_o authority_n of_o his_o pope_n even_o as_o well_o as_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v make_v that_o proper_a to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o his_o church_n which_o appertain_v to_o every_o bishop_n and_o every_o church_n and_o expound_v that_o of_o the_o supremacy_n which_o import_v no_o more_o but_o ordinary_a government_n use_v by_o pastor_n in_o their_o own_o charge_n this_o kind_n of_o dispute_v be_v call_v enclose_v of_o commons_o §_o 38._o second_o the_o protestant_n church_n be_v
the_o jesuite_n hold_v you_o occupy_v with_o a_o argument_n that_o himself_o know_v be_v nothing_o worth_a d._n harding_n 291._o harding_n confut._n apol_n part_n 6._o pag._n 291._o say_v you_o know_v it_o be_v no_o good_a argument_n à_fw-la moribus_fw-la ad_fw-la doctrinam_fw-la who_o will_v not_o hiss_v and_o trample_v you_o out_o of_o school_n if_o you_o make_v this_o argument_n the_o papist_n life_n be_v faulty_a ergo_fw-la their_o teach_n be_v false_a the_o jesuite_n therefore_o must_v be_v hiss_v at_o by_o hardings_n censure_n staphylus_n 1._o staphylus_n apolo_n part_n 1._o say_v our_o faith_n must_v not_o be_v pin_v to_o the_o life_n of_o the_o clergy_n or_o preacher_n etc._n etc._n bellarmine_n posito_fw-la bellarmine_n de_fw-fr great_a &_o lib._n arbit_n l._n 5._o c._n 10._o §._o hoc_fw-la posito_fw-la say_v it_o be_v certain_a the_o doctrine_n which_o man_n teach_v we_o can_v be_v know_v by_o their_o work_n because_o their_o inward_a work_n be_v not_o see_v and_o their_o outward_a work_n be_v common_a to_o both_o side_n 58._o side_n annal._n tom_n 7._o 2_o n._n 526._o n._n 58._o baronius_n call_v they_o a_o ignorant_a company_n that_o measure_n catholic_a faith_n not_o by_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n which_o they_o know_v not_o but_o by_o the_o example_n of_o life_n thus_o we_o see_v the_o papist_n be_v unwilling_a we_o shall_v judge_v of_o their_o faith_n by_o their_o life_n and_o yet_o how_o peremptory_a they_o be_v with_o we_o about_o we_o and_o how_o busy_a in_o smattering_n of_o our_o fault_n that_o will_v admit_v no_o disadvantage_n by_o their_o own_o beside_o they_o have_v a_o position_n among_o they_o 2._o they_o bellar._n de_fw-fr eccles_n mil._n l._n 3._o c._n 2._o that_o no_o inward_a virtue_n be_v require_v to_o make_v one_o a_o part_n of_o the_o true_a church_n but_o only_o the_o external_a profession_n of_o faith_n the_o which_o be_v so_o then_o what_o necessity_n be_v there_o of_o holiness_n either_o inward_a or_o outward_a to_o prove_v that_o a_o people_n be_v the_o true_a church_n for_o they_o may_v be_v so_o without_o it_o if_o they_o do_v but_o profess_v it_o which_o a_o wicked_a person_n can_v do_v digression_n 31._o contain_v many_o complaint_n make_v by_o the_o papist_n themselves_o against_o their_o own_o church_n and_o people_n whereby_o it_o appear_v their_o life_n be_v worse_o than_o can_v be_v say_v of_o the_o protestant_n 4_o but_o because_o they_o be_v narcissi_fw-la be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d callistrat_n divis_fw-la in_o stat_fw-la narcissi_fw-la narcissus_n like_v so_o besot_v with_o their_o own_o beauty_n and_o the_o jesuite_n will_v needs_o have_v it_o try_v whether_o papist_n or_o protestant_n be_v of_o better_a life_n i_o be_o content_a it_o be_v a_o match_n and_o the_o comparison_n be_v make_v upon_o condition_n that_o what_o i_o produce_v be_v always_o remember_v to_o be_v their_o own_o confession_n not_o my_o report_n and_o therefore_o remain_v with_o the_o reader_n for_o a_o cool_a card_n to_o still_o the_o pharisee_n next_o time_n he_o come_v into_o the_o temple_n with_o 18.11_o with_o luc._n 18.11_o god_n i_o thank_v thou_o i_o be_o not_o like_o other_o man_n and_o ruffle_v among_o his_o poor_a brethren_n 65.5_o brethren_n esa_n 65.5_o with_o stand_n apart_o come_v not_o nigh_o i_o for_o i_o be_o holy_a than_o thou_o and_o out_o of_o question_n upon_o what_o part_n of_o their_o church_n soever_o we_o look_v there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o they_o shall_v boast_v themselves_o against_o us._n of_o their_o pope_n and_o what_o saint_n they_o have_v be_v i_o shall_v have_v fi●ter_a occasion_n to_o speak_v 54._o speak_v digr_n 54._o below_o touch_v their_o monk_n and_o religious_a person_n i_o refer_v myself_o likewise_o to_o 45._o to_o digr_n 45._o another_o place_n concern_v the_o people_n ferus_fw-la 2._o ferus_fw-la in_o 1._o joh._n c._n 2._o say_v that_o in_o their_o church_n abuse_v of_o all_o sort_n have_v prevail_v with_o diverse_a superstition_n and_o evil_a manner_n even_o to_o the_o high_a degree_n and_o say_v he_o the_o god_n of_o this_o world_n mammon_n and_o ambition_n have_v so_o blind_v our_o eye_n that_o we_o can_v so_o much_o as_o see_v so_o great_a evil_n in_o our_o church_n not_o deny_v as_o the_o jesuite_n do_v the_o same_o unholinesse_n to_o be_v among_o themselves_o that_o we_o be_v charge_v with_o but_o lament_v that_o such_o as_o he_o be_v have_v no_o eye_n to_o see_v it_o niemensis_n a_o man_n in_o his_o time_n attend_v on_o the_o pope_n 41._o pope_n per_fw-la vim_o stulta_fw-la parens_fw-la quasi_fw-la vipera_fw-la deperis_fw-la omnes_fw-la tu_fw-la portentorum_fw-la locus_fw-la es_fw-la conformis_fw-la eorum_fw-la cum_fw-la nilo_fw-la pottenta_fw-la pari_fw-la nutris_fw-la crocodilos_fw-la jam_fw-la cum_fw-la portentis_fw-la reor_fw-la exterminia_fw-mi sentis_fw-la si_fw-mi quid_fw-la in_o his_o possem_fw-la faceren_fw-mi sterilescere_fw-la matren_n theod._n à_fw-la niem_fw-la de_fw-fr schismat_fw-la l._n 3._o c._n 41._o say_v rome_n be_v a_o place_n of_o monster_n yea_o like_a nilus_n breed_v monster_n and_o nourish_a crocodile_n that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v wish_v it_o be_v more_o barren_a in_o yield_v such_o fruit_n of_o viper_n and_o because_o the_o jesuite_n allege_v somewhat_o against_o we_o out_o of_o luther_n sermon_n i_o will_v quit_v he_o again_o with_o another_o sermon_n for_o cornelius_n must_n the_o bishop_n of_o bitonto_n thus_o preach_v some_o threescore_o year_n since_o in_o saint_n laurence_n church_n in_o rome_n 242._o rome_n concio_fw-la evamg_n de_fw-fr domin_n &_o fest_n tom_n 1._o fer_fw-fr 4_o cinerum_fw-la part_n 3._o pag._n 242._o o_o my_o best_a belove_a rome_n if_o ever_o it_o stand_v any_o city_n in_o hand_n to_o hasten_v her_o conversion_n to_o god_n thou_o have_v need_v to_o give_v example_n to_o all_o other_o city_n of_o this_o conversion_n thou_o which_o art_n whole_o turn_v away_o overthrow_v and_o pervert_v turn_v away_o by_o thy_o own_o negligence_n overthrow_v by_o the_o deceit_n of_o satan_n and_o pervert_v by_o thy_o old_a custom_n of_o sin_v see_v thou_o not_o wretched_a city_n how_o thou_o be_v become_v a_o stew_n of_o lechery_n a_o furnace_n of_o covetousness_n a_o hell_n of_o all_o other_o mortal_a sin_n see_v thou_o not_o how_o every_o state_n and_o degree_n of_o man_n and_o every_o order_n this_o feast_n time_n of_o bacchus_n be_v depart_v from_o god_n and_o make_v a_o prey_n to_o the_o devil_n they_o have_v strive_v among_o themselves_o who_o of_o all_o man_n shall_v be_v the_o worst_a in_o superfluous_a expense_n in_o dishonest_a attire_n in_o filthy_a word_n and_o mischievous_a deed_n alas_o also_o religious_a man_n be_v become_v dissolute_a child_n be_v set_v to_o school_v to_o a_o thousand_o vice_n young_a man_n be_v unbridled_a virgin_n have_v cast_v offshame_n priest_n their_o gown_n and_o monk_n their_o cowl_n wise_a man_n be_v become_v fool_n and_o old_a man_n child_n to_o the_o same_o effect_n he_o also_o preach_v 3._o preach_v orat_fw-la in_o conc._n trid._n in_o 3._o dom._n advent_a conci_fw-la tom_fw-mi 3._o at_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n with_o what_o monster_n of_o filthiness_n with_o what_o sink_v of_o uncleanness_n with_o what_o pestiferous_a contagion_n be_v not_o both_o priest_n and_o people_n defile_v i_o make_v yourselves_o judge_n and_o begin_v at_o the_o sanctuary_n of_o god_n and_o see_v if_o there_o be_v any_o shamefastness_n any_o chastity_n any_o hope_n or_o help_v for_o honest_a life_n if_o there_o be_v not_o unbridled_a lust_n notorious_a boldness_n incredible_a wickedness_n edification_n be_v turn_v into_o destruction_n example_n into_o offence_n custom_n to_o corruption_n regard_n of_o law_n to_o contempt_n thereof_o severity_n to_o slackness_n mercy_n to_o impunity_n piety_n to_o hypocrisy_n preach_v to_o contention_n solemn_a day_n to_o filthy_a mart_n and_o that_o which_o be_v most_o unhappy_a the_o savour_n of_o life_n to_o the_o savour_n of_o death_n will_v god_n they_o be_v not_o fall_v with_o one_o consent_n from_o religion_n to_o superstition_n from_o faith_n to_o infidelity_n from_o christ_n to_o antichrist_n from_o god_n to_o epicurism_n say_v with_o a_o wicked_a heart_n and_o shameless_a face_n there_o be_v no_o god_n the_o sacred_a name_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v make_v a_o jest_n and_o fable_n among_o the_o jew_n and_o pagan_n by_o reason_n of_o we_o who_o wickedness_n with_o a_o shameful_a report_n be_v bruit_v over_o all_o the_o world_n thus_o we_o see_v how_o easy_a a_o matter_n it_o be_v to_o charge_v our_o adversary_n with_o sin_n if_o we_o will_v walk_v that_o course_n and_o that_o every_o jot_n of_o that_o we_o say_v of_o their_o people_n brutishnes_n be_v confirm_v by_o their_o own_o word_n 5_o and_o touch_v their_o clergy_n there_o be_v as_o much_o to_o be_v say_v &_o to_o better_a purpose_n because_o be_v the_o best_a part_n of_o the_o church_n the_o holiness_n must_v be_v in_o they_o or_o no_o
where_o 6.22_o where_o mat._n 6.22_o the_o light_n of_o the_o body_n be_v the_o eye_n and_o if_o this_o light_n be_v dark_a how_o great_a shall_v the_o darkness_n itself_o be_v yet_o mark_v what_o bernard_n say_v of_o his_o time_n rhem._n time_n serm._n 33._o in_o cant._n &_o in_o council_n rhem._n brethren_n so_o do_v jesus_n at_o this_o day_n he_o choose_v many_o devil_n to_o be_v bishop_n the_o archpriest_n visit_v his_o charge_n to_o fill_v his_o purse_n he_o betray_v innocent_a blood_n sell_v murder_n take_v money_n for_o adultery_n incest_n fornication_n sacrilege_n perjury_n and_o fill_v his_o bag_n to_o the_o brim_n a_o stink_a contagion_n creep_v this_o day_n throughout_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o church_n all_o friend_n and_o all_o enemy_n all_o familiar_a and_o none_o to_o make_v peace_n yea_o all_o seek_v their_o own_o they_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o christ_n but_o do_v service_n to_o antichrist_n they_o go_v honour_v with_o the_o good_n of_o their_o master_n but_o he_o their_o master_n they_o honour_v not_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o we_o daily_o see_v they_o deck_v like_o whore_n attire_v like_o player_n serve_v like_o prince_n they_o wear_v gold_n in_o their_o bridle_n and_o gold_n in_o their_o saddle_n and_o spur_n their_o spur_n shine_v bright_a than_o the_o altar_n their_o table_n gorgeous_a with_o meat_n and_o cup_n and_o abound_v with_o surfeit_v and_o drunkenness_n their_o music_n and_o minstrelsy_n their_o winepresses_a run_v over_o and_o storehouse_n cram_v with_o all_o variety_n their_o barrel_n of_o ointment_n their_o budget_n full_a these_o be_v the_o man_n and_o yet_o needs_o they_o will_v be_v church-governor_n dean_n bishop_n and_o archbishop_n and_o how_o do_v these_o man_n keep_v their_o chastity_n who_o be_v give_v up_o into_o a_o reprobate_a sense_n do_v thing_n not_o meet_v for_o it_o be_v a_o shame_n to_o utter_v what_o they_o do_v in_o the_o dark_a yet_o why_o shall_v i_o shame_v to_o speak_v that_o which_o they_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o do_v to_o the_o same_o effect_n 11._o effect_n defence_n part_n 2_o c._n 11._o write_v marsilius_n we_o draw_v christ_n to_o witness_v say_v he_o and_o let_v his_o judgement_n fall_v on_o we_o if_o we_o lie_v that_o our_o bishop_n and_o almost_o all_o other_o this_o day_n do_v flat_a contrary_n in_o all_o thing_n which_o they_o teach_v other_o according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o observe_v ini●io_n observe_v anal._n l._n 6._o in_o ini●io_n aventine_n confess_v the_o pope_n set_v over_o the_o flock_n of_o christ_n goat_n wolf_n lust_n full_a person_n adulterer_n ravisher_n of_o virgin_n and_o nun_n cook_n muletor_n thief_n banker_n usurer_n drone_n gain-hunter_n lecherous_a perfidious_a perjure_a ignorant_a ass_n he_o commit_v the_o sheep_n to_o wolf_n and_o hypocrite_n which_o only_o provide_v for_o their_o belly_n nay_o he_o set_v boy_n and_o wanton_n to_o rule_v the_o lamb_n i_o be_o ashamed_a to_o say_v what_o manner_n of_o bishop_n we_o have_v with_o the_o revenue_n of_o the_o poor_a they_o feed_v their_o hound_n horse_n whore_n they_o quaff_v they_o love_v they_o fly_v learning_n as_o infection_n such_o be_v the_o misery_n of_o our_o time_n that_o we_o may_v not_o utter_v what_o we_o think_v nor_o think_v that_o we_o speak_v as_o for_o the_o sheep_n commit_v to_o their_o charge_n they_o clip_v and_o strip_v and_o kill_v they_o every_o man_n at_o his_o own_o pleasure_n marcellin_n pleasure_n in._n marcellin_n platina_n complain_v thus_o what_o may_v we_o think_v will_v become_v of_o our_o age_n wherein_o our_o sin_n be_v grow_v to_o the_o height_n that_o they_o have_v scarce_o leave_v we_o any_o room_n with_o god_n to_o obtain_v mercy_n how_o great_a the_o covetousness_n of_o priest_n be_v and_o special_o of_o such_o as_o rule_v among_o they_o how_o great_a their_o lust_n of_o all_o sort_n what_o ambition_n what_o pomp_n what_o pride_n what_o ignorance_n both_o of_o themselves_o and_o christian_n doctrine_n what_o little_a religion_n what_o corrupt_a manner_n to_o be_v detest_v even_o in_o lay_v people_n i_o need_v not_o say_v when_o they_o sin_n so_o open_o as_o if_o they_o seek_v for_o commendation_n thereby_o 10._o thereby_o in_o evang_v joh_n c._n 10._o albertus_n magnus_fw-la confess_v those_o which_o rule_n in_o the_o church_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n thief_n and_o murderer_n oppressor_n rather_o than_o pastor_n spoiler_n rather_o than_o tutor_n rather_o murderer_n than_o keeper_n rather_o perverter_n than_o teacher_n rather_o seducer_n then_o guide_v these_o be_v the_o messenger_n of_o antichrist_n and_o such_o as_o supplant_v the_o flock_n of_o christ_n this_o voluntary_a confession_n of_o our_o adversary_n must_v be_v note_v the_o rather_o because_o the_o papist_n ordinary_o not_o only_o calumniate_v our_o life_n but_o also_o tell_v such_o wonder_n of_o their_o clergy_n learning_n hospitality_n continency_n etc._n etc._n yea_o the_o modern_a papist_n let_v slip_v the_o same_o complaint_n 1._o complaint_n apol._n part_n 1._o staphylus_n write_v how_o it_o be_v much_o to_o be_v lament_v that_o the_o life_n and_o behaviour_n of_o the_o reverend_a priesthood_n answer_v not_o their_o godly_a and_o high_a profession_n but_o be_v very_o scandalous_a to_o the_o world_n for_o many_o of_o they_o can_v tell_v a_o trim_a tale_n in_o the_o pulpit_n and_o exhort_v the_o people_n very_o demure_o to_o a_o sober_a life_n but_o will_v not_o once_o move_v the_o foot_n to_o live_v well_o themselves_o can_v this_o be_v deny_v it_o be_v alas_o too_o true_a jansenius_n the_o bishop_n of_o gaunt_n tell_v likewise_o the_o same_o tale_n out_o of_o the_o school_n or_o a_o worse_o we_o find_v by_o experience_n 39_o experience_n concor_fw-fr c._n 39_o say_v he_o at_o this_o day_n it_o be_v too_o true_a that_o our_o lord_n foretell_v concern_v unsavoury_a salt_n for_o true_o the_o great_a part_n of_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n and_o such_o as_o be_v ecclesiastical_a degree_n be_v so_o infatuate_v that_o they_o bewray_v themselves_o to_o have_v no_o corn_n of_o salt_n in_o their_o life_n or_o doctrine_n hence_o it_o come_v about_o that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a state_n be_v so_o tread_v under_o foot_n and_o despise_v and_o by_o reason_n of_o their_o unsavorinesse_n there_o be_v no_o hope_n neither_o that_o the_o unsavoury_a life_n of_o christian_n shall_v be_v reform_v and_o their_o corruption_n take_v away_o when_o they_o themselves_o be_v irrecoverable_o corrupt_v by_o who_o health_n other_o shall_v be_v holpen_v so_o 1523._o so_o paralip_n rerum_fw-la memor_fw-la annexa_fw-la histo_fw-la abbot_n vrsperg_n p._n 482._o a_o 1523._o the_o pope_n himself_o at_o a_o assembly_n of_o the_o empire_n send_v his_o legate_n and_o give_v he_o in_o charge_n free_o to_o confess_v before_o the_o state_n meet_v together_o we_o know_v that_o for_o certain_a year_n there_o have_v be_v many_o abomination_n in_o this_o holy_a seat_n of_o rome_n many_o abuse_n in_o divine_a thing_n and_o superfluity_n of_o tradition_n and_o that_o all_o thing_n have_v grow_v worse_a and_o worse_o the_o corruption_n be_v derive_v from_o the_o head_n into_o the_o member_n from_o the_o pope_n into_o the_o low_a prelate_n all_o we_o therefore_o prelate_n and_o clergy_n man_n be_v decline_v out_o of_o the_o way_n neither_o of_o long_a time_n have_v there_o be_v any_o that_o have_v do_v any_o good_a 6_o these_o foul_a report_n blab_v abroad_o by_o our_o adversary_n themselves_o touch_v their_o own_o church_n contain_v worse_a matter_n than_o luther_n or_o smidelin_n speak_v of_o and_o serve_v to_o admonish_v such_o as_o have_v hear_v many_o sweet_a tale_n of_o the_o roman_a holiness_n that_o all_o be_v not_o gold_n that_o glister_v &_o to_o forewarn_v all_o papist_n that_o in_o dispute_v with_o we_o it_o help_v they_o nothing_o to_o be_v rail_v at_o our_o life_n for_o they_o shall_v always_o find_v that_o either_o the_o truth_n be_v not_o to_o be_v try_v this_o way_n or_o if_o it_o be_v they_o will_v lose_v it_o at_o the_o first_o sight_n and_o let_v they_o remember_v aulico_fw-la remember_v balt._n castil_n lib._n de_fw-fr aulico_fw-la their_o own_o jest_n of_o the_o duke_n of_o urbin_n painter_n a_o cardinal_n hire_v he_o to_o draw_v the_o image_n of_o peter_n and_o paul_n upon_o a_o table_n which_o have_v do_v the_o cardinal_n think_v they_o be_v make_v somewhat_o too_o ruddy_a and_o high_a colour_a in_o the_o face_n but_o the_o painter_n reply_v that_o when_o they_o be_v alive_a they_o look_v pale_a with_o preach_v and_o fast_v but_o now_o they_o be_v become_v red_a in_o the_o face_n with_o blush_v at_o the_o wickedness_n of_o their_o successor_n whereat_o they_o be_v ashamed_a and_o that_o shame_n have_v alter_v their_o colour_n 7_o and_o the_o reader_n must_v observe_v yet_o further_o that_o they_o be_v not_o so_o careless_a and_o dissolute_a in_o their_o life_n but_o they_o
three_o they_o have_v collation_n which_o they_o hold_v by_o prescription_n that_o be_v equal_a to_o set_v feast_n for_o in_o spain_n on_o the_o even_o of_o the_o nativity_n for_o example_n they_o have_v a_o bountiful_a supper_n exceed_v the_o measure_n of_o fast_v make_v of_o fruit_n conserve_n marchpane_n and_o such_o like_a 393._o like_a llam_fw-la ubi_fw-la sup_n pag._n 393._o which_o they_o think_v be_v lawful_a though_o it_o hold_v not_o the_o nature_n of_o fast_v four_o they_o have_v custom_n allow_v they_o on_o fast_v day_n to_o do_v as_o much_o as_o we_o do_v 52._o do_v llam_fw-la ubi_fw-la sup_n pag._n 369._o ouan_n 4._o d._n 16._o pro._n 52._o for_o in_o diverse_a place_n of_o spain_n and_o castille_n they_o use_v egg_n cheese_n butter_n yea_o the_o lard_n of_o swine_n flesh_n and_o general_o on_o saturday_n they_o eat_v the_o inward_o of_o any_o beast_n with_o the_o head_n and_o foot_n yea_o any_o part_n of_o a_o swine_n the_o buttock_n except_v may_v it_o please_v the_o papist_n now_o either_o to_o give_v we_o leave_v to_o do_v what_o they_o do_v themselves_o or_o else_o to_o invite_v we_o to_o their_o table_n on_o fast_a day_n that_o we_o may_v have_v part_n with_o they_o see_v their_o hospitality_n be_v so_o good_a when_o we_o be_v bind_v out_o from_o feast_v at_o home_n this_o be_v that_o which_o ●●_o which_o joan._n sarisb_n policrat_fw-mi l._n 7._o c._n ●●_o a_o bishop_n note_v in_o they_o long_o ago_o and_o be_v worth_a the_o mark_v they_o undertake_v strict_a profession_n and_o show_v we_o difficult_a thing_n and_o be_v more_o familiar_o favourable_a to_o themselves_o when_o it_o come_v to_o performance_n they_o do_v thing_n gentle_a and_o possible_a digression_n 33._o concern_v auricular_a confession_n or_o shrift_n to_o a_o priest_n show_v that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o how_o it_o be_v a_o occasion_n rather_o than_o a_o remedy_n of_o sin_n oftentimes_o 6_o touch_v the_o cast_n away_o of_o necessary_a shrift_n we_o be_v not_o to_o be_v condemn_v unless_o our_o accuser_n can_v name_v some_o place_n of_o scripture_n where_o christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n have_v bind_v we_o to_o it_o which_o they_o can_v do_v for_o their_o own_o canon_n law_n gloss_n law_n de_fw-fr poenit._n d._n 5_o in_o poenitentia_fw-la gloss_n say_v it_o be_v take_v up_o only_o by_o a_o certain_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n and_o not_o by_o any_o authority_n of_o the_o old_a or_o new_a testament_n and_o though_o the_o new_a jesuite_n and_o other_o papist_n begin_v of_o late_a with_o great_a passion_n to_o deny_v this_o affirm_v that_o christ_n ordain_v it_o in_o the_o 20._o of_o john_n yet_o that_o be_v no_o matter_n for_o necessity_n and_o shame_n have_v drive_v they_o to_o say_v so_o and_o their_o predecessor_n as_o learned_a as_o they_o have_v write_v the_o contrary_n for_o panormitan_n utriusque_fw-la panormitan_n super_fw-la 5._o de_fw-la poenit_fw-la &_o remis_fw-la c._n omnes_fw-la utriusque_fw-la say_v that_o opinion_n of_o the_o canon_n law_n great_o please_v he_o because_o he_o find_v no_o manifest_a authority_n that_o ever_o god_n or_o christ_n command_v we_o to_o confess_v our_o sin_n to_o a_o priest_n and_o peresius_n a_o bishop_n of_o the_o trent_n council_n 3._o council_n de_fw-fr tradit_fw-la par_fw-fr 3._o consid_fw-la 3._o say_v the_o clear_a and_o plain_a manner_n of_o this_o ordinance_n both_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o substance_n and_o circumstance_n appear_v only_o by_o a_o tradition_n and_o about_o six_o score_n year_n since_o 2._o since_o carranz_n in_o sixto_n 4._o ouand_fw-fr 4._o d._n 16._o pro._n 2._o petrus_n oxoniensis_n the_o divinity_n reader_n at_o salmanca_n public_o teach_v as_o i_o say_v that_o it_o have_v the_o beginning_n from_o a_o positive_a law_n of_o the_o church_n and_o not_o from_o the_o law_n of_o god_n who_o though_o he_o be_v make_v to_o recant_v this_o yet_o ibid._n yet_o ouand_fw-fr ibid._n bonaventure_n who_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n honour_v for_o a_o saint_n be_v of_o his_o mind_n long_o before_o and_o salamant_fw-fr and_o refert_fw-la henri_n sum_fw-la pag_n 206._o edit_n salamant_fw-fr medina_n with_o other_o at_o this_o day_n hold_v it_o whereby_o 2._o whereby_o rhem_n annot_fw-mi joh._n 20.23_o hopk_n memor_fw-la of_o christian_n 225._o §_o 2._o their_o rashness_n appear_v that_o say_v our_o saviour_n appoint_v it_o so_o evident_o in_o the_o gospel_n and_o their_o misery_n that_o be_v persuade_v by_o such_o say_n to_o believe_v it_o yea_o poenit_fw-la yea_o annot._fw-la ad_fw-la tertul_n de_fw-la poenit_fw-la rhenanus_fw-la and_o fabiol_n and_o annot._fw-la ad_fw-la hiero._n de_fw-fr obitu_fw-la fabiol_n erasmus_fw-la as_o learned_a papist_n as_o ever_o be_v affirm_v that_o neither_o christ_n ordain_v it_o nor_o the_o ancient_a church_n use_v it_o which_o be_v the_o truth_n for_o when_o it_o begin_v in_o some_o sort_n to_o creep_v in_o 28_o in_o socr._n l_o 5._o c._n 19_o s●zo_n l._n 7._o c._n 16._o tripart_n histo_fw-la l._n 9_o c._n 35._o niceph._n lib._n 12._o c._n 28_o nectarius_n the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n put_v it_o down_o in_o his_o church_n and_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o east_n do_v the_o like_a in_o they_o which_o the_o papist_n know_v well_o enough_o and_o 325._o and_o walden_n tom_fw-mi 2._o de_fw-fr sacr_n c_o 141._o dom._n a_o soto_n 4._o do_v 18_o q._n 1._o henri_fw-fr sum_fw-la pag._n 325._o acknowledge_v supra_fw-la acknowledge_v impudentissimu●_n illud_fw-la nectarij_fw-la factum_fw-la andr●d_n orth_n expl_a pag_n 663._o nectari●●_n a_o no●a●anis_fw-la se●uctum_fw-la fuisse_fw-la oportet_fw-la al●imare_fw-la nec_fw-la endaemonem_fw-la illum_fw-la qui_fw-la nectario_fw-la ●●asit_fw-la quin_fw-la potiùs_fw-la cacodaemonem_fw-la credendum_fw-la est_fw-la baron_fw-fr tom_n 1._o a_o 56_o nu_fw-la 28._o &_o henriq_fw-la ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la rail_v upon_o nectarius_n for_o so_o do_v which_o be_v a_o sign_n that_o the_o protestant_n reject_v shrift_n break_v no_o commandment_n of_o god_n but_o follow_v the_o example_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n that_o refuse_v it_o the_o which_o be_v further_o prove_v by_o the_o preach_n of_o chrysostome_n antioch_n chrysostome_n hom._n 22_o ad_fw-la pop_n antioch_n say_v this_o be_v wonderful_a in_o god_n that_o he_o not_o only_o forgive_v we_o our_o sin_n but_o neither_o do_v he_o disclose_v they_o or_o make_v they_o know_v neither_o do_v he_o enforce_v we_o to_o come_v forth_o and_o tell_v they_o he_o require_v no_o more_o but_o that_o we_o speak_v to_o he_o alone_o and_o to_o he_o alone_o confess_v our_o fault_n this_o the_o godly_a bishop_n will_v not_o have_v do_v and_o teach_v if_o the_o confession_n have_v be_v receive_v in_o the●r_a time_n as_o necessary_a or_o if_o christ_n have_v command_v it_o or_o if_o it_o have_v be_v so_o sovereign_a a_o remedy_n against_o sin_n 7_o and_o touch_v the_o necessity_n of_o confession_n in_o lent_n afore_o they_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n homine_fw-la sacrament_n sum._n armill_n verbo_fw-la communio_fw-la §_o ult._n caiet_fw-mi supper_n 1._o cor_fw-la 11._o pa●orm_n d●●clebrac●missat_fw-la si_fw-la 〈◊〉_d de_fw-fr homine_fw-la the_o learn_a papist_n that_o ever_o be_v acknowledge_v it_o be_v a_o custom_n but_o new_o bring_v up_o though_o 255_o though_o ho●●_n memor_fw-la tract_n of_o confess_v pag_n 255_o we_o be_v call_v lewd_a preacher_n most_o wicked_o deceive_v the_o people_n because_o we_o say_v so_o but_o mark_v what_o caietan_n 4._o caietan_n in_o 3_o ●ho_n q._n 80._o art_n 4._o write_v and_o then_o judge_v what_o such_o cause_n there_o be_v why_o we_o shall_v thus_o be_v censure_v there_o appear_v no_o positive_a law_n enjoin_v shrift_n before_o the_o receipt_n of_o the_o communion_n the_o law_n of_o god_n have_v no_o such_o prece_n pt_v but_o the_o contrary_n be_v insinuate_v where_o the_o apostle_n say_v let_v a_o man_n try_v himself_o wherefore_o out_o of_o this_o document_n of_o the_o apostle_n it_o seem_v unto_o i_o that_o he_o which_o be_v contrite_a for_o his_o sin_n and_o receive_v the_o communion_n without_o shrift_n sin_v not_o mortal_o though_o he_o have_v a_o confessor_n at_o hand_n the_o reason_n move_v i_o thus_o to_o think_v be_v because_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o a_o man_n have_v contrition_n for_o his_o mortal_a sin_n not_o confess_v and_o so_o receive_v do_v that_o which_o be_v not_o sin_n of_o it_o own_o kind_n yea_o to_o receive_v the_o other_o sacrament_n also_o with_o contrition_n only_o seem_v no_o where_o to_o be_v forbid_v and_o that_o which_o be_v not_o confirm_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o father_n must_v not_o by_o a_o superstitious_a novelty_n be_v command_v the_o papist_n therefore_o extol_v shrift_n so_o fast_o talk_v out_o of_o their_o ignorance_n not_o think_v that_o we_o know_v how_o base_o they_o think_v of_o it_o themselves_o 8_o for_o they_o not_o only_o know_v it_o to_o be_v as_o i_o have_v say_v a_o late_a tradition_n and_o custom_n
catholic_a church_n profess_v that_o mortal_a man_n be_v to_o worship_n god_n not_o by_o image_n and_o angel_n but_o by_o christ_n the_o lord_n epiphanius_n haeret_fw-la epiphanius_n l._n 3._o adver●us_fw-la haeret_fw-la say_v the_o virgin_n mary_n be_v a_o virgin_n and_o honourable_a but_o not_o give_v for_o we_o to_o worship_n but_o herself_o worship_v he_o that_o take_v flesh_n of_o she_o final_o many_o learned_a papist_n be_v of_o our_o side_n in_o this_o point_n for_o 3._o for_o peres_n de_fw-fr trad_a part_n 3._o some_o condemn_v all_o divine_a adoration_n give_v unto_o they_o b._n they_o gers_n compend_v theol._n praecep_v 1._o holk_n in_o sap._n lect_n 157._o b._n some_o condemn_v all_o worship_n whatsoever_o even_o the_o bow_n before_o they_o 13._o they_o polyd._n invent_v l_o 6._o c._n 13._o some_o acknowledge_v that_o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n conden_v they_o ibid._n they_o duran_n ration_n l._n 1._o c._n 3._o n._n 4._o catarrh_n tract_n de_fw-fr cult_a imag_n polyd_n ibid._n some_o think_v their_o use_n to_o be_v dangerous_a and_o they_o which_o have_v go_v further_a in_o defend_v they_o yet_o confess_v primate_n confess_v can._n 6._o nilus_n primate_n that_o they_o which_o teach_v they_o may_v be_v worship_v with_o divine_a honour_n be_v constrain_v to_o use_v such_o nice_a distinction_n as_o neither_o themselves_n nor_o the_o people_n understand_v and_o if_o they_o conceive_v they_o yet_o they_o can_v but_o err_v in_o do_v it_o 22._o it_o peres_n ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la bell_n de_fw-fr imag_n c._n 22._o 6_o six_o touch_v the_o supremacy_n for_o primate_n for_o can._n 6._o nilus_n primate_n the_o council_n of_o nice_a appoint_a bound_n and_o limit_n as_o well_o for_o the_o pope_n jurisdiction_n as_o for_o other_o bishop_n and_o the_o counsel_n 16._o counsel_n act._n 16._o of_o chalcedon_n and_o 36._o and_o sext._n synod_n i●_n t●ull_a can_v 36._o constantinople_n make_v the_o b._n of_o constantinople_n equal_a in_o all_o thing_n that_o concern_v authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n with_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o 2._o and_o cusan_a conce_n l._n 2_o c_o 12._o ma●sil_n defen_v pac_fw-la part_n 2._o c._n 18._o duaren_n de_fw-fr benefic_n l._n 3._o c._n 2._o some_o papist_n do_v not_o deny_v but_o the_o pope_n primacy_n be_v much_o large_a than_o it_o be_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n wherein_o they_o say_v the_o truth_n for_o the_o counsel_n of_o 9_o of_o cap._n 9_o chalcedon_n 105._o chalcedon_n cap._n 105._o africa_n 22_o africa_n can._n 22_o milevi_n and_o 26._o and_o synod_n 8._o can_n 26._o constantinople_n forbid_v all_o appeal_n to_o he_o from_o foreign_a place_n yea_o that_o of_o africa_n reject_v his_o claim_n and_o write_v unto_o he_o that_o he_o shall_v forbear_v the_o take_n upon_o he_o any_o such_o pre-eminence_n lest_o say_v they_o the_o smoky_a pomp_n of_o the_o world_n be_v bring_v into_o christ_n church_n and_o gregory_n who_o himself_o be_v pope_n of_o rome_n 194._o rome_n regist_n l._n 6._o ep_n 194._o write_v that_o he_o dare_v confident_o say_v he_o be_v the_o forerunner_n of_o antichrist_n in_o his_o pride_n whosoever_o he_o be_v that_o call_v himself_o the_o universal_a bishop_n or_o desire_v so_o to_o be_v call_v because_o he_o put_v himself_o before_o other_o for_o at_o that_o time_n synod_n time_n harmenop_n epit_fw-la sacr_n cano_fw-la tit_n 7._o the_o synod_n the_o name_n of_o universal_a be_v forbid_v all_o the_o patriarch_n as_o it_o signify_v the_o chief_a above_o the_o rest_n and_o 1000_o year_n after_o christ_n it_o be_v think_v 24._o think_v glab_n rodolf_n quem_fw-la refert_fw-la &_o taxat_fw-la baro._n a_o 996._o n._n 24._o that_o although_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n be_v more_o reverence_v than_o the_o rest_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o he_o in_o any_o thing_n to_o go_v beyond_o the_o tenor_n of_o the_o canon_n for_o as_o every_o bishop_n in_o his_o own_o sea_n uniform_o bear_v the_o image_n of_o our_o saviour_n so_o general_o it_o befit_v none_o busy_o to_o do_v any_o thing_n in_o another_o diocese_n and_o when_o the_o pope_n but_o 500_o year_n since_o practise_v against_o the_o emperor_n as_o now_o he_o do_v against_o king_n 1088._o king_n sigeb_n chron_n pag._n 129._o ann_n 1088._o the_o story_n note_v it_o as_o novelty_n and_o heresy_n that_o priest_n shall_v teach_v the_o people_n to_o yield_v no_o subjection_n to_o evil_a prince_n and_o shall_v absolve_v they_o from_o sin_n and_o perjury_n that_o practise_v against_o they_o whereas_o now_o ob_v now_o decretal_a greg._n 9_o the_o mayor_n &_o ob_v c._n solitae_fw-la extravag_n commun_n c._n unam_fw-la sanctam_fw-la de_fw-la maior_fw-la &_o ob_v the_o authority_n to_o depose_v and_o molest_v prince_n and_o absolve_v subject_n from_o their_o obedience_n be_v make_v one_o of_o the_o principal_a part_n of_o the_o supremacy_n and_o touch_v his_o temporalty_n which_o he_o now_o possess_v the_o story_n have_v observe_v how_o by_o fraud_n and_o treason_n he_o cozen_v secular_a prince_n of_o they_o from_o time_n to_o time_n as_o occasion_v serve_v and_o so_o his_o whole_a primacy_n get_v in_o by_o step_n into_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o 5._o yet_o turrecrem_fw-la tract_n 73._o qu._n è_fw-la tho._n q._n 5._o they_o will_v make_v we_o believe_v the_o denial_n thereof_o be_v heresy_n 7_o in_o the_o seven_o place_n i_o name_v the_o communion_n in_o one_o kind_n for_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n use_v and_o defend_v it_o contrary_a to_o 23._o to_o cyrill_n catech_n mystag_n 5._o liturg_n marc_n pag._n 62._o constitur_fw-la clement_n pag._n 145._o graec_fw-la ordo_fw-la rom._n pag._n 23._o all_o antiquity_n and_o the_o very_a form_n of_o their_o own_o liturgy_n for_o the_o most_o ancient_a liturgy_n that_o they_o have_v show_v how_o the_o people_n receive_v the_o wine_n as_o well_o as_o bread_n and_o caietan_n 3._o caietan_n 3._o part_n thom._n cue_n 80._o art_n 12._o q._n 3._o faith_n this_o custom_n endure_v long_o in_o the_o church_n and_o that_o they_o have_v minister_a cup_n for_o the_o nonce_n to_o serve_v the_o people_n with_o wine_n and_o i_o think_v not_o papist_n will_v deny_v this_o and_o some_o 221._o some_o ouand_fw-fr 4_o p._n 221._o say_v it_o be_v better_a if_o this_o custom_n be_v renew_v again_o 8_o last_o i_o name_v transubstantiation_n for_o 267._o for_o censur_fw-fr colo._n pag._n 267._o our_o adversary_n say_v the_o true_a church_n have_v always_o teach_v that_o as_o soon_o as_o the_o priest_n have_v pronounce_v the_o word_n of_o consecration_n the_o former_a substance_n of_o bread_n &_o wine_n be_v change_v into_o the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ_n so_o that_o no_o other_o substance_n remain_v but_o only_a christ_n body_n and_o blood_n the_o accident_n by_o a_o supernatural_a power_n abide_v without_o a_o subject_n the_o which_o how_o false_a it_o be_v appear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 11.26_o god_n luc._n 22.18_o 1._o cor._n 10.16_o &_o 11.26_o call_v it_o bread_n &_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o vine_n after_o the_o blessing_n and_o 20_o and_o luc._n ●2_n 20_o say_v of_o the_o cup_n in_o the_o same_o form_n of_o word_n that_o be_v use_v of_o the_o bread_n this_o cup_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n and_o teach_v that_o without_o bread_n there_o can_v be_v no_o sacrament_n and_o that_o christ_n have_v a_o body_n of_o the_o same_o nature_n that_o we_o be_v which_o can_v be_v without_o his_o dimension_n in_o many_o place_n at_o once_o and_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o herein_o they_o have_v alter_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n for_o saint_n austin_n 16._o austin_n de_fw-fr doctr._n christ_n l._n 3._o c._n 16._o say_v these_o word_n unless_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n be_v a_o figure_n command_v we_o to_o partake_v the_o passion_n of_o christ_n and_o profitable_o to_o remember_v that_o his_o flesh_n be_v crucify_v for_o us._n chrysostom_n monach._n chrysostom_n ad_fw-la caesar_n monach._n say_v the_o bread_n before_o it_o be_v sanctify_v we_o call_v bread_n but_o when_o the_o divine_a grace_n sanctifi_v it_o it_o be_v deliver_v from_o the_o name_n of_o bread_n and_o be_v think_v worthy_a the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n though_o the_o nature_n of_o bread_n remain_v still_o gelasius_n a_o bishop_n of_o rome_n christi_fw-la rome_n de_fw-fr duabus_fw-la nat_n christi_fw-la say_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n pass_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n yet_o so_o as_o the_o nature_n of_o bread_n &_o wine_n cease_v not_o &_o they_o be_v turn_v into_o the_o divine_a substance_n yet_o the_o bread_n &_o wine_n remain_v still_o in_o the_o property_n of_o their_o nature_n theodoret_n say_v immuta_fw-la say_v dial._n immuta_fw-la our_o saviour_n in_o deliver_v the_o sacrament_n call_v his_o body_n bread_n and_o
thing_n first_o that_o if_o religion_n be_v among_o the_o britain_n and_o extinguish_v no_o where_o but_o in_o kent_n where_o austin_n arrive_v than_o he_o convert_v not_o the_o land_n but_o one_o poor_a country_n in_o it_o and_o must_v be_v call_v no_o long_o the_o apostle_n of_o england_n but_o the_o apostle_n of_o kent_n which_o compass_n i_o think_v our_o ambitious_a adversary_n will_v not_o be_v content_a with_o because_o it_o be_v too_o narrow_a for_o their_o turn_n next_o 4_o next_o three_o conver_n part_n 1._o c._n 11_o n._n 4_o the_o busy_a adversary_n that_o we_o have_v in_o this_o matter_n say_v all_o the_o land_n be_v convert_v about_o that_o time_n for_o austin_n convert_v the_o kingdom_n of_o kent_n &_o the_o east_n saxon_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v convert_v within_o less_o than_o threescore_o year_n after_o be_v seven_o state_n in_o all_o the_o which_o narration_n ascribe_v the_o same_o want_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n to_o all_o the_o land_n that_o in_o the_o objection_n be_v lay_v to_o kent_n alone_o whence_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o faith_n be_v not_o extinct_a in_o kent_n because_o it_o be_v remain_v still_o in_o the_o other_o six_o kingdom_n the_o which_o to_o be_v true_a appear_v by_o bede_n who_o 8.17.21_o who_o l._n 1._o c._n 8.17.21_o write_v that_o afore_o augustine_n come_n the_o britain_n be_v trouble_v with_o arrianisme_n and_o pelagianisme_n but_o germanus_n lupus_n and_o severus_n three_o french_a bishop_n deliver_v they_o whereby_o it_o be_v plain_o prove_v that_o the_o whole_a land_n be_v not_o convert_v by_o austin_n but_o have_v the_o faith_n long_o before_o he_o come_v three_o touch_v kent_n itself_o where_o austin_n arrive_v over_o and_o beside_o that_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v to_o have_v want_v the_o faith_n any_o more_o than_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o land_n do_v bede_n 25.26_o bede_n l._n 1._o c._n 25.26_o say_v that_o the_o queen_n thereof_o be_v a_o french_a woman_n call_v bertha_n a_o good_a christian_a and_o have_v a_o christian_a bishop_n even_o at_o that_o time_n when_o austin_n come_v 2._o come_v l._n 2._o c._n 2._o and_o he_o add_v further_a that_o when_o he_o arrive_v he_o find_v diverse_a briton_n bishop_n and_o learned_a man_n with_o a_o monastery_n at_o bangor_n all_o which_o be_v christian_n and_o refuse_v austin_n for_o his_o pride_n which_o they_o find_v in_o he_o contrary_a to_o christ_n humility_n and_o touch_v the_o britain_n our_o adversary_n 1._o adversary_n three_o conver_n par_fw-fr 1._o c._n 9_o n._n 1._o write_v that_o from_o king_n lucius_n time_n until_o the_o come_n of_o austin_n which_o be_v four_o hundred_o year_n and_o more_o they_o do_v not_o alter_v their_o faith_n but_o it_o remain_v among_o they_o when_o he_o enter_v for_o 17._o for_o lib._n 1._o c._n 17._o bede_n say_v that_o when_o a_o certain_a bishop_n son_n broach_v the_o heresy_n of_o pelagius_n in_o the_o land_n yet_o the_o people_n will_v not_o receive_v it_o which_o constrain_v we_o to_o think_v that_o austin_n bring_v not_o the_o faith_n into_o the_o land_n with_o he_o but_o find_v it_o there_o when_o he_o come_v his_o errand_n as_o it_o may_v probable_o be_v think_v be_v about_o the_o plant_n of_o certain_a ceremony_n and_o the_o deal_n with_o our_o countryman_n about_o the_o observation_n of_o easter_n and_o praefat_fw-la and_o cassand_n ordo_fw-la rom._n praefat_fw-la gregory_n that_o send_v he_o about_o that_o time_n be_v busy_a in_o change_v the_o liturgy_n use_v in_o these_o western_a part_n and_o do_v change_v they_o and_o thrust_v his_o new_a one_o upon_o all_o the_o place_n he_o can_v it_o may_v be_v this_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o monk_n business_n into_o kent_n 3_o and_o as_o the_o jesuite_n untrue_o ascribe_v the_o conversion_n of_o england_n to_o the_o monk_n so_o have_v he_o as_o absurd_o write_v that_o the_o protestant_n religion_n be_v unhatched_a for_o i_o know_v not_o how_o many_o hundred_o year_n after_o which_o he_o will_v not_o have_v say_v but_o that_o papist_n be_v famous_a for_o their_o adventure_n for_o before_o the_o conquest_n elfrici_n conquest_n homil._n saxonic_n a_o elfrici_n aelfricus_fw-la a_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n cause_v the_o people_n of_o the_o land_n to_o be_v teach_v the_o same_o doctrine_n touch_v the_o sacrament_n that_o we_o hold_v and_o chron_n and_o h._n huntingd._n l._n 7._o fab._n chron_n the_o priest_n be_v marry_v as_o now_o they_o be_v and_o 1._o and_o bed_n l._n 1._o c._n 1._o the_o scripture_n be_v use_v in_o the_o mother_n tongue_n and_o after_o the_o conquest_n live_v john_n wickliff_n and_o the_o lollard_n who_o hold_v the_o same_o faith_n that_o we_o do_v and_o suffer_v persecution_n for_o it_o 4_o that_o which_o he_o say_v of_o other_o country_n convert_v by_o mean_n of_o such_o as_o be_v member_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n prove_v not_o papistry_n to_o be_v either_o ancient_a or_o universal_a for_o the_o three_o first_o author_n in_o the_o place_n allege_v speak_v of_o the_o time_n within_o the_o first_o five_o hundred_o year_n when_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v of_o our_o religion_n and_o that_o which_o they_o report_v be_v not_o of_o any_o who_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n send_v or_o procure_v to_o convert_v the_o country_n but_o this_o 24_o this_o socr._n l._n 1._o c._n 19.20_o soz._n l._n 2_o c._n 24_o that_o frumentius_n be_v send_v by_o athanasius_n the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n convert_v the_o indian_n 40._o indian_n niceph._n l._n 14._o c._n 40._o and_o a_o captive_a woman_n convert_v the_o iberian_o and_o a_o sort_n of_o jew_n in_o crect_n be_v convert_v by_o the_o inhabitant_n and_o the_o burgundian_n instruct_v by_o a_o french_a bishop_n in_o all_o which_o there_o be_v neither_o mention_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n nor_o of_o the_o present_a faith_n now_o profess_v therein_o but_o our_o adversary_n think_v that_o whatsoever_o be_v find_v in_o antiquity_n concern_v the_o ancient_a church_n of_o rome_n shall_v belong_v to_o they_o wherein_o they_o find_v themselves_o deceive_v as_o often_o as_o the_o matter_n be_v put_v to_o trial_n and_o this_o one_o example_n may_v show_v it_o for_o allow_v all_o these_o country_n to_o have_v be_v convert_v by_o such_o as_o be_v member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n yet_o this_o be_v a_o thousand_o year_n ago_o when_o that_o church_n be_v the_o same_o that_o we_o be_v and_o so_o the_o conversion_n be_v wrought_v by_o person_n adhere_v to_o the_o protestant_n faith_n the_o three_o last_o author_n platina_n aeneas_n and_o baronius_n be_v papist_n live_v one_o of_o they_o at_o this_o day_n the_o other_o within_o the_o memory_n of_o our_o father_n and_o therefore_o i_o regard_v not_o what_o they_o write_v touch_v this_o question_n because_o we_o have_v more_o ancient_a record_n against_o they_o and_o yet_o whatsoever_o they_o have_v write_v the_o present_a roman_a faith_n be_v not_o justify_v thereby_o for_o heretic_n may_v convert_v nation_n to_o heresy_n as_o 19_o as_o oros_n hist_o l._n 7._o c._n 19_o the_o arrian_n and_o 347._o and_o cedren_n compend_v pag._n 347._o mahomet_n have_v do_v therefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o first_o they_o prove_v their_o faith_n to_o be_v agreeable_a with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o compare_v they_o together_o afore_o they_o boast_v of_o their_o conversion_n digression_n 50._o of_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o indies_n to_o the_o roman_a faith_n by_o the_o jesuite_n 5_o but_o that_o which_o he_o urge_v concern_v the_o indies_n must_v be_v a_o little_a further_o look_v into_o for_o 18._o for_o epist_n indic_n bellar._n not_o eccl_n c._n 12._o hard._n confut_o apol_n p._n 18._o our_o adversary_n make_v much_o ado_n and_o tell_v wonder_n of_o their_o miracle_n and_o conversion_n there_o but_o mark_v the_o word_n of_o franciscus_n victoria_n their_o own_o writer_n it_o do_v not_o 200._o not_o relect._n 5._o pag._n 200._o say_v he_o sufficient_o appear_v to_o i_o that_o the_o christian_a faith_n have_v hitherto_o be_v so_o offer_v and_o preach_v to_o the_o indies_n that_o they_o shall_v under_o the_o pain_n of_o sin_n be_v bind_v to_o believe_v it_o this_o i_o say_v because_o they_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o believe_v unless_o the_o faith_n be_v propound_v to_o they_o with_o probable_a persuasion_n but_o miracle_n or_o sign_n i_o hear_v of_o none_o nor_o example_n of_o life_n so_o religious_a nay_o the_o contrary_a i_o hear_v of_o many_o scandal_n and_o villainy_n and_o many_o impiety_n whence_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o christian_a religion_n have_v not_o be_v preach_v to_o they_o convenient_o nor_o godly_o the_o which_o how_o true_a it_o be_v you_o may_v perceive_v by_o that_o which_o follow_v concern_v the_o prodigious_a cruelty_n of_o the_o spaniard_n and_o impious_a behaviour_n of_o the_o priest_n in_o those_o country_n ever_o since_o their_o first_o
of_o christ_n continual_a presence_n no_o assurance_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n infallible_a assistance_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a that_o such_o a_o gross_a heresy_n can_v arise_v and_o overwhelm_v the_o whole_a world_n without_o some_o resistance_n the_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n can_v not_o be_v so_o simple_a or_o so_o unmindful_a of_o their_o duty_n but_o they_o will_v first_o note_v such_o a_o evident_a contrariety_n to_o the_o ancient_a and_o universal_o receive_v faith_n and_o note_v it_o will_v with_o common_a consent_n resist_v contradict_v and_o final_o according_a to_o s._n paul_n rule_n gal._n 1._o accurse_v it_o if_o therefore_o this_o can_v not_o happen_v nor_o never_o do_v at_o any_o time_n in_o like_a case_n that_o any_o such_o gross_a error_n or_o heresy_n do_v or_o can_v arise_v without_o note_v and_o resist_v what_o reason_n can_v any_o one_o have_v to_o say_v that_o this_o have_v happen_v at_o rome_n and_o yet_o can_v bring_v no_o writer_n that_o do_v note_v the_o thing_n the_o time_n and_o person_n and_o what_o opposition_n be_v make_v against_o it_o as_o in_o all_o heresy_n that_o have_v true_o spring_v up_o of_o new_a we_o can_v do_v if_o there_o can_v not_o a_o little_a ceremony_n be_v add_v to_o the_o mass_n but_o that_o it_o be_v set_v down_o in_o history_n when_o and_o by_o who_o how_o can_v the_o whole_a substance_n of_o the_o mass_n which_o consist_v in_o consecration_n oblation_n consumption_n of_o the_o sacred_a host_n be_v new_o invent_v and_o no_o mention_n make_v when_o where_o or_o by_o who_o or_o that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o invention_n at_o all_o if_o also_o historiographer_n be_v not_o afraid_a to_o note_v personal_a and_o private_a vice_n of_o pope_n which_o they_o may_v well_o think_v those_o pope_n will_v not_o willing_o have_v have_v publish_v why_o shall_v they_o have_v fear_v to_o have_v record_v any_o alteration_n in_o religion_n which_o if_o it_o have_v be_v have_v be_v a_o thing_n do_v by_o themselves_o public_o in_o the_o view_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n so_o that_o we_o may_v well_o conclude_v that_o if_o christian_a religion_n have_v since_o the_o apostle_n time_n alter_v in_o rome_n it_o will_v have_v be_v record_v in_o history_n as_o other_o such_o alteration_n be_v and_z if_o they_o shall_v now_o happen_v will_v be_v but_o no_o mention_n be_v make_v in_o any_o story_n that_o such_o a_o alteration_n be_v it_o be_v sure_a no_o such_o be_v at_o all_o no_o such_o change_n of_o religion_n be_v at_o all_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o same_o faith_n and_o religion_n which_o be_v in_o s_n paul_n time_n have_v always_o continue_v and_o be_v there_o now_o that_o which_o be_v there_o then_o be_v the_o true_a faith_n as_o appear_v by_o that_o high_a commendation_n which_o s._n paul_n have_v leave_v write_v of_o it_o therefore_o that_o which_o be_v there_o now_o must_v needs_o be_v the_o true_a catholic_a faith_n and_o that_o company_n which_o profess_v it_o must_v needs_o be_v the_o true_a catholic_a church_n the_o answer_n 1_o it_o must_v be_v remember_v that_o the_o point_n which_o the_o jesuit_n in_o this_o place_n drive_v at_o be_v to_o prove_v his_o romish_a church_n catholic_a that_o be_v deny_v no_o point_n of_o doctrine_n which_o in_o former_a time_n be_v universal_o receive_v of_o the_o catholic_a church_n but_o hold_v the_o very_a same_o without_o any_o change_n to_o prove_v this_o he_o have_v here_o furnish_v a_o popular_a speech_n well_o conceit_v it_o seem_v by_o himself_o and_o much_o report_v i_o perceive_v by_o the_o vulgar_a of_o his_o side_n and_o because_o it_o full_o express_v the_o conceit_n of_o our_o country_n papist_n touch_v the_o antiquity_n of_o their_o religion_n and_o contain_v many_o speech_n use_v by_o they_o in_o maintenance_n of_o their_o heresy_n and_o omit_v nothing_o of_o that_o which_o can_v be_v say_v against_o we_o in_o this_o point_n therefore_o i_o will_v answer_v it_o from_o point_n to_o point_n plain_o and_o direct_o desire_v the_o reader_n to_o mark_v i_o diligent_o and_o entreat_v my_o adversary_n whosoever_o he_o be_v in_o the_o cause_n not_o to_o shut_v his_o eye_n against_o reason_n when_o it_o be_v ready_a to_o convince_v he_o nor_o to_o mistake_v any_o thing_n that_o i_o shall_v say_v but_o to_o apply_v it_o and_o compare_v it_o to_o that_o which_o be_v object_v as_o all_o christian_a and_o moderate_a mind_a man_n in_o pursuit_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o peace_n ought_v to_o do_v 2_o the_o whole_a be_v thus_o contract_v there_o never_o be_v in_o time_n past_a nor_o never_o shall_v be_v in_o time_n present_a or_o to_o come_v any_o alteration_n from_o the_o true_a faith_n to_o gross_a heresy_n such_o as_o the_o roman_a religion_n be_v suppose_v to_o be_v but_o four_o thing_n fall_v out_o withal_o 1._o some_o space_n of_o time_n may_v be_v show_v in_o which_o the_o say_a heresy_n be_v not_o visible_o know_v 2._o the_o time_n may_v be_v assign_v when_o it_o begin_v to_o rise_v and_o the_o truth_n to_o fail_v 3._o the_o person_n be_v record_v that_o bring_v it_o in_o 4._o the_o bishop_n and_o people_n be_v know_v that_o note_n it_o resist_v lament_v and_o curse_v it_o but_o there_o be_v no_o record_n extant_a that_o any_o of_o these_o thing_n happen_v to_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n ergo_fw-la it_o be_v the_o ancient_a catholic_a faith_n without_o any_o change_n i_o answer_v that_o both_o the_o proposition_n be_v false_a the_o first_o because_o many_o time_n the_o truth_n have_v be_v change_v into_o error_n where_o the_o circumstance_n mention_v can_v be_v give_v the_o second_o because_o in_o many_o thing_n hold_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n at_o this_o day_n we_o can_v out_o of_o good_a record_n assign_v the_o time_n of_o the_o alteration_n with_o the_o circumstance_n this_o my_o answer_n i_o will_v apply_v particular_o to_o all_o that_o the_o jesuite_n say_v as_o it_o lie_v in_o order_n and_o so_o confirm_v it_o reduce_v every_o thing_n to_o one_o of_o the_o proposition_n whereto_o it_o belong_v 3_o first_o he_o require_v we_o to_o show_v some_o space_n of_o time_n wherein_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v not_o visible_o know_v ever_o since_o christ_n as_o he_o can_v show_v many_o hundred_o year_n wherein_o our_o church_n be_v not_o this_o demand_n be_v satisfy_v already_o in_o the_o 47._o sect_n and_o shall_v be_v further_o answer_v in_o that_o which_o follow_v where_o that_o which_o he_o say_v to_o prove_v it_o be_v disprove_v and_o though_o the_o protestant_n confess_v their_o church_n to_o have_v be_v invisible_a as_o i_o have_v expound_v digression_n 17._o yet_o that_o will_v do_v the_o jesuite_n no_o good_a because_o we_o object_v more_o against_o his_o church_n then_o so_o which_o objection_n he_o may_v easy_o assail_v with_o brag_n and_o confidence_n but_o can_v never_o answer_v with_o truth_n and_o good_a divinity_n as_o shall_v appear_v 4_o next_o he_o bid_v we_o show_v when_o the_o roman_a church_n fail_v in_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o ancient_a faith_n which_o once_o it_o have_v rom._n 1.8_o and_o who_o begin_v the_o new_a whereto_o i_o answer_v that_o these_o two_o circumstance_n when_o and_o by_o who_o may_v be_v show_v in_o diverse_a point_n which_o be_v sufficient_a to_o disprove_v all_o the_o rest_n see_v below_o nu_fw-la 8._o &_o inde_fw-la where_o i_o name_v both_o the_o time_n and_o person_n that_o change_v some_o point_n which_o be_v so_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n why_o the_o remainder_n of_o that_o religion_n the_o author_n whereof_o be_v unknown_a shall_v be_v justify_v under_o pretence_n that_o we_o show_v not_o the_o precise_a circumstance_n of_o the_o alteration_n for_o we_o give_v sound_a and_o sufficient_a reason_n why_o we_o need_v not_o do_v it_o and_o to_o prepare_v the_o jesuite_n and_o his_o partaker_n to_o the_o hear_n thereof_o i_o propound_v plutarch_n propound_v plutarch_n that_o famous_a problem_n which_o in_o time_n past_o the_o greek_n debate_v so_o curious_o the_o ship_n argos_n wherein_o jason_n sail_v for_o the_o golden_a fleece_n at_o his_o return_n the_o voyage_n be_v end_v be_v lay_v up_o in_o the_o road_n for_o a_o monument_n where_o decay_v by_o little_a and_o little_a they_o always_o peece_v it_o anew_o where_o it_o wear_v away_o till_o in_o the_o end_n the_o whole_a substance_n of_o the_o old_a vessel_n be_v go_v and_o nothing_o remain_v thereof_o but_o only_o the_o reparation_n successive_o make_v in_o the_o room_n of_o the_o old_a now_o the_o question_n be_v this_o whether_o this_o ship_n say_v it_o be_v saint_n peter_n to_o gratify_v the_o jesuite_n be_v the_o same_o that_o he_o sail_v in_o when_o he_o live_v or_o another_o new_a one_o diverse_a from_o it_o and_o whether_o my_o wise_a athenian_a can_v precise_o tell_v when_o
and_o by_o what_o workman_n every_o piece_n be_v supply_v till_o the_o old_a be_v whole_o go_v for_o if_o that_o can_v not_o be_v show_v then_o by_o the_o jesuite_n reason_n it_o must_v be_v repute_v for_o the_o very_a argosme_n wherein_o jason_n make_v his_o voyage_n without_o any_o alteration_n 5_o but_o he_o say_v it_o be_v not_o possible_a that_o so_o gross_a heresy_n as_o we_o account_v papistry_n to_o be_v can_v arise_v and_o overwhelm_v the_o world_n without_o some_o resistance_n the_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n can_v not_o be_v so_o careless_a but_o they_o will_v note_v and_o resist_v it_o as_o the_o bring_n in_o of_o any_o heathen_a or_o jewish_a rite_n this_o day_n into_o the_o church_n will_v be_v whereto_o i_o answer_v that_o the_o jesuite_n mistake_v himself_o gross_o if_o he_o think_v his_o faith_n come_v in_o without_o resistance_n or_o imagine_v that_o we_o grant_v so_o much_o for_o it_o be_v gainsay_v in_o the_o rise_n with_o campian_n own_o circumstance_n the_o pastor_n of_o god_n church_n oppose_v themselves_o the_o people_n lament_v the_o writer_n mention_v it_o as_o i_o plain_o show_v in_o that_o which_o follow_v and_o although_o the_o particular_a circumstance_n of_o time_n place_n and_o person_n appertain_v to_o this_o resistance_n do_v not_o so_o evident_o appear_v to_o we_o that_o now_o live_v so_o far_o off_o from_o the_o change_n yet_o that_o be_v by_o reason_n the_o say_a change_n be_v not_o make_v in_o a_o instant_n all_o at_o once_o but_o come_v sly_o and_o slow_o in_o and_o we_o that_o now_o live_v have_v not_o record_n of_o all_o that_o fall_v out_o so_o long_o ago_o we_o have_v sufficient_a record_n of_o many_o thing_n but_o not_o of_o all_o particular_n the_o want_n whereof_o arise_v either_o from_o the_o scarcity_n of_o writer_n in_o some_o age_n or_o the_o changer_n tyranny_n suppress_v all_o that_o be_v write_v be_v the_o cause_n why_o the_o jesuite_n may_v the_o bold_o insult_v be_v there_o no_o historiographer_n that_o will_v mention_v such_o a_o matter_n it_o be_v one_o thing_n therefore_o to_o think_v there_o be_v no_o resistance_n at_o all_o and_o another_o to_o say_v the_o particular_a circumstance_n of_o the_o resistance_n make_v against_o every_o several_a point_n be_v not_o now_o extant_a the_o former_a we_o utter_o deny_v the_o latter_a may_v be_v grant_v and_o of_o necessity_n must_v for_o these_o consideration_n namely_o that_o a_o change_n may_v have_v be_v in_o many_o point_n of_o the_o romish_a faith_n though_o we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o yield_v the_o history_n or_o record_n of_o every_o particular_a circumstance_n that_o accompany_v it_o for_o first_o we_o have_v no_o mean_n to_o know_v what_o have_v be_v do_v former_o but_o by_o history_n and_o writing_n which_o we_o want_v or_o have_v in_o that_o scarcity_n that_o we_o may_v safe_o resolve_v ourselves_o many_o thing_n be_v want_v that_o be_v do_v second_o we_o have_v pregnant_a testimony_n of_o the_o change_n of_o some_o thing_n and_o as_o sufficient_a as_o we_o desire_v which_o be_v a_o undoubted_a reason_n that_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v change_v also_o forasmuch_o as_o it_o stand_v all_o upon_o one_o ground_n and_o one_o part_n thereof_o draw_v another_o with_o it_o by_o necessary_a consequence_n three_o it_o be_v agree_v that_o all_o error_n whatsoever_o consist_v in_o change_v from_o the_o truth_n yet_o some_o there_o be_v the_o particular_a circumstance_n whereof_o be_v unknown_a as_o for_o example_n the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n catch_v many_o thing_n against_o the_o law_n and_o christ_n reprove_v they_o yet_o the_o time_n when_o those_o corruption_n first_o come_v in_o and_o the_o person_n that_o devise_v they_o be_v unknown_a to_o us._n 4._o us._n alphons_n haer_fw-mi l._n 4._o verb._n christ_n haeres_fw-la 4._o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n there_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o heretic_n call_v acephali_n because_o no_o man_n be_v find_v to_o be_v their_o head_n and_o master_n our_o adversary_n suppose_v the_o reject_v of_o image_n to_o be_v a_o great_a heresy_n yet_o can_v they_o not_o tell_v when_o it_o begin_v nor_o who_o first_o bring_v it_o in_o imag_n in_o alphons_n haer_fw-mi l._n 8._o verb._n imag_n some_o think_v felix_n orgelitanus_n about_o the_o year_n 794._o 1._o 794._o sand._n the_o imag_n l._n 1._o c._n ult._n vazq_n adorat_fw-la l._n 2._o disp_n 2._o c._n 1._o some_o say_v the_o marcionite_n and_o manichee_n long_o before_o 27._o before_o niceph._n l._n 16._o c._n 27._o some_o xenaias_n a_o persian_a 6._o persian_a bell._n de_fw-fr imag._n c._n 6._o some_o think_v the_o jew_n in_o their_o talmud_n be_v the_o first_o and_o our_o adversary_n can_v deny_v but_o themselves_o practice_v some_o thing_n in_o their_o church_n which_o be_v not_o use_v in_o ancient_a time_n and_o yet_o they_o can_v tell_v when_o they_o begin_v nor_o who_o bring_v they_o in_o touch_v pardon_n the_o case_n be_v clear_a for_o caietan_n 1._o caietan_n tract_n de_fw-fr indulg_n c._n 1._o say_v there_o be_v no_o certainty_n when_o they_o begin_v and_o concern_v the_o use_n of_o organ_n in_o church_n 15._o church_n baron_fw-fr a_fw-fr 60._o nu_fw-la 37._o bella_fw-la de_fw-la missa_fw-la l._n 2._o c._n 15._o it_o be_v unknown_a when_o and_o by_o who_o it_o come_v in_o save_v that_o 16._o that_o caiet_fw-mi 22._o q_o 91._o greg._n val_n to_o 3._o pa._n 1427._o navar._n de_fw-fr hotis_fw-la canon_n c._n 16._o the_o most_o judicious_a papist_n think_v that_o in_o the_o day_n of_o thomas_n aquinas_n which_o be_v 1300._o year_n after_o christ_n the_o church_n have_v they_o not_o the_o which_o instance_n make_v plain_a demonstration_n of_o that_o which_o i_o have_v answer_v that_o there_o maybe_o a_o change_n when_o the_o circumstance_n of_o time_n place_n and_o person_n be_v unknown_a to_o we_o that_o live_v after_o 6_o the_o reason_n of_o this_o be_v yet_o further_o to_o be_v expound_v for_o the_o romish_a faith_n come_v into_o the_o church_n as_o sickness_n do_v into_o the_o body_n and_o ruin_n to_o a_o house_n which_o appear_v not_o by_o and_o by_o at_o the_o first_o but_o then_o when_o it_o be_v ripen_v for_o the_o child_n of_o god_n abide_v still_o in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o they_o do_v not_o by_o allow_v the_o material_a corruption_n in_o faith_n whereinto_o she_o fall_v but_o by_o embrace_v that_o truth_n and_o good_a which_o she_o yet_o retain_v and_o want_v mean_n to_o reform_v what_o be_v amiss_o the_o change_n which_o successive_o she_o make_v in_o the_o faith_n be_v not_o so_o easy_o discover_v by_o reason_n there_o be_v yet_o no_o notable_a separation_n which_o be_v the_o only_a and_o most_o visible_a resistance_n that_o can_v be_v make_v i_o say_v god_n child_n in_o all_o age_n preserve_v themselves_o from_o consent_v to_o the_o change_n that_o fall_v out_o in_o the_o substance_n of_o faith_n but_o they_o do_v not_o always_o abandon_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o make_v the_o change_n first_o because_o she_o change_v not_o in_o a_o instant_n but_o by_o degree_n and_o so_o consequent_o still_o hold_v many_o good_a thing_n wherewith_o they_o communicate_v next_o because_o the_o tyranny_n of_o rome_n suppress_v they_o so_o that_o they_o can_v not_o manifest_v abroad_o to_o the_o world_n their_o mislike_n whereby_o it_o may_v come_v to_o we_o but_o by_o force_n and_o violence_n be_v constrain_v to_o devour_v their_o own_o sorrow_n in_o the_o society_n of_o their_o adversary_n the_o want_n of_o which_o departure_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n give_v great_a colour_n to_o her_o innovation_n when_o arius_n and_o nestorius_n and_o such_o like_a heretic_n arise_v they_o violent_o and_o sudden_o break_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o forsake_v all_o communion_n and_o when_o mahomet_n come_v from_o without_o he_o visible_o assault_v the_o whole_a church_n this_o their_o sudden_a violence_n and_o separation_n make_v they_o easy_o know_v to_o all_o the_o world_n but_o the_o papacy_n breed_v as_o a_o gangrene_n in_o the_o church_n within_o and_o corrupt_v the_o pure_a doctrine_n but_o by_o little_a and_o little_a be_v not_o so_o easy_o mark_v and_o discern_v that_o it_o can_v so_o solemn_o be_v resist_v and_o register_v till_o it_o be_v ripen_v and_o god_n true_a church_n mingle_v therewith_o have_v mean_n to_o discover_v it_o so_o we_o read_v in_o 13.25_o in_o mat._n 13.25_o the_o parable_n of_o our_o saviour_n how_o the_o tare_n be_v sow_v among_o the_o wheat_n but_o who_o the_o man_n be_v that_o sew_v they_o and_o when_o do_v not_o appear_v the_o party_n whosoever_o he_o be_v do_v it_o when_o the_o labourer_n be_v asleep_a and_o so_o go_v his_o way_n the_o tare_n he_o leave_v behind_o he_o but_o himself_o be_v not_o see_v and_o when_o the_o husbandman_n be_v tell_v of_o it_o he_o
to_o they_o but_o god_n do_v it_o by_o mean_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o faithful_a professor_n that_o lie_v secret_o hide_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o papacy_n and_o when_o they_o see_v the_o truth_n they_o need_v no_o other_o outward_a allowance_n to_o preach_v then_o that_o which_o they_o have_v to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n as_o the_o jesuite_n will_v think_v that_o himself_o be_v baptize_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n after_o the_o order_n thereof_o with_o intent_n that_o he_o shall_v also_o profess_v that_o faith_n yet_o afterward_o fall_v to_o papistry_n need_v no_o other_o baptism_n but_o by_o virtue_n of_o it_o may_v use_v the_o liberty_n of_o other_o christian_n the_o very_a same_o we_o say_v of_o luther_n and_o caluins_n calling_n whereby_o they_o be_v free_v from_o the_o imputation_n that_o cyprian_a and_o optatus_n lie_v upon_o the_o donatist_n for_o such_o as_o have_v no_o lawful_a admission_n be_v child_n indeed_o without_o a_o father_n and_o scholar_n without_o a_o master_n and_o bishop_n without_o succession_n or_o what_o the_o jesuite_n will_v but_o these_o man_n have_v a_o calling_n else_o let_v we_o see_v what_o will_v be_v say_v to_o that_o i_o have_v answer_v §_o 53._o this_o succession_n of_o priest_n and_o bishop_n continual_o from_o the_o apostle_n which_o we_o have_v and_o the_o protestant_n want_v the_o ancient_a father_n do_v much_o esteem_n and_o use_v as_o a_o argument_n partly_o to_o confound_v the_o heretic_n of_o those_o day_n partly_o to_o confirm_v themselves_o to_o continue_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n prove_v by_o the_o succession_n of_o pastor_n succession_n of_o apostolical_a doctrine_n still_o to_o have_v continue_v in_o the_o church_n hereupon_o s._n irenaeus_n lib._n 3._o ca._n 3._o say_v traditionem_fw-la ab_fw-la apostolis_n &_o annuntiatam_fw-la hominibus_fw-la fidem_fw-la per_fw-la successionem_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la pervenientem_fw-la usque_fw-la ad_fw-la nos_fw-la indicantes_fw-la confundimus_fw-la omnes_fw-la eos_fw-la qui_fw-la quoquo_fw-la modo_fw-la vel_fw-la per_fw-la svi_fw-la placentiam_fw-la malam_fw-la vel_fw-la vanam_fw-la gloriam_fw-la vel_fw-la per_fw-la coecitatem_fw-la colligunt_fw-la praeterquam_fw-la oportet_fw-la show_v the_o tradition_n from_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o faith_n preach_v unto_o man_n come_v unto_o we_o by_o succession_n of_o bishop_n we_o confound_v all_o they_o who_o any_o way_n either_o through_o evil_a complacence_n of_o themselves_o or_o through_o vainglory_n or_o through_o blindness_n and_o evil_a opinion_n do_v collect_v and_o conclude_v otherwise_o then_o they_o ought_v hereupon_o also_o say_v tertullian_n write_v against_o heretic_n edant_fw-la origines_fw-la suarum_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la evoluant_fw-la ordinem_fw-la episcoporun_n ista_fw-la per_fw-la successionem_fw-la ab_fw-la initio_fw-la decurrentes_fw-la ut_fw-la primus_fw-la ille_fw-la episcopus_fw-la aliquem_fw-la ex_fw-la apostolis_n vel_fw-la apostolicis_fw-la viris_fw-la qui_fw-la tamen_fw-la cum_fw-la apostolis_n perseveraverit_fw-la authorem_fw-la habuerit_fw-la vel_fw-la antecessorem_fw-la lib._n the_o prescript_n let_v they_o set_v forth_o the_o beginning_n of_o their_o church_n let_v they_o unfold_v or_o declare_v the_o order_n of_o bishop_n so_o run_v from_o the_o begin_n by_o succession_n that_o the_o first_o bishop_n of_o their_o sect_n have_v some_o of_o the_o apostle_n or_o apostolic_a man_n who_o persevere_v with_o the_o apostle_n for_o his_o author_n or_o predecessor_n also_o s._n austin_n contra_fw-la epist_n fundam_fw-la c._n 4._o say_v tenet_n i_o in_o ecclesia_fw-la catholica_fw-la ab_fw-la ipsa_fw-la sede_fw-la petri_n apostoli_fw-la cvi_fw-la pascendas_fw-la oves_fw-la svas_fw-la dominus_fw-la commendavit_fw-la usque_fw-la ad_fw-la praesentem_fw-la episcopum_fw-la successio_fw-la sacerdotum_fw-la the_o succession_n of_o priest_n from_o the_o seat_n of_o s._n peter_n the_o apostle_n to_o who_o our_o lord_n commend_v his_o sheep_n to_o be_v feed_v until_o this_o present_a bishop_n do_v hold_v i_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o same_o s._n austin_n epist_n 105._o do_v dispute_n in_o the_o same_o manner_n in_o which_o epistle_n he_o reckon_v up_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n until_o anastasius_n who_o be_v in_o his_o time_n bishop_n in_o s._n peter_n seat_n cypr._n lib._n 1._o epist_n 6._o optat._n lib._n 2._o cont_n parmen_fw-la the_o which_o argument_n those_o father_n will_v never_o so_o much_o have_v urge_v if_o they_o have_v not_o think_v that_o this_o succession_n be_v a_o sure_a mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n and_o that_o with_o this_o outward_a succession_n of_o doctor_n and_o pastor_n be_v always_o infallible_o conjoin_v the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n the_o answer_n 1_o how_o much_o soever_o the_o within_o name_v father_n or_o any_o other_o stand_v upon_o the_o outward_a succession_n of_o bishop_n in_o their_o day_n yet_o that_o will_v do_v the_o roman_a church_n no_o good_a at_o this_o day_n the_o reason_n be_v because_o than_o none_o have_v succeed_v but_o such_o as_o keep_v the_o apostle_n faith_n which_o now_o be_v otherwise_o for_o many_o pope_n since_o that_o time_n have_v succeed_v which_o have_v be_v heretic_n as_o i_o have_v show_v digress_v 28._o this_o difference_n between_o their_o time_n and_o we_o must_v be_v diligent_o observe_v that_o the_o father_n speech_n concern_v succession_n may_v be_v right_o understand_v and_o the_o papist_n argument_n ground_v on_o they_o may_v direct_o be_v answer_v for_o irenaeus_n in_o the_o place_n quote_v say_v the_o apostolic_a tradition_n or_o doctrine_n and_o faith_n which_o they_o preach_v to_o man_n be_v come_v to_o they_o by_o succession_n of_o bishop_n whereby_o it_o appear_v they_o have_v not_o yet_o discover_v that_o apostasy_n in_o bishop_n throne_n which_o afterward_o ensue_v but_o the_o true_a faith_n remain_v still_o which_o now_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n it_o do_v not_o let_v our_o adversary_n therefore_o bring_v those_o time_n back_o again_o and_o restore_v we_o the_o bishop_n that_o then_o succeed_v and_o we_o will_v allow_v they_o the_o same_o argument_n of_o succession_n that_o the_o father_n make_v or_o else_o not_o for_o hegesippus_n speak_v of_o that_o time_n 22._o time_n euseb_n hist_o l._n 4._o c._n 22._o say_v that_o as_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n and_o the_o lord_n himself_o have_v teach_v so_o be_v it_o in_o every_o succession_n and_o every_o city_n now_o it_o be_v contrary_a as_o the_o friar_n and_o jesuite_n and_o the_o pope_n himself_o have_v devise_v so_o be_v it_o in_o every_o succession_n and_o every_o city_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v a_o manifest_a reason_n why_o the_o father_n argument_n draw_v from_o succession_n can_v benefit_n the_o external_a succession_n of_o pope_n in_o that_o church_n at_o this_o day_n 2_o again_o they_o use_v succession_n as_o a_o argument_n to_o prove_v their_o church_n but_o not_o in_o that_o manner_n that_o our_o adversary_n use_v it_o to_o prove_v they_o for_o first_o the_o jesuit_n will_v make_v we_o believe_v that_o by_o the_o succession_n of_o pastor_n the_o succession_n of_o apostolical_a doctrine_n be_v prove_v to_o continue_v yea_o he_o say_v that_o with_o outward_a succession_n of_o doctor_n and_o pastor_n be_v always_o infallible_o conjoin_v the_o true_a doctrine_n this_o the_o father_n never_o say_v as_o shall_v appear_v in_o my_o special_a answer_n to_o their_o word_n neither_o will_v the_o jesuite_n have_v say_v it_o himself_o if_o he_o have_v remember_v the_o greek_a church_n which_o have_v as_o lineal_a succession_n from_o saint_n mark_n and_o saint_n andrew_n as_o rome_n have_v from_o saint_n peter_n and_o yet_o 143._o yet_o can._n loc_fw-la l._n 4._o c._n ult._n pag._n 143._o they_o be_v count_v heretical_a yea_o bellarmine_n 8._o bellarmine_n not._n eccl_n c._n 8._o say_v it_o be_v not_o necessary_o gather_v that_o the_o church_n be_v always_o there_o where_o there_o be_v succession_n which_o show_v the_o jesuit_n rashness_n in_o his_o assertion_n for_o if_o the_o true_a faith_n be_v infallible_o conjoin_v with_o the_o outward_a succession_n than_o it_o will_v necessary_o follow_v that_o the_o true_a church_n be_v always_o there_o where_o succession_n be_v which_o bellarmine_n deni_v 3_o but_o with_o succession_n of_o person_n the_o father_n always_o join_v succession_n of_o doctrine_n and_o by_o they_o both_o together_o confute_v schismatics_n thus_o do_v irenaeus_n in_o the_o very_a word_n allege_v and_o 43._o and_o l._n 4._o c._n 43._o in_o another_o place_n more_o full_o we_o must_v say_v he_o obey_v those_o elder_n which_o have_v succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n which_o with_o the_o succession_n of_o their_o bishopric_n have_v receive_v the_o certain_a gift_n of_o truth_n as_o for_o the_o rest_n which_o want_v this_o principal_a succession_n we_o must_v suspect_v they_o mark_v how_o he_o direct_v you_o to_o embrace_v that_o succession_n which_o hold_v the_o doctrine_n also_o and_o refuse_v that_o which_o have_v it_o not_o which_o have_v be_v idle_a if_o the_o doctrine_n have_v be_v so_o unite_v to_o succession_n that_o it_o
can_v not_o have_v be_v without_o it_o now_o our_o adversary_n say_v otherwise_o 4_o second_o the_o father_n insist_v on_o the_o succession_n of_o other_o church_n as_o well_o as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o prove_v manifest_o that_o the_o succession_n which_o they_o assume_v prove_v not_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v the_o church_n of_o god_n because_o it_o prove_v not_o other_o church_n so_o to_o be_v our_o adversary_n have_v 329._o have_v possevin_n not_o verbi_fw-la dei_fw-la pag._n 329._o write_v that_o the_o ancient_a father_n reckon_v not_o up_o the_o successor_n of_o other_o bishop_n alike_o as_o they_o do_v the_o successor_n of_o the_o roman_a chair_n but_o this_o be_v a_o untruth_n proceed_v of_o desperation_n for_o irenaeus_n in_o the_o chapter_n allege_v mention_v the_o church_n of_o smyrna_n ephesus_n asia_n and_o in_o 3._o in_o l._n 1._o c._n 3._o another_o place_n the_o church_n of_o germany_n spain_n france_n egypt_n lybia_n and_o other_o and_o tertullian_n prescript_n tertullian_n prescript_n refer_v we_o to_o corinth_n philippi_n thessalonica_n ephesus_n &_o rome_n whereby_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o if_o rome_n be_v now_o the_o true_a church_n because_o the_o father_n mention_n the_o succession_n thereof_o than_o the_o church_n of_o greece_n must_v be_v grant_v to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n also_o because_o the_o father_n mention_n their_o succession_n also_o which_o in_o constantinople_n and_o alexandria_n be_v preserve_v to_o this_o day_n but_o in_o that_o they_o reckon_v up_o the_o succession_n of_o other_o church_n as_o well_o as_o of_o rome_n it_o appear_v that_o they_o think_v it_o be_v tie_v no_o more_o to_o rome_n then_o to_o other_o 5_o out_o of_o all_o this_o that_o i_o have_v say_v i_o answer_v to_o the_o place_n allege_v and_o first_o to_o irenaeus_n that_o he_o say_v not_o simple_o he_o convince_a heretic_n by_o show_v succession_n but_o by_o show_v the_o faith_n which_o successive_o have_v continue_v to_o his_o time_n and_o we_o be_v content_v the_o jesuite_n convince_v we_o so_o too_o if_o he_o can_v tertullian_n bid_v heretic_n if_o they_o can_v deduce_v the_o succession_n of_o their_o church_n and_o sectmaster_n which_o he_o may_v well_o do_v although_o it_o will_v not_o follow_v thereupon_o that_o wheresoever_o outward_a succession_n be_v there_o shall_v be_v also_o true_a doctrine_n and_o he_o have_v reason_n to_o make_v they_o this_o challenge_n for_o though_o every_o company_n be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n that_o have_v outward_a succession_n yet_o they_o pretend_v themselves_o so_o to_o be_v therefore_o he_o provoke_v they_o to_o put_v the_o succession_n in_o trial_n and_o show_v if_o they_o can_v that_o the_o first_o author_n of_o their_o sect_n be_v a_o apostle_n successor_n this_o be_v a_o good_a trial_n then_o but_o now_o it_o be_v not_o when_o not_o only_o new_a sea_n be_v erect_v but_o the_o successor_n in_o ancient_a throne_n be_v corrupt_v austin_n say_v the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n retain_v he_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o good_a reason_n when_o they_o succeed_v in_o faith_n as_o well_o as_o in_o sea_n if_o he_o be_v now_o alive_a he_o will_v say_v otherwise_o when_o the_o succession_n such_o as_o it_o be_v remain_v without_o the_o faith_n it_o be_v not_o the_o succession_n alone_o that_o retain_v he_o but_o other_o motive_n join_v with_o it_o and_o mention_v in_o the_o same_o place_n which_o now_o be_v want_v so_o likewise_o 165._o likewise_o ep._n 165._o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o generosus_fw-la he_o reckon_v up_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n that_o have_v be_v till_o his_o time_n not_o use_v their_o succession_n as_o a_o argument_n to_o prove_v it_o the_o true_a church_n but_o name_v those_o that_o have_v succeed_v therein_o and_o persevere_v in_o the_o truth_n which_o he_o then_o well_o may_v do_v but_o the_o jesuit_n now_o can_v in_o as_o much_o as_o the_o pope_n follow_v decline_v from_o the_o faith_n of_o their_o ancestor_n optatus_n mention_v the_o roman_a succession_n as_o austin_n do_v reckon_v up_o a_o catalogue_n of_o the_o bishop_n that_o have_v be_v in_o that_o sea_n till_o siritius_n time_n to_o show_v the_o donatist_n that_n the_o church_n be_v in_o other_o place_n as_o well_o as_o in_o africa_n and_o to_o admonish_v they_o that_o their_o church_n want_v succession_n also_o and_o not_o the_o true_a faith_n only_o this_o be_v no_o advantage_n to_o the_o jesuite_n cause_n for_o as_o some_o heretic_n want_v succession_n so_o all_o that_o have_v it_o be_v not_o prove_v thereby_o to_o be_v true_a catholic_n for_o any_o thing_n that_o austin_n or_o optatus_n say_v that_o which_o cyprian_n say_v receive_v the_o same_o answer_n that_o i_o have_v give_v to_o the_o rest_n §_o 54._o the_o which_o to_o be_v conjoin_v may_v evident_o be_v prove_v out_o of_o s._n paul_n himself_o ephes_n 4._o who_o say_v that_o our_o saviour_n dedit_fw-la pastor_n &_o doctores_fw-la ad_fw-la consummationem_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la in_fw-la opus_fw-la ministerij_fw-la in_fw-la edificationem_fw-la corporis_fw-la christi_fw-la donec_fw-la occurramus_fw-la omnes_fw-la in_o unitatem_fw-la fidei_fw-la &_o agnitionis_fw-la filii_fw-la dei_fw-la in_fw-la virum_fw-la perfectum_fw-la in_fw-la mensuram_fw-la aetatis_fw-la plenitudinis_fw-la christi_fw-la etc._n etc._n signify_v that_o christ_n appoint_v these_o outward_a function_n of_o pastor_n in_o the_o church_n to_o continue_v for_o the_o edification_n and_o perfection_n thereof_o until_o the_o world_n end_n especial_o for_o this_o purpose_n as_o be_v say_v in_o the_o same_o place_n ut_fw-la non_fw-la simus_fw-la paruidi_fw-la fluctuantes_fw-la &_o non_fw-la circumferamur_fw-la omni_fw-la vento_fw-la doctrinae_fw-la that_o we_o may_v not_o be_v little_a one_o waver_v and_o carry_v away_o with_o every_o wind_n of_o doctrine_n therefore_o that_o this_o ordinance_n and_o intention_n of_o our_o saviour_n may_v have_v the_o purpose_a effect_n he_o must_v provide_v so_o to_o assist_v and_o direct_v these_o pastor_n in_o teach_v the_o true_a faith_n that_o the_o people_n their_o flock_n may_v always_o by_o hear_v they_o be_v preserve_v from_o waver_v in_o the_o ancient_a faith_n and_o from_o error_n of_o new_a doctrine_n the_o which_o can_v be_v unless_o with_o succession_n of_o the_o pastor_n lawful_o succeed_a be_v conjoin_v true_a doctrine_n in_o such_o sort_n that_o all_o true_a pastor_n shall_v never_o universal_o err_v or_o fail_v to_o teach_v the_o ancient_a and_o apostolic_a doctrine_n for_o if_o they_o shall_v thus_o universal_o err_v than_o all_o the_o people_n who_o do_v and_o aught_o like_o sheep_n follow_v the_o voice_n of_o their_o pastor_n shall_v also_o general_o waver_v and_o err_v from_o true_a faith_n and_o be_v carry_v about_o with_o the_o wind_n of_o new_a doctrine_n contrary_a to_o this_o purpose_n of_o almighty_a god_n express_v in_o this_o place_n by_o s._n paul_n yea_o the_o whole_a church_n which_o according_a to_o s._n gregory_n nazianzene_n orat_fw-la de_fw-fr moderate_a in_o disput_n habend_n consist_v of_o sheep_n and_o pastor_n shall_v universal_o err_v contrary_a to_o diverse_a express_a promise_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n of_o which_o i_o have_v speak_v somewhat_o before_o since_o therefore_o these_o promise_n can_v be_v false_a nor_o the_o purpose_n of_o almighty_a god_n fail_v it_o follow_v that_o the_o people_n hear_v their_o pastor_n may_v also_o infallible_o always_o learn_v and_o continue_v in_o the_o true_a apostolic_a faith_n consequent_o that_o these_o ordinary_a pastor_n appoint_v by_o almighty_a god_n of_o purpose_n to_o instruct_v and_o confirm_v the_o people_n in_o true_a faith_n shall_v never_o at_o least_o universal_o fail_v to_o teach_v the_o true_a faith_n and_o therefore_o the_o succession_n of_o this_o external_a function_n of_o ordinary_a pastor_n must_v needs_o be_v conjoin_v with_o the_o succession_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o true_a holy_a catholic_a and_o apostolic_a faith_n the_o answer_n 1_o the_o jesuite_n have_v say_v immediate_o before_o that_o with_o the_o outward_a succession_n be_v always_o infallible_o conjoin_v the_o true_a faith_n now_o proceed_v to_o prove_v it_o wherein_o you_o may_v easy_o conceive_v he_o take_v a_o hard_a task_n in_o hand_n because_o his_o own_o bellarmine_n confess_v the_o contrary_a ●_o contrary_a not._n eccl_n c._n ●_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_o gather_v that_o there_o be_v always_o the_o church_n where_o there_o be_v succession_n and_o the_o greek_a church_n at_o this_o day_n prove_v it_o invincible_o against_o our_o adversary_n for_o they_o have_v the_o succession_n as_o entire_a as_o rome_n itself_o and_o yet_o ult._n yet_o bell._n ib._n §._o dico_fw-la secundo_fw-la argum_fw-la can._n loc_fw-la l._n 4._o c._n ult._n the_o papist_n think_v they_o not_o the_o church_n of_o god_n because_o among_o diverse_a error_n they_o will_v not_o submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o pope_n authority_n the_o jesuit_n therefore_o have_v undertake_v to_o prove_v that_o which_o the_o learn_a
of_o his_o own_o side_n know_v and_o confess_v to_o be_v false_a but_o that_o be_v ordinary_a 2_o and_o as_o his_o assertion_n be_v insolent_a so_o he_o prove_v it_o as_o weak_o though_o i_o must_v confess_v he_o have_v verbatim_o borrow_v his_o discourse_n from_o 25._o from_o greg._n valent._n tom_n 3_o d._n 1._o q._n 1._o punct_a 7._o §._o 25._o as_o learned_a a_o jesuite_n as_o ever_o jesuited_a but_o i_o answer_v two_o thing_n first_o that_o no_o man_n deni_v but_o the_o succession_n of_o true_a doctrine_n and_o communication_n which_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n be_v unseparable_o annex_v with_o the_o succession_n of_o pastor_n lawful_o succeed_v i_o say_v not_o the_o outward_a succession_n of_o pastor_n but_o the_o true_a succession_n of_o pastor_n lawful_o succeed_v the_o which_o be_v the_o jesuite_n own_o word_n whereto_o if_o our_o adversary_n will_v hold_v they_o and_o require_v no_o more_o they_o shall_v be_v yield_v unto_o and_o i_o will_v grant_v the_o same_o to_o be_v sufficient_o prove_v by_o the_o text_n of_o eph._n 4._o but_o this_o neither_o confute_v we_o nor_o justifi_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n it_o confute_v not_o we_o because_o totam_fw-la because_o §._o 52._o per_fw-la totam_fw-la i_o have_v show_v the_o teacher_n of_o our_o faith_n do_v lawful_o succeed_v &_o so_o always_o have_v do_v though_o not_o outward_o and_o visible_o to_o the_o world_n and_o it_o justifi_v not_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n forasmuch_o as_o the_o ordinary_a pastor_n therein_o succeed_v not_o lawful_o they_o succeed_v in_o a_o sort_n external_o sit_v in_o the_o seat_n where_o sometime_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n do_v but_o they_o succeed_v not_o lawful_o as_o i_o will_v show_v in_o the_o next_o section_n or_o any_o other_o way_n then_o the_o greecian_o now_o do_v or_o then_o the_o pharisee_n &_o high_a priest_n do_v in_o our_o saviors_n time_n when_o they_o refuse_v he_o deny_v he_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n &_o require_v a_o murderer_n to_o be_v give_v unto_o they_o the_o which_o they_o can_v not_o have_v do_v if_o the_o jesuite_n assertion_n be_v true_a that_o the_o faith_n of_o god_n church_n be_v infallible_o conjoin_v with_o the_o outward_a succession_n for_o they_o have_v the_o outward_a succession_n from_o aaron_n lineal_o without_o interruption_n and_o yet_o if_o the_o people_n have_v obey_v they_o in_o all_o thing_n they_o have_v lead_v they_o into_o a_o universal_a error_n no_o less_o than_o the_o reject_v of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n now_o if_o only_o lawful_a succession_n have_v the_o truth_n abide_v with_o it_o and_o that_o be_v lawful_a which_o succeed_v principal_o in_o doctrine_n retain_v the_o ancient_a faith_n as_o well_o as_o the_o place_n and_o external_a show_n which_o our_o adversary_n dare_v not_o deny_v and_o tertullian_n affirm_v 32_o affirm_v praescrip_n c_o 32_o where_o he_o say_v the_o church_n that_o conspire_v with_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o same_o faith_n be_v repute_v no_o less_o apostolical_a for_o the_o consanguinity_n of_o the_o doctrine_n if_o i_o say_v this_o lawful_a succession_n only_o have_v the_o true_a faith_n go_v with_o it_o let_v they_o say_v free_o and_o without_o collusion_n to_o what_o purpose_n shall_v they_o plead_v their_o external_a succession_n to_o justify_v their_o faith_n before_o they_o have_v plead_v their_o faith_n to_o justify_v their_o succession_n which_o when_o they_o have_v do_v and_o they_o can_v do_v it_o no_o way_n but_o by_o the_o scripture_n the_o protestant_n will_v never_o except_v against_o their_o succession_n but_o embrace_v it_o and_o what_o vanity_n be_v it_o to_o object_n against_o we_o that_o we_o want_v outward_a succession_n when_o that_o succession_n which_o be_v to_o be_v stand_v upon_o consist_v not_o in_o the_o circumstance_n of_o place_n and_o show_v but_o in_o the_o retain_v of_o the_o true_a faith_n which_o may_v be_v do_v without_o interruption_n when_o the_o outward_a show_n of_o place_n and_o person_n be_v interrupt_v 3_o second_o i_o answer_v further_o to_o the_o text_n allege_v and_o to_o all_o his_o discourse_n thereupon_o grant_v first_o that_o the_o ministry_n of_o pastor_n be_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n second_o to_o continue_v in_o his_o church_n for_o ever_o three_o for_o the_o teach_n of_o his_o people_n four_o in_o such_o sort_n that_o they_o shall_v never_o universal_o err_v or_o fail_v to_o teach_v the_o ancient_a and_o apostolic_a doctrine_n five_o whereupon_o the_o people_n be_v bind_v to_o hear_v they_o and_o hence_o it_o follow_v that_o sixth_o where_o such_o pastor_n succeed_v the_o true_a faith_n be_v always_o conjoin_v this_o be_v grant_v but_o then_o our_o adverry_n shall_v consider_v that_o such_o pastor_n furnish_v with_o these_o promise_n do_v not_o always_o succeed_v open_o or_o in_o one_o place_n without_o interruption_n of_o the_o external_a succession_n but_o they_o may_v arise_v and_o successive_o continue_v when_o the_o world_n see_v they_o not_o or_o see_v they_o drive_v they_o from_o the_o episcopal_a sea_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v constrain_v to_o teach_v the_o church_n in_o secret_a s._n paul_n say_v pastor_n and_o doctor_n shall_v succeed_v and_o succeed_a teach_v the_o true_a faith_n but_o he_o say_v not_o all_o that_o have_v outward_a succession_n hold_v the_o true_a faith_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o thing_n in_o his_o word_n that_o prove_v this_o succession_n to_o be_v of_o that_o nature_n which_o our_o adversary_n require_v now_o the_o question_n between_o we_o be_v not_o whether_o there_o be_v a_o perpetual_a succession_n of_o pastor_n in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n that_o infallible_o teach_v his_o truth_n for_o we_o deny_v not_o that_o but_o whether_o these_o pastor_n be_v only_o they_o that_o continue_v in_o one_o place_n one_o after_o another_o outward_o and_o visible_o at_o all_o time_n to_o all_o the_o world_n &_o whether_o pastor_n succeed_v in_o this_o manner_n be_v so_o privilege_v that_o they_o can_v err_v which_o we_o deny_v and_o in_o all_o saint_n paul_n discourse_n there_o be_v not_o a_o word_n against_o we_o because_o whatsoever_o he_o say_v may_v be_v uphold_v in_o that_o kind_n of_o succession_n that_o i_o have_v describe_v again_o our_o english_a bishop_n this_o day_n succeed_v lineal_o in_o their_o place_n from_o the_o first_o apostle_n of_o our_o land_n will_v the_o jesuit_n therefore_o grant_v we_o be_v the_o true_a church_n he_o will_v not_o though_o indeed_o we_o be_v because_o they_o have_v change_v that_o which_o the_o precedent_a bishop_n hold_v for_o the_o true_a faith_n the_o which_o be_v thus_o object_v overthrow_v himself_o for_o now_o you_o see_v that_o with_o pastor_n succeed_v the_o true_a faith_n be_v not_o always_o join_v for_o one_o may_v succeed_v that_o will_v change_v the_o ancient_a doctrine_n which_o the_o jesuite_n think_v our_o english_a bishop_n have_v do_v though_o they_o have_v not_o that_o which_o be_v most_o ancient_a but_o we_o prove_v against_o all_o exception_n their_o italian_a pope_n have_v as_o i_o have_v show_v digress_v 49._o 51._o 52._o §_o 55._o but_o as_o i_o have_v say_v before_o and_o by_o many_o catholic_a writer_n have_v be_v prove_v at_o large_a in_o the_o roman_a church_n only_o be_v this_o lawful_a uninterrupt_a succession_n of_o ordinary_a pastor_n find_v therefore_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o those_o that_o communicate_v &_o agree_v with_o it_o be_v the_o true_a apostolic_a church_n and_o have_v in_o it_o always_o teach_v the_o true_a apostolic_a faith_n the_o answer_n 1_o lawful_a succession_n be_v when_o the_o person_n succeed_v in_o doctrine_n as_o well_o as_o in_o place_n which_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n at_o this_o day_n they_o do_v not_o inasmuch_o as_o they_o be_v depart_v from_o the_o ancient_a faith_n to_o their_o own_o heresy_n and_o this_o be_v the_o principal_a cause_n why_o we_o deny_v that_o which_o the_o jesuite_n say_v here_o touch_v the_o roman_a succession_n 2_o we_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o they_o have_v a_o rank_n of_o bishop_n whether_o interrupt_v or_o no_o i_o will_v show_v in_o the_o digression_n follow_v external_o sit_v in_o rome_n one_o after_o another_o but_o we_o deny_v lawful_a succession_n to_o stand_v in_o this_o and_o we_o deny_v again_o that_o this_o be_v find_v only_o there_o and_o no_o where_o else_o for_o it_o be_v find_v in_o the_o greek_a church_n also_o at_o this_o day_n as_o appear_v by_o fine_a by_o legat._n eccl_n alexand._n apud_fw-la baron_n annal_n tom_fw-mi 6._o in_o fine_a the_o letter_n which_o the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n send_v to_o the_o pope_n about_o 15._o year_n since_o wherein_o he_o style_v himself_o thus_o gabriel_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n the_o servant_n of_o the_o seat_n of_o saint_n mark_v in_o the_o city_n of_o alexandria_n in_o egypt_n and_o all_o other_o place_n join_v to_o he_o and_o border_v
on_o the_o south_n or_o the_o sea_n and_o aethiopia_n the_o ninety_o seven_o of_o the_o patriarch_n the_o successor_n of_o saint_n mark_v the_o evangelist_n wherein_o we_o see_v the_o outward_a succession_n to_o remain_v in_o that_o church_n as_o entire_a as_o it_o do_v in_o rome_n and_o yet_o the_o jesuite_n will_v not_o grant_v the_o same_o and_o such_o as_o communicate_v with_o it_o to_o be_v the_o true_a apostolic_a church_n that_o have_v the_o true_a faith_n 3_o and_o touch_v this_o outward_a succession_n because_o it_o be_v so_o much_o stand_v upon_o i_o say_v it_o be_v not_o so_o entire_a as_o be_v pretend_v but_o certain_a thing_n may_v be_v object_v against_o it_o which_o be_v sufficient_a to_o take_v it_o way_n and_o plain_o prove_v it_o to_o have_v be_v interrupt_v the_o which_o for_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o such_o as_o be_v desirous_a to_o look_v into_o this_o matter_n i_o will_v brief_o set_v down_o in_o the_o digression_n ensue_v digression_n 53._o object_v seven_o thing_n against_o the_o succession_n of_o pope_n in_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n whereby_o the_o same_o be_v clear_o demonstrate_v to_o have_v be_v interrupt_v and_o not_o to_o be_v any_o certain_a or_o infallible_a succession_n 4_o first_o i_o have_v show_v digression_n 29._o nu_fw-la 38._o that_o our_o adversary_n themselves_o have_v no_o divine_a authority_n but_o only_o such_o as_o rest_v upon_o uncertain_a proof_n to_o convince_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n rather_o than_o of_o antioch_n for_o example_n be_v saint_n peter_n successor_n for_o allow_v they_o that_o peter_n himself_o be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o appoint_v his_o successor_n to_o be_v the_o head_n of_o his_o church_n after_o his_o death_n which_o he_o never_o do_v yet_o be_v there_o no_o infallible_a certainty_n that_o this_o successor_n be_v the_o pope_n canus_n 8._o canus_n loc._n l._n 6._o c._n 8._o say_v it_o be_v prove_v but_o either_o by_o history_n or_o tradition_n and_o 9_o and_o alphons_n haeres_fw-la l._n 1._o c._n 9_o another_o learned_a papist_n conclude_v that_o no_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o believe_v this_o or_o that_o pope_n to_o be_v saint_n peter_n successor_n the_o which_o uncertainty_n show_v the_o succession_n of_o the_o present_a pope_n or_o any_o other_o before_o he_o to_o be_v indemonstrable_a 5_o second_o suppose_v peter_n be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n yet_o there_o be_v no_o certainty_n who_o succeed_v he_o and_o one_o another_o a_o good_a while_n after_o 2._o after_o euseb_n ch●on_n a_o 70._o opt._n l._n 2._o some_o say_v linus_n succeed_v peter_n 71_o peter_n hier._n script_n eccl_n in_o clem._n etc._n etc._n 52._o in_o esa_n marian_n scot_n a_o 71_o some_o clemens_n 69._o clemens_n refert_fw-la baro._n a_o 69._o some_o that_o neither_o but_o cletus_n clem._n cletus_n 8._o q._n 1._o si_fw-mi petr._n maria_n scot._n a_o 71._o luit_fw-la prand_n vit_fw-mi pont._n in_o clem._n other_o say_v linus_n and_o cletus_n be_v bishop_n under_o peter_n in_o his_o life_n time_n but_o have_v no_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v 32._o lose_v disputat_fw-la hoc_fw-la mundus_fw-la quartus_fw-la fucritne_n secundus_fw-la gab._n lect_n 32._o touch_v clemens_n all_o thing_n be_v uncertain_a primate_n uncertain_a fra._n agricol_n de_fw-fr primate_n some_o lie_v the_o succession_n thus_o linus_n clemens_n cletus_n anacletus_fw-la 42._o anacletus_fw-la baro._n ann_n 69._o n._n 42._o some_o thus_o linus_n cletus_n clemens_n anacletus_fw-la 3._o anacletus_fw-la tertull._n carm_n l._n 3._o some_o thus_o linus_n cletus_n anacletus_fw-la clemens_n clem._n clemens_n onuph_n annot_v add_v clem._n some_o thus_o clemens_n cletus_n anacletus_fw-la leave_v out_o linus_n 165._o linus_n optat._n l._n 2._o aug._n ep_v 165._o some_o thus_o linus_n clemens_n anacletus_fw-la euaristus_n leave_v out_o cletus_n some_o thus_o linus_n cletus_n clemens_n euaristus_n leave_v out_o anacletus_fw-la here_o we_o see_v all_o thing_n be_v intricate_a and_o no_o certainty_n can_v be_v have_v the_o like_a may_v be_v observe_v in_o the_o low_a part_n of_o the_o succession_n follow_v 6_o three_o the_o sea_n have_v be_v void_a a_o good_a space_n together_o without_o any_o pope_n at_o all_o 28._o all_o baro._n a_o 53._o n._n 28._o ann._n 253._o upon_o the_o death_n of_o fabian_n it_o be_v void_a one_o year_n and_o some_o month_n honor._n month_n anastas_n in_o honor._n anno_fw-la 638._o when_o honorius_n die_v it_o be_v void_a one_o year_n seven_o month_n and_o seventeen_o day_n ann._n 682._o agatho_n 682._o anastas_n in_o agatho_n upon_o the_o death_n of_o agatho_n it_o be_v void_a one_o year_n seven_o month_n and_o five_o day_n ann._n 767._o paul_n 767._o anastas_n in_o paul_n upon_o the_o death_n of_o paul_n it_o be_v void_a one_o year_n and_o a_o month_n baronius_n 63._o baronius_n an._n 853._o n._n 63._o say_v it_o have_v fall_v out_o that_o it_o have_v be_v void_a above_o two_o year_n and_o five_o month_n the_o election_n have_v be_v delay_v through_o contention_n 296._o contention_n suppur_n ann_n 296._o and_o in_o martinus_n polonus_n it_o be_v note_v in_o the_o margin_n that_o the_o papacy_n cease_v seven_o year_n six_o month_n and_o fifteen_o day_n these_o vacation_n can_v be_v deny_v and_o therefore_o the_o succession_n have_v be_v interrupt_v because_o at_o that_o time_n the_o suppose_a head_n that_o shall_v succeed_v be_v want_v 7_o four_o about_o the_o year_n 850_o a_o woman_n succeed_v that_o in_o the_o habit_n of_o a_o man_n continue_a pope_n two_o year_n and_o five_o month_n until_o be_v get_v with_o child_n she_o die_v in_o travel_n in_o the_o open_a street_n as_o she_o go_v on_o procession_n this_o be_v record_v by_o so_o many_o 1._o many_o marian_n scot._n a_o 854._o martin_n polo_n a_o 855._o palmer_n floren._n a_o 854._o sigeb_n a_o 854._o lao●ic_fw-la chalcocondyl_n reb_fw-mi tu●c_fw-la l_o 6_o p._n 411._o anton._n hist_o part_n 2._o ti●_n 16_o c._n 1._o §._o 7._o coel._n rho_n digni_fw-la lect_v antiqu_n l._n 8._o c._n 1._o historiographer_n and_o all_o papist_n themselves_o some_o few_o except_v that_o receive_v it_o from_o they_o that_o now_o it_o be_v too_o late_o for_o the_o jesuite_n to_o control_v it_o and_o i_o care_v not_o though_o anastasius_n that_o live_v in_o rome_n the_o same_o time_n when_o this_o be_v and_o write_v the_o pope_n life_n mention_v it_o not_o in_o his_o book_n 64._o book_n onuph_n annot_fw-mi joan._n 8._o bell._n ro._n pont._n l._n 3_o c._n ult._n baron_n ann_n 85●_n n._n 64._o which_o be_v the_o best_a argument_n our_o adversary_n have_v against_o it_o for_o anastasius_n his_o book_n be_v of_o small_a credit_n with_o themselves_o lecto_fw-la themselves_o praefat._n ad_fw-la lecto_fw-la he_o that_o put_v it_o forth_o say_v himself_o that_o it_o be_v a_o question_n among_o the_o learned_a whether_o this_o anastasius_n be_v the_o true_a author_n of_o all_o the_o live_v contain_v in_o the_o book_n for_o platina_n trithemius_n and_o onuphrius_n and_o other_o think_v damasus_n write_v their_o life_n that_o be_v from_o s._n peter_n to_o himself_o which_o be_v true_a than_o it_o be_v not_o certain_a that_o anastasius_n live_v in_o rome_n when_o joan_n shall_v be_v pope_n write_v every_o thing_n in_o that_o book_n he_o say_v that_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o often_o contradiction_n contain_v in_o the_o book_n baronius_n suspect_v it_o be_v compile_v by_o more_o writer_n than_o one_o &_o by_o two_o at_o least_o he_o say_v many_o thing_n be_v affirm_v contrary_a to_o the_o truth_n which_o can_v be_v prove_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o no_o grave_n or_o ancient_a author_n many_o slip_n in_o chronagraphy_n be_v therein_o and_o many_o thing_n repugnant_a and_o not_o agree_v together_o in_o many_o place_n other_o man_n have_v add_v or_o detract_v he_o say_v it_o may_v not_o be_v deny_v that_o in_o the_o copy_n there_o be_v place_n so_o intricate_a that_o there_o be_v no_o hope_n to_o get_v out_o and_o he_o confess_v that_o after_o the_o life_n of_o hadrian_n the_o second_o the_o life_n of_o three_o pope_n be_v omit_v that_o go_v between_o he_o and_o stephen_n the_o six_o as_o the_o life_n of_o joan_n be_v omit_v that_o shall_v have_v go_v between_o the_o life_n of_o leo_n the_o four_o and_o bennet_n the_o three_o yea_o 6._o yea_o a_o 739._o n._n 6._o baronius_n in_o his_o own_o favour_n can_v espy_v that_o many_o thing_n be_v find_v in_o other_o which_o anastasius_n have_v omit_v but_o we_o be_v whoop_v at_o for_o say_v so_o though_o we_o bring_v the_o testimony_n of_o volateran_n of_o martin_n polo_n sigeb_n palmer_n florent_fw-la fascic_fw-la temp_n anton._n volateran_n diverse_a author_n that_o say_v she_o be_v put_v not_o in_o the_o catalogue_n of_o pope_n for_o the_o turpitude_n of_o the_o thing_n which_o may_v be_v the_o reason_n why_o anastasius_n or_o other_o mention_v not_o the_o story_n for_o what_o shall_v the_o pope_n library_n keeper_n do_v write_v her_o
example_n rodulf_n example_n pver_fw-la fermè_fw-la decennis_fw-la baron_fw-fr a_o 1033._o nu_fw-la 6._o glab_n rodulf_n bennet_n the_o nine_o be_v a_o child_n about_o ten_o year_n old_a 3_o old_a baro._n a_o 955_o nu_fw-la a._n &_o 3_o john_n the_o twelve_o a_o mad_a lad_n eighteen_o year_n old_a at_o the_o most_o 1._o most_o plat._n &_o baro_n a_o 908._o 1._o sergius_n the_o three_o enter_v violent_o cast_v out_o his_o predecessor_n christopher_n imprison_v he_o with_o band_n until_o he_o drive_v he_o to_o turn_v friar_n and_o so_o end_v his_o day_n 7._o day_n baro._n a_o 912._o nu_fw-la 7._o john_n the_o eleven_o be_v create_v pope_n by_o theodora_n and_o violent_o intrude_v for_o his_o filthy_a love_n 2._o love_n baro._n a_o 928_o nu_fw-la 2._o afterward_o her_o daughter_n marozia_n by_o force_n of_o arm_n expel_v he_o and_o cause_v he_o to_o be_v imprison_v where_o he_o be_v smother_v to_o death_n leo_fw-la the_o sixth_o succeed_v he_o 1._o he_o baro._n a_o 929_o 1._o and_o he_o also_o be_v imprison_v and_o die_v the_o next_o but_o one_o be_v john_n the_o twelve_o 1._o twelve_o baro._n a_o 931_o nu_fw-la 1._o he_o be_v bastard_n to_o sergius_n by_o madam_n marozia_n and_o be_v yet_o but_o a_o stripling_n be_v violent_o put_v into_o the_o popedom_n by_o his_o mother_n and_o her_o husband_n uvido_z the_o marquesse_n 1._o marquesse_n baro._n a_o 940_o nu_fw-la 1._o the_o next_o pope_n but_o one_o be_v stephen_n choose_v by_o the_o roman_n without_o the_o cardinal_n consent_n 4._o consent_n baro._n a_o 955._o nu_fw-la 4._o john_n the_o twelve_o be_v make_v pope_n by_o the_o faction_n of_o albericus_n his_o father_n when_o for_o his_o age_n he_o be_v not_o yet_o capable_a of_o the_o order_n of_o a_o deacon_n 11._o deacon_n luitpr_fw-la l._n 6._o ●_o 11._o in_o the_o end_n his_o bishop_n forsake_v he_o and_o one_o night_n as_o he_o be_v in_o bed_n with_o a_o man_n wife_n he_o devil_n strike_v he_o and_o he_o die_v about_o ten_o year_n after_o 1._o after_o baro._n a_o 974._o nu_fw-la 1._o bennet_n the_o sixth_o be_v imprison_v and_o murder_v by_o boniface_n that_o succeed_v he_o who_o get_v the_o popedom_n by_o violence_n 1_o violence_n an._n 975._o nu_fw-la 1_o and_o be_v again_o himself_o as_o violent_o depose_v and_o john_n the_o 15._o put_v in_o his_o room_n 1_o room_n an._n 985._o nu_fw-la 1_o but_o he_o return_v again_o and_o apprehend_v john_n imprison_v and_o murder_v he_o this_o companion_n be_v one_o of_o the_o succession_n and_o yet_o baronius_n say_v of_o he_o he_o be_v a_o villain_n and_o a_o thief_n the_o murderer_n of_o two_o pope_n the_o invader_n of_o peter_n chair_n who_o have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o hair_n of_o a_o roman_a bishop_n whether_o you_o consider_v his_o entrance_n or_o go_v forward_o but_o deserve_v to_o be_v reckon_v among_o famous_a thief_n and_o ransacker_n of_o their_o country_n such_o as_o be_v sylla_n and_o catiline_n all_o who_o may_v cast_v their_o cap_n at_o this_o thief_n these_o be_v a_o few_o example_n among_o many_o of_o such_o as_o have_v succeed_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n take_v out_o of_o our_o adversary_n own_o writing_n may_v it_o please_v they_o to_o look_v back_o and_o make_v a_o stand_v a_o while_n and_o when_o they_o have_v view_v the_o manner_n of_o their_o come_n in_o and_o well_o behold_v their_o order_n to_o say_v what_o they_o think_v of_o the_o roman_a succession_n in_o their_o day_n and_o where_o it_o be_v and_o to_o remember_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o badness_n of_o their_o life_n that_o i_o now_o urge_v against_o they_o but_o the_o manner_n of_o their_o entrance_n which_o by_o all_o law_n of_o god_n and_o man_n make_v they_o apostatical_a and_o as_o baronius_n confess_v not_o fit_a to_o be_v put_v into_o the_o catalogue_n and_o yet_o they_o be_v above_o fifty_o pope_n together_o that_o thus_o enter_v and_o this_o order_n continue_v 200._o year_n at_o that_o time_n beside_o all_o other_o time_n wherein_o the_o succession_n may_v be_v show_v to_o have_v be_v no_o better_o 10_o last_o 1._o last_o onupht_n cro_fw-it ro._n pont_n bozi_n sign_n eccl_n l._n 19_o c._n 1._o there_o have_v be_v thirty_o schism_n wherein_o there_o be_v two_o or_o three_o pope_n at_o once_o as_o for_o example_n about_o the_o year_n 1044._o plat._n 1044._o baro._n a_o 1044_o nu_fw-la 1.2.5_o naucler_n vol._n 2._o gen_fw-la 35._o onuph_n in_o grego_n 6._o ad_fw-la plat._n bennet_n the_o nine_o sylvester_n the_o three_o and_o john_n be_v all_o pope_n at_o once_o and_o make_v their_o abode_n in_o three_o several_a place_n of_o the_o city_n divide_v among_o they_o the_o revenue_n of_o the_o patriarchy_n until_o gregory_n the_o sixth_o hire_v they_o with_o money_n to_o give_v over_o himself_o be_v create_v the_o four_o pope_n and_o be_v present_o expel_v again_o and_o clement_n ordain_v again_o 7._o again_o theod_n niem_fw-la l._n 1._o c._n 7._o about_o the_o year_n 1379._o begin_v the_o schism_n between_o vrbane_n and_o clement_n which_o end_v not_o till_o 70._o year_n after_o at_o the_o first_o there_o be_v two_o pope_n together_o the_o one_o in_o italy_n the_o other_o in_o france_n 1._o france_n naucler_n vol._n 2._o gener_fw-la 46._o joan_n marian._n de_fw-fr reb_fw-mi hisp_n l._n 18._o c._n 1._o what_o time_n the_o most_o learned_a man_n alive_a can_v not_o tell_v which_o be_v the_o true_a pope_n but_o it_o be_v doubt_v throughout_o the_o christian_a world_n 47._o world_n naucler_n gen_fw-la 47._o hereupon_o some_o thirty_o year_n after_o the_o schism_n begin_v the_o cardinal_n meeting_n at_o the_o council_n of_o pisa_n elect_v a_o three_o pope_n and_o so_o there_o be_v three_o pope_n whereof_o bellarmine_n 14._o bellarmine_n rom._n pont_n l._n 4._o c._n 14._o say_v it_o can_v not_o easy_o be_v judge_v which_o of_o they_o be_v the_o true_a and_o lawful_a pope_n every_o one_o of_o they_o have_v most_o learned_a patron_n 48._o patron_n naucler_n gen_fw-la 48._o short_o after_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n depose_v they_o all_o three_o and_o create_v martin_n which_o yet_o do_v not_o so_o extinguish_v the_o schism_n but_o that_o in_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n it_o break_v out_o again_o where_o the_o duke_n of_o savoy_n be_v make_v pope_n against_o eugenius_n and_o be_v call_v felix_n 1449._o felix_n clement_n elect_v a_o 1379._o felix_n resign_v a_o 1449._o between_o who_o resignation_n and_o the_o election_n of_o clement_n against_o vrban_n be_v 70._o year_n here_o let_v any_o man_n bethink_v himself_o what_o succession_n this_o be_v wherein_o so_o many_o pope_n succeed_v all_o at_o once_o and_o no_o man_n can_v tell_v which_o be_v the_o true_a pope_n for_o if_o the_o jesuite_n will_v have_v i_o to_o believe_v the_o roman_a faith_n because_o of_o the_o succession_n of_o pope_n in_o that_o church_n than_o it_o be_v needful_a that_o he_o show_v i_o who_o they_o be_v that_o thus_o succeed_v and_o prove_v their_o entrance_n lawful_a which_o he_o can_v do_v forasmuch_o as_o every_o one_o of_o they_o will_v maintain_v his_o own_o right_n and_o as_o i_o have_v note_v have_v the_o most_o learned_a and_o conscionable_a man_n in_o the_o world_n on_o their_o side_n that_o no_o man_n can_v tell_v who_o succeed_v §_o 56._o and_o this_o conclusion_n i_o may_v also_o confirm_v with_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n who_o in_o express_a word_n do_v affirm_v the_o roman_a church_n which_o be_v then_o govern_v by_o pope_n as_o now_o it_o be_v to_o be_v the_o lawful_a and_o apostolic_a church_n iren._n l_o 3._o c._n 3.5_o august_n contra_fw-la ep._n fundam_fw-la c_o 4._o and_o in_o diverse_a other_o place_n s._n ambros_n serm_n 47._o de_fw-la fide_fw-la petri._n s._n hierome_n epist_n ad_fw-la damas_n de_fw-fr verbo_fw-la hypost_n s._n cyprian_n l._n 1._o ep._n 1._o ad_fw-la cornel._n l._n 4._o ep_v ad_fw-la papianum_n and_o other_o the_o which_o since_o they_o do_v affirm_v for_o no_o other_o reason_n but_o because_o that_o company_n of_o man_n which_o be_v christian_n in_o rome_n and_o which_o in_o their_o day_n communicate_v with_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v a_o lineal_a succession_n of_o people_n and_o priest_n derive_v without_o interruption_n from_o the_o primitive_a church_n which_o be_v plant_v by_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o with_o which_o succession_n of_o priest_n must_v needs_o be_v inseparable_o join_v succession_n of_o doctrine_n since_o i_o say_v for_o this_o reason_n &_o no_o other_o they_o do_v call_v the_o roman_a the_o apostolic_a church_n this_o reason_n always_o hold_v as_o well_o since_o the_o day_n of_o these_o father_n as_o before_o we_o may_v say_v that_o in_o effect_n they_o affirm_v the_o roman_a church_n at_o this_o day_n to_o be_v the_o true_a apostolic_a church_n see_v especial_o irenaeus_n and_o s._n austin_n in_o the_o place_n already_o cite_v
and_o tertullian_n lib._n the_o prescript_n and_o optatus_n lib._n 2._o contra_fw-la parmen_fw-la the_o answer_n 1_o the_o ancient_a father_n affirm_v not_o one_o word_n of_o all_o this_o first_o they_o affirm_v not_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v then_o govern_v by_o pope_n as_o now_o it_o be_v for_o they_o see_v not_o how_o it_o be_v govern_v now_o and_o therefore_o can_v not_o affirm_v it_o and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o their_o time_n thus_o govern_v i_o have_v show_v digression_n 27._o and_o 49._o num_fw-la 6._o and_o 51._o num_fw-la 9_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o their_o time_n i_o grant_v be_v call_v pope_n and_o occumenicall_a as_o 107._o as_o ep._n arsen_n apud_fw-la athan._n apol_n 2._o basil_n ep_v 52._o justin_n novel_a 3._o &_o 5._o in_o tit_n balsam_n respon_n in_o jure_fw-la graecorsi_n joan._n aquipont_n de_fw-fr antichr_n p._n 107._o other_o bishop_n also_o be_v but_o they_o have_v no_o such_o authority_n as_o now_o they_o usurp_v their_o own_o 12._o own_o concord_n l._n 2._o c._n 12._o cusanus_fw-la may_v teach_v they_o that_o he_o be_v get_v beyond_o the_o ancient_a observation_n not_o have_v that_o power_n belong_v to_o he_o which_o certain_a flatterer_n give_v he_o and_o duarenus_n a_o papist_n likewise_o yet_o 16._o yet_o de_fw-fr sacris_fw-la eccles_n benef_n l._n 1._o c._n 16._o confess_v as_o much_o as_o i_o say_v that_o phocas_n make_v he_o the_o universal_a bishop_n which_o authority_n his_o successor_n have_v marvellous_o increase_v 2_o next_o albeit_o they_o affirm_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v the_o lawful_a and_o apostolic_a church_n yet_o they_o affirm_v not_o the_o present_a roman_a church_n which_o they_o never_o see_v so_o to_o be_v he_o that_o affirm_v lais_n to_o be_v a_o virgin_n when_o she_o be_v ten_o year_n old_a do_v not_o say_v she_o be_v so_o at_o twenty_o rome_n since_o their_o death_n have_v play_v the_o whore_n and_o lose_v that_o name_n and_o reputation_n which_o the_o father_n have_v of_o she_o which_o answer_v all_o the_o place_n cite_v out_o of_o irenaeus_n austin_n ambrose_n hierome_n and_o cyprian_a for_o call_v rome_n the_o apostolic_a church_n they_o speak_v of_o their_o own_o time_n and_o not_o of_o we_o 3_o three_o they_o do_v not_o affirm_v the_o roman_a church_n in_o their_o day_n to_o be_v lawful_a and_o apostolic_a for_o no_o other_o reason_n but_o because_o it_o have_v a_o lineal_a succession_n from_o the_o primitive_a church_n but_o as_o i_o have_v answer_v inde_fw-la answer_v sect._n 53._o n._n 2._o &_o inde_fw-la before_o because_o it_o have_v withal_o the_o succession_n of_o doctrine_n which_o the_o present_a papacy_n have_v not_o neither_o do_v they_o think_v that_o therefore_o it_o have_v succession_n of_o doctrine_n because_o it_o have_v succession_n of_o priest_n as_o if_o the_o former_a must_v needs_o be_v inseparable_o join_v with_o the_o late_a for_o their_o word_n express_v no_o such_o thing_n as_o i_o have_v show_v they_o revoke_v schismatickes_n to_o the_o succession_n indeed_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o they_o do_v likewise_o of_o other_o and_o object_v it_o against_o they_o but_o not_o it_o alone_o nor_o so_o as_o they_o will_v assume_v all_o succession_n for_o ever_o to_o be_v join_v with_o the_o true_a faith_n though_o then_o in_o the_o church_n name_v it_o be_v neither_o do_v they_o believe_v the_o priest_n who_o they_o so_o call_v to_o be_v sacrificer_n or_o massing_n priest_n they_o use_v the_o name_n but_o they_o give_v it_o not_o the_o definition_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n now_o use_v upon_o all_o which_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o ancient_a father_n affirm_v not_o the_o roman_a church_n at_o this_o day_n to_o be_v the_o true_a apostolic_a church_n though_o you_o see_v into_o the_o place_n cite_v a_o hundred_o time_n the_o which_o be_v answer_v sect._n 53._o principal_o for_o this_o cause_n that_o the_o reason_n whereupon_o they_o so_o commend_v it_o then_o hold_v not_o now_o in_o our_o day_n as_o they_o do_v in_o they_o if_o our_o adversary_n will_v take_v benefit_n by_o that_o which_o the_o father_n say_v in_o commendation_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o their_o day_n they_o must_v prove_v their_o succession_n as_o inviolated_a and_o their_o doctrine_n as_o sound_v as_o then_o it_o be_v which_o they_o can_v never_o do_v §_o 57_o now_o to_o make_v a_o end_n consider_v all_o this_o which_o i_o have_v say_v and_o prove_v to_o wit_n that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o infallible_a and_o entire_a faith_n the_o which_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o all_o sort_n of_o man_n the_o which_o faith_n every_o one_o must_v learn_v by_o some_o know_v infallible_a and_o universal_a rule_n accommodate_v to_o the_o capacity_n of_o every_o one_o the_o which_o rule_n can_v be_v no_o other_o but_o the_o doctrine_n and_o teach_n of_o the_o true_a church_n which_o church_n be_v always_o to_o continue_v visible_a to_o the_o world_n end_n and_o be_v to_o be_v know_v by_o these_o four_o mark_n aforesaid_a agree_v only_o to_o the_o roman_a church_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o it_o only_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o which_o every_o one_o must_v learn_v that_o faith_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n consider_v i_o say_v all_o this_o i_o will_v demand_v of_o the_o protestant_n who_o will_v not_o admit_v the_o authority_n or_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n how_o they_o can_v persuade_v themselves_o to_o have_v that_o faith_n whereby_o they_o may_v be_v save_v or_o by_o what_o right_a they_o can_v challenge_v unto_o themselves_o the_o title_n of_o the_o true_a church_n since_o as_o i_o now_o have_v prove_v they_o have_v never_o a_o one_o of_o these_o four_o mark_n which_o by_o the_o common_a consent_n of_o all_o be_v the_o true_a mark_n of_o christ_n true_a church_n how_o can_v they_o be_v the_o true_a church_n which_o neither_o be_v one_o because_o it_o have_v no_o mean_n to_o keep_v it_o in_o unity_n nor_o holy_a because_o neither_o be_v there_o ever_o man_n of_o it_o which_o by_o miracle_n or_o by_o some_o other_o undoubted_a testimony_n can_v be_v prove_v to_o be_v true_o holy_a neither_o be_v their_o doctrine_n such_o as_o those_o that_o most_o pure_o observe_v it_o do_v without_o fail_v become_v holy_a nor_o catholic_a because_o it_o teach_v not_o all_o true_a thing_n which_o have_v be_v hold_v in_o former_a time_n but_o deni_v many_o of_o they_o neither_o be_v it_o spread_v over_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n but_o every_o particular_a sect_n be_v contain_v in_o some_o few_o corner_n thereof_o neither_o have_v it_o be_v ever_o since_o christ_n but_o spring_v up_o of_o late_a the_o first_o founder_n be_v martin_n luther_n a_o apostata_fw-la friar_n a_o man_n after_o his_o apostasy_n know_v both_o by_o his_o writing_n word_n and_o deed_n and_o manner_n of_o his_o death_n to_o have_v be_v a_o notable_a evil_a liver_n nor_o apostolic_a because_o the_o preacher_n thereof_o can_v derive_v their_o pedigree_n lineal_o without_o interruption_n from_o any_o apostle_n but_o be_v force_v to_o begin_v their_o line_n if_o they_o will_v have_v any_o from_o luther_n or_o caluin_n or_o some_o late_a how_o can_v they_o then_o brag_v that_o they_o only_o have_v the_o true_a holy_a catholic_a and_o apostolic_a faith_n since_o this_o be_v not_o find_v but_o only_o in_o the_o true_a holy_a catholic_a &_o apostolic_a church_n and_o remain_v always_o as_o s_n augustine_n say_v in_o ventre_n ecclesiae_fw-la in_o the_o belly_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v unpossible_a that_o they_o which_o be_v not_o of_o this_o church_n shall_v have_v the_o true_a faith_n according_a to_o the_o say_n of_o the_o same_o augustin_n afore_o cite_v quisquis_fw-la ab_fw-la hoc_fw-la ventre_n separatus_fw-la est_fw-la necesse_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la falsa_fw-la loquatur_fw-la whosoever_o be_v separate_v from_o this_o belly_n of_o the_o church_n he_o must_v needs_o speak_v false_a for_o who_o can_v once_o have_v true_a faith_n unless_o he_o first_o hear_v it_o because_o fides_fw-la est_fw-la ex_fw-la auditu_fw-la rom._n 10._o faith_n come_v of_o hear_v but_o how_o can_v one_o hear_v it_o sine_fw-la praedicante_fw-la without_o one_o to_o preach_v it_o true_o unto_o he_o the_o answer_n 1_o that_o which_o the_o jesuite_n have_v say_v and_o prove_v be_v grant_v he_o to_o wit_n that_o there_o be_v indeed_o but_o one_o true_a faith_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o all_o sort_n of_o man_n the_o which_o as_o it_o must_v so_o it_o may_v be_v learn_v by_o that_o rule_n which_o god_n have_v leave_v infallible_a universal_a and_o accommodate_v to_o the_o capacity_n of_o every_o one_o the_o which_o rule_n be_v the_o scripture_n contain_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n and_o not_o that_o which_o the_o jesuit_n mean_v by_o the_o doctrine_n and_o teach_n of_o the_o
paul_n in_o the_o foresay_a place_n that_o those_o that_o come_v to_o it_o must_v not_o take_v the_o honour_n to_o themselves_o but_o must_v be_v call_v unto_o it_o as_o aaron_n be_v to_o wit_n visible_o and_o by_o peculiar_a consecration_n and_o must_v come_v to_o it_o in_o this_o ordinary_a manner_n which_o our_o saviour_n term_v to_o enter_v in_o by_o the_o door_n joh._n 10._o to_o wit_n by_o christ_n who_o visible_o send_v his_o apostle_n say_v euntes_fw-la docete_fw-la omnes_fw-la gentes_fw-la baptizantes_fw-la eos_fw-la etc._n etc._n matth._n ult._n and_o joh._n 20._o use_v a_o peculiar_a ceremony_n qui_fw-la sufflavit_fw-la in_o eos_fw-la he_o breathe_v upon_o they_o say_v accipite_fw-la spiritum_fw-la sanctum_fw-la quorum_fw-la remiseritis_fw-la peccata_fw-la remittuntur_fw-la eye_n &_o quorum_fw-la retinueritis_fw-la retenta_fw-la sunt_fw-la and_o be_v not_o forgive_v they_o by_o which_o word_n visible_o be_v give_v to_o the_o apostle_n both_o power_n to_o absolve_v from_o sin_n and_o a_o virtual_a commandment_n to_o the_o people_n to_o make_v confession_n to_o they_o of_o all_o their_o mortal_a sin_n since_o without_o this_o confession_n they_o can_v not_o tell_v what_o to_o remit_v and_o when_o to_o retain_v sin_n the_o which_o apostle_n be_v thus_o visible_o by_o our_o saviour_n call_v consecrate_v and_o send_v do_v visible_o by_o imposition_n of_o hand_n ordain_v other_o their_o successor_n and_o these_o other_o from_o time_n to_o time_n without_o interruption_n until_o this_o present_a man_n who_o now_o be_v priest_n and_o pastor_n in_o the_o catholic_a roman_a church_n these_o therefore_o i_o say_v enter_z in_o by_o christ_n the_o door_n and_o therefore_o be_v true_a pastor_n and_o whosoever_o enter_v in_o any_o other_o way_n our_o saviour_n in_o the_o same_o place_n have_v tell_v we_o how_o to_o account_v of_o they_o where_o he_o say_v qui_fw-la non_fw-la intrat_fw-la per_fw-la ostium_fw-la in_o ovile_n ovium_fw-la sed_fw-la ascendit_fw-la aliunde_fw-la fur_n est_fw-la &_o latro_fw-la who_o come_v not_o to_o feed_v the_o sheep_n but_o to_o steal_v kill_v and_o destroy_v they_o so_o that_o we_o have_v not_o to_o expect_v any_o to_o be_v send_v of_o god_n to_o teach_v and_o instruct_v we_o in_o faith_n but_o such_o as_o come_v in_o this_o ordinary_a manner_n as_o it_o be_v certain_a luther_n and_o caluin_n do_v not_o come_v the_o answer_n 1_o in_o this_o place_n the_o jesuite_n to_o show_v we_o have_v not_o the_o church_n except_v against_o our_o pastor_n and_o particular_o against_o luther_n and_o caluin_n as_o if_o they_o have_v no_o lawful_a call_n to_o preach_v as_o they_o do_v and_o indeed_o it_o be_v a_o certain_a truth_n that_o all_o true_a pastor_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n take_v upon_o they_o to_o instruct_v his_o people_n must_v have_v a_o call_n thereunto_o and_o be_v send_v of_o god_n as_o the_o text_n allege_v do_v well_o prove_v heb._n 5.4_o 2._o chron._n 26.18_o mat._n 28.19_o joh._n 10.1_o and_o 20.22_o and_o if_o any_o man_n leap_v out_o of_o the_o church_n forsake_v that_o company_n wherein_o lawful_a succession_n undoubted_o be_v and_o with_o the_o succession_n lawful_a send_v from_o god_n he_o must_v be_v repute_v a_o hireling_n that_o come_v to_o destroy_v for_o this_o be_v the_o touchstone_n whereby_o true_a teacher_n be_v discern_v and_o the_o contrary_n discover_v and_o by_o this_o we_o know_v the_o pastor_n of_o our_o church_n against_o who_o the_o jesuite_n except_v to_o be_v legitimate_a for_o the_o god_n of_o heaven_n send_v they_o and_o when_o they_o come_v they_o leap_v not_o out_o of_o the_o church_n otherwise_o then_o the_o wheat_n do_v out_o of_o the_o chaff_n when_o it_o be_v winnow_v neither_o do_v they_o teach_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v new_a or_o contrary_a to_o the_o church_n but_o continue_v and_o reform_v the_o ancient_a doctrine_n which_o the_o papacy_n in_o the_o church_n have_v corrupt_v and_o let_v the_o reader_n remember_v which_o i_o have_v often_o answer_v in_o this_o book_n that_o the_o popish_a religion_n and_o abuse_n of_o all_o sort_n in_o process_n of_o time_n grow_v as_o a_o leprosy_n upon_o the_o church_n and_o as_o i_o may_v say_v incorporate_v themselves_o therewith_o by_o reason_n whereof_o thing_n good_a &_o evil_n be_v mingle_v together_o god_n word_n with_o man_n tradition_n the_o true_a sacrament_n with_o man_n error_n and_o the_o external_a call_n of_o minister_n with_o foul_a corruption_n in_o which_o case_n luther_n and_o our_o teacher_n renounce_v the_o say_a error_n tradition_n and_o corruption_n and_o retain_v the_o rest_n can_v be_v say_v to_o have_v go_v out_o of_o the_o church_n but_o to_o remain_v perfect_o in_o it_o still_o because_o that_o which_o they_o leave_v be_v not_o univocal_o of_o the_o church_n but_o only_o in_o conceit_n be_v repute_v so_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n know_v by_o that_o name_n and_o in_o no_o other_o in_o these_o western_a part_n be_v the_o true_a scripture_n sacrament_n calling_n and_o succession_n &_o every_o part_n of_o true_a faith_n and_o necessary_a doctrine_n but_o these_o thing_n be_v not_o the_o papacy_n against_o which_o we_o go_v the_o papacy_n be_v and_o be_v that_o which_o over_o and_o beside_o be_v by_o degree_n add_v to_o they_o and_o therefore_o our_o pastor_n leap_v not_o out_o of_o the_o church_n which_o always_o go_v with_o the_o truth_n but_o out_o of_o the_o papacy_n and_o preach_v by_o virtue_n of_o that_o external_a mission_n which_o they_o receive_v in_o the_o papacy_n they_o have_v the_o undoubted_a commission_n of_o christ_n whereto_o they_o have_v right_a and_o even_o as_o when_o a_o fair_a pool_n of_o water_n become_v in_o time_n corrupt_v weed_n grow_v the_o mud_n increase_v and_o frog_n creep_v into_o it_o the_o owner_n thereof_o cut_v a_o channel_n and_o leave_v the_o corruption_n draw_v the_o water_n to_o another_o place_n and_o so_o occupi_v it_o without_o danger_n and_o the_o frog_n remain_v must_v not_o complain_v the_o water_n be_v they_o because_o the_o pit_n wherein_o they_o remain_v be_v it_o that_o first_o engender_v it_o no_o more_o may_v the_o papacy_n accuse_v we_o for_o go_v out_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o long_o as_o we_o leave_v nothing_o behind_o we_o but_o the_o frog_n and_o weed_n and_o that_o which_o be_v the_o ancient_a water_n before_o they_o come_v we_o be_v who_o grow_v upon_o we_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o we_o separate_v although_o they_o succeed_v in_o the_o church_n as_o the_o weed_n and_o frog_n do_v in_o the_o pool_n 2_o the_o jesuite_n object_v that_o god_n have_v plant_v a_o church_n to_o endure_v in_o all_o age_n wherein_o he_o will_v have_v a_o visible_a succession_n of_o teacher_n preserve_v from_o fail_v in_o the_o true_a faith_n &_o therefore_o none_o be_v send_v of_o god_n but_o such_o as_o come_v in_o this_o ordinary_a manner_n call_v and_o succeed_a visible_o and_o with_o peculiar_a consecration_n which_o christ_n term_v enter_v in_o by_o the_o door_n the_o antecedent_n whereof_o be_v false_a for_o though_o god_n ordinance_n be_v that_o he_o have_v a_o church_n and_o teacher_n therein_o in_o all_o age_n succeed_v one_o another_o and_o stand_v in_o the_o truth_n yet_o he_o have_v make_v no_o law_n that_o this_o succession_n shall_v be_v visible_a or_o with_o peculiar_a consecration_n as_o the_o jesuite_n mean_v they_o for_o by_o visible_a he_o understand_v conspicuous_a at_o all_o time_n to_o all_o the_o world_n which_o be_v a_o foolish_a assertion_n 24._o assertion_n §_o 17._o and_o so_o forward_o to_o the_o 24._o confute_v in_o it_o own_o place_n where_o he_o dispute_v it_o it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o pastor_n in_o the_o church_n be_v visible_a to_o the_o child_n of_o the_o church_n and_o by_o peculiar_a consecration_n bann_n consecration_n dom._n bann_n he_o mean_v the_o popish_a ceremony_n of_o order_n which_o be_v a_o private_a invention_n of_o the_o late_a time_n and_o the_o proper_a corruption_n that_o grow_v to_o the_o outward_a ordination_n and_o call_n of_o minister_n which_o god_n appoint_v let_v these_o false_a definitio●s_n be_v remove_v and_o the_o succession_n and_o call_v and_o consecration_n be_v expound_v as_o god_n mean_v they_o when_o he_o say_v they_o shall_v always_o be_v in_o the_o church_n and_o our_o pastor_n have_v they_o as_o i_o have_v answer_v forward_o answer_v §._o 52._o n._n 5._o &_o §._o 53._o and_o so_o forward_o before_o yea_o our_o very_a adversary_n deny_v not_o but_o a_o man_n may_v be_v a_o lawful_a minister_n though_o a_o bishop_n never_o consecrate_v he_o and_o whereas_o the_o common_a opinion_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v that_o a_o bishop_n differ_v not_o from_o a_o priest_n in_o order_n but_o in_o jurisdiction_n only_o hence_o it_o follow_v avoidable_o that_o jure_fw-la divino_fw-la a_o simple_a priest_n in_o some_o case_n may_v ordain_v because_o
lenity_n to_o reduce_n again_o their_o seduce_a neighbour_n bear_v with_o their_o frowardness_n and_o pray_v instant_o for_o their_o conversion_n if_o at_o any_o time_n it_o may_v please_v god_n to_o release_v they_o of_o their_o error_n and_o to_o give_v they_o the_o knowledge_n of_o his_o truth_n by_o deliver_v they_o from_o the_o roman_a emissary_n which_o have_v make_v they_o their_o ward_n that_o they_o may_v possess_v they_o and_o prey_n upon_o they_o and_o let_v they_o final_o with_o faithfulness_n and_o instance_n pray_v god_n for_o the_o state_n wherein_o we_o live_v so_o pitiful_o vex_v with_o the_o discontent_n and_o fury_n of_o those_o that_o call_v themselves_o catholic_n who_o if_o they_o have_v any_o dram_n of_o religion_n or_o conscience_n in_o they_o will_v not_o thus_o practice_v to_o make_v their_o own_o dear_a country_n a_o theatre_n of_o such_o tragedy_n as_o the_o world_n never_o see_v before_o but_o our_o sin_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o these_o thing_n and_o therefore_o let_v every_o man_n eschue_v his_o own_o evil_n seek_v that_o way_n to_o confirm_v himself_o and_o the_o church_n wherein_o he_o live_v in_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n that_o he_o may_v show_v mercy_n and_o peace_n in_o our_o day_n amen_n finis_fw-la a_o alphabetical_a table_n of_o the_o several_a matter_n and_o question_n handle_v and_o dispute_v in_o this_o book_n the_o first_o number_n signify_v the_o section_n the_o second_o the_o number_n of_o the_o section_n where_o the_o number_n be_v but_o one_o there_o the_o whole_a section_n be_v mean_v a._n abbey_n see_v monk_n and_o monastery_n accident_n in_o the_o sacrament_n where_o they_o inhere_o 35_o 21._o how_o they_o have_v power_n to_o nourish_v breed_v corrupt_v etc._n etc._n ibid._n adoration_n of_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n when_o it_o be_v bring_v in_o 51.9_o absurdity_n about_o it_o ibid._n alteration_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v alter_v from_o that_o which_o it_o hold_v in_o ancient_a time_n digress_v 23._o see_v roman_a church_n anastasius_n his_o book_n de_fw-fr vitis_n rom._n pontificum_fw-la censure_v 55.7_o antiquity_n of_o the_o protestant_n doctrine_n demonstrate_v 44.1_o apocrypha_fw-la not_o canonical_a scripture_n by_o the_o papist_n own_o confession_n 35_o 20._o appeal_v to_o rome_n forbid_v 36.27_o apostolic_a how_o the_o church_n be_v apostolic_a 52.1_o arnulfus_n his_o speech_n of_o the_o pope_n 50.28_o auricular_a confession_n just_o reject_v by_o the_o protestant_n 40.6_o the_o primitive_a church_n use_v it_o not_o ibid._n it_o be_v the_o occasion_n and_o mean_n of_o contrive_v the_o horrible_a sin_n that_o be_v 40.9_o the_o say_n of_o chaucer_n touch_v it_o ibid._n not_o agree_v upon_o by_o the_o papist_n touch_v the_o time_n when_o it_o be_v institute_v 35.20_o and_o 40.6_o and_o 58.7_o whether_o it_o be_v simple_o needful_a 40.7.8_o austin_n the_o monk_n convert_v not_o england_n 49._o author_n of_o sin_n god_n be_v not_o the_o author_n of_o sin_n 40.50_o how_o god_n will_v sin_n ibid._n touch_v this_o point_n the_o papist_n have_v belie_v we_o and_o say_v themselves_o as_o much_o as_o we_o do_v ibid._n b._n berengatius_n 50.30_o bishop_n lay_v man_n sometime_o make_v bishop_n 5.11_o the_o bishop_n oath_n make_v to_o the_o pope_n 31.6_o titular_a bishop_n at_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n 31.5_o book_n the_o practice_n of_o papist_n in_o purge_v of_o book_n 35.18_o boy_n pope_n of_o rome_n 55.7_o c._n call_v of_o the_o protestant_a minister_n how_o demonstrate_v 52.5_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o pastor_n have_v a_o calling_n 58.1_o what_o call_v the_o protestant_n pastor_n have_v ib._n they_o need_v no_o miracle_n to_o confirm_v it_o and_o why_o 59_o canonise_a see_v saint_n catholic_a the_o romish_a church_n not_o catholic_a in_o place_n 46.2_o nor_o in_o doctrine_n and_o time_n 46.3_o century_n how_o they_o have_v take_v exception_n against_o the_o father_n 44.3_o certainty_n of_o salvation_n see_v salvation_n church_n our_o faith_n be_v not_o last_o resolve_v into_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n 6.9_o how_o the_o teach_n of_o the_o church_n be_v call_v the_o rule_n 13.1_o by_o the_o church_n the_o papist_n mean_v the_o pope_n digress_v 16._o why_o the_o papist_n devolue_v all_o power_n so_o to_o the_o church_n digress_v 16._o how_o the_o church_n be_v say_v to_o err_v 14.2_o and_o 15.6_o &_o 25.2_o the_o church_n militant_a may_v err_v 14.2_o &_o inde_fw-la &_o 15.6_o the_o church_n be_v the_o subordinate_a mean_n to_o teach_v man_n and_o how_o 18.5_o &_o 27.1_o church_n visible_a the_o true_a state_n of_o the_o question_n between_o the_o papist_n and_o we_o touch_v the_o visiblenesse_n of_o the_o church_n 17.1_o and_o digress_v 17._o &_o 22._o the_o papist_n confess_v in_o effect_n as_o much_o touch_v the_o church_n be_v sometime_o invisible_a as_o we_o do_v digress_v 17._o the_o church_n be_v not_o always_o visible_a 18._o the_o argument_n against_o this_o answer_v from_o §_o 18._o to_o 24._o the_o papist_n say_v the_o church_n when_o christ_n suffer_v be_v in_o the_o virgin_n marie_n alone_o 17.3_o the_o protestant_n church_n have_v always_o be_v digress_v 48._o mark_v of_o the_o church_n the_o sacrament_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o right_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n 24.1_o and_o digress_v 18._o the_o argument_n against_o this_o be_v answer_v from_o 26._o to_o 32._o how_o the_o teach_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v examine_v 30._o the_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n assign_v by_o the_o papist_n be_v not_o sufficient_a 32._o how_o the_o church_n move_v saint_n austin_n to_o believe_v the_o gospel_n digress_v 19_o change_v of_o the_o ancient_a roman_a faith_n see_v alteration_n and_o roman_a church_n clergy_n the_o vileness_n of_o the_o popish_a clergy_n note_v 38.5_o how_o the_o papist_n excuse_v it_o 38.7_o communion_n see_v sacrament_n commandment_n of_o god_n see_v law_n congruity_n see_v merit_n of_o congruity_n conception_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n without_o sin_n a_o new_a doctrine_n 47.2_o consultation_n not_o debar_v though_o man_n have_v no_o freewill_n 40.48_o conversion_n of_o country_n by_o the_o roman_a church_n how_o it_o be_v 49.4_o contention_n what_o the_o contention_n be_v wherewith_o our_o church_n can_v true_o be_v charge_v 33.2_o the_o church_n be_v never_o free_a from_o all_o contention_n digress_v 21._o grievous_a contention_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n ibid._n discourse_v touch_v the_o contention_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n digress_v 24._o they_o say_v they_o contend_v not_o in_o dogmatic_a point_n answer_v 35.19_o counsel_n above_o the_o pope_n 36.28.30_o the_o pope_n not_o precedent_n in_o the_o ancient_a counsel_n 36.29_o they_o may_v err_v 15.6_o &_o 44_o 6._o they_o be_v call_v in_o ancient_a time_n by_o the_o emperor_n or_o civil_a magistrate_n 36.28_o d._n decree_n of_o god_n incline_v and_o order_v man_n will_n 40.47_o descension_n of_o christ_n soul_n into_o hell_n deny_v by_o papist_n 35._o ●0_n doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n see_v papistry_n e._n easter_n contention_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n about_o the_o keep_n of_o it_o 33.4_o &_o 36.3_o election_n be_v not_o for_o work_v foresee_v 40.49_o how_o a_o man_n may_v know_v if_o he_o be_v elect_v 41.7_o england_n not_o first_o convert_v by_o austin_n the_o monk_n 49_o nor_o by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n ibid._n err_v the_o church_n may_v err_v &_o how_o 14.2_o &_o 15.6_o &_o 25.2_o the_o pope_n may_v err_v even_o judicial_o and_o be_v a_o heretic_n 55.8_o and_o digress_v 28._o counsel_n may_v err_v 15.6_o &_o 44.6_o and_o so_o have_v the_o father_n 44.5_o eucharist_n how_o christ_n be_v present_a therein_o explicate_v 51.10_o vile_a speech_n of_o the_o papist_n touch_v it_o 51.11_o euerard_n the_o bishop_n of_o salisborow_n his_o speech_n of_o the_o pope_n 50.33_o examine_v the_o teach_n of_o the_o church_n and_o all_o man_n to_o be_v examine_v ●0_n f_o faith_n must_v be_v build_v on_o the_o scripture_n 1.1_o papist_n build_v their_o faith_n on_o tradition_n 1.3_o it_o must_v be_v explicit_a 2.1_o what_o enfold_v faith_n be_v 2.2_o in_fw-it mark_fw-mi x._o &_o pag._n 6._o num_fw-la 6._o dispute_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n forbid_v by_o the_o papist_n 2.4_o the_o collier_n faith_n what_o 2.6_o the_o last_o resolution_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v into_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n 5.5_o and_o not_o of_o the_o church_n digress_v 6._o &_o 11._o i'faith_o how_o a_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n 25_o 1._o see_v church_n i'faith_o only_o justifi_v expound_v and_o defend_v digress_v 40._o justify_v faith_n describe_v 40.39_o a_o man_n may_v know_v if_o he_o have_v faith_n 41.3_o faith_n of_o the_o ancient_a roman_a church_n how_o it_o begin_v to_o fail_v 50_o 4._o how_o the_o modern_a roman_a faith_n grow_v in_o the_o church_n 58.1_o fast_v digress_v 32._o the_o protestant_n maintain_v fast_v ibid._n the_o
papist_n as_o deep_a in_o break_v fast_a day_n as_o the_o protestant_n ibid._n fast_v be_v a_o indifferent_a ceremony_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n ibid._n lend_v fast_o be_v hold_v diverse_o ibid._n father_n and_o doctor_n be_v not_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n 23.1_o they_o may_v err_v ibid._n the_o papist_n boast_v that_o the_o father_n be_v on_o their_o side_n 44.4_o they_o have_v their_o error_n 44.5_o we_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o every_o thing_n that_o they_o have_v say_v but_o may_v sometime_o lawful_o dissent_v from_o they_o 44.7_o the_o papist_n themselves_o do_v it_o ibid._n the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n touch_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o father_n 44.8_o who_o the_o papist_n mean_v by_o the_o father_n nu_fw-la 9_o what_o they_o mean_v by_o all_o the_o father_n consent_v in_o one_o nu_fw-la 10._o the_o pope_n usher_n the_o father_n nu_fw-la 11._o the_o practice_n of_o the_o papist_n in_o reject_v the_o father_n nu_fw-la 11._o &_o 12._o forefather_n how_o far_o forth_o to_o be_v follow_v 61.2_o what_o be_v to_o be_v think_v touch_v our_o forefather_n that_o live_v and_o die_v in_o the_o time_n of_o papistry_n 6●_n 4_o freewill_n deny_v by_o papist_n 35.20_o all_o the_o question_n touch_v freewill_n lay_v down_o in_o order_n as_o they_o rise_v with_o their_o true_a state_n digress_v 42._o the_o want_n of_o freewill_n debar_v not_o consultation_n 40.48_o how_o it_o be_v reconcile_v with_o god_n praedestination_n nu_fw-la 45._o what_o freewill_n be_v and_o wherein_o it_o stand_v nu_fw-la 54._o freewill_n in_o natural_a and_o civil_a thing_n expound_v nu_fw-la 55._o no_o freewill_n in_o spiritual_a thing_n till_o grace_v come_v nu_fw-la 56._o the_o papist_n doctrine_n to_o the_o contrary_n nu_fw-la 57_o some_o learned_a man_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n think_v freewill_n to_o be_v pelagianisme_n nu_fw-la 61._o the_o will_n of_o man_n concur_v not_o with_o god_n grace_n in_o uprise_v from_o sin_n nu_fw-la 64._o the_o papist_n doctrine_n to_o the_o contrary_n nu_fw-la 64._o the_o efficacy_n of_o grace_n depend_v not_o on_o our_o will_n ibid._n what_o freewill_n man_n have_v when_o he_o be_v regenerate_v nu_fw-la 65._o friar_n how_o define_v by_o lincolniensis_n 50.32_o g._n god_n not_o the_o author_n of_o sin_n 40.50_o see_v author_n of_o sin_n good_a work_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n digress_v 34._o they_o be_v to_o be_v exclude_v out_o of_o our_o justification_n but_o not_o out_o of_o our_o sanctification_n ibid._n they_o merit_v not_o digress_v 35._o the_o protestant_n do_v not_o say_v good_a work_n be_v sin_n digress_v 37._o grace_n the_o papist_n meaning_n expound_v when_o they_o say_v man_n will_n without_o grace_n can_v do_v nothing_o 40.57_o the_o papist_n teach_v that_o a_o man_n of_o himself_o can_v do_v good_a before_o any_o grace_n come_v ibid._n man_n can_v dispose_v himself_o it_o be_v grace_n that_o do_v it_o 40.63_o what_o that_o be_v that_o make_v grace_n effectual_a 40.64_o a_o man_n may_v infallible_o know_v if_o he_o be_v in_o grace_n digress_v 43._o greek_n they_o have_v as_o good_a outward_a succession_n as_o the_o romish_a church_n have_v 55.2_o gropper_n the_o cardinal_n a_o story_n of_o he_o 55.7_o h._n hierome_n of_o prague_n a_o good_a man_n holiness_n no_o note_n of_o the_o church_n 43.1_o the_o holiness_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n disprove_v 38.1_o the_o place_n of_o luther_n and_o smidelin_n answer_v that_o be_v object_v against_o the_o holiness_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n 38.2_o the_o holiness_n of_o the_o protestant_n doctrine_n be_v justify_v 40._o ad_fw-la 49._o what_o holiness_n the_o protestant_n lay_v they_o have_v 41.1_o complaint_n make_v by_o papist_n against_o the_o unholinesse_n of_o their_o own_o church_n digress_v 31._o a_o man_n may_v infallible_o know_v if_o he_o be_v true_o holy_a 41.3_o and_o digress_v 43._o honorius_n a_o pope_n that_o be_v a_o heretic_n 36.34_o in_o that_o cause_n of_o honorius_n you_o have_v a_o example_n how_o the_o papist_n deny_v all_o authority_n 44.15_o i_o ignorance_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n be_v commend_v by_o the_o papist_n 2.5_o image_n not_o allow_v of_o in_o ancient_a time_n and_o their_o worship_n forbid_v 47.5_o they_o be_v a_o new_a device_n 35.13_o the_o papist_n be_v not_o at_o one_o among_o themselves_o touch_v the_o first_o that_o reject_v image_n 50.5_o image_n of_o the_o trinity_n when_o bring_v in_o 50.11_o image_n worship_n when_o it_o be_v first_o bring_v in_o 50_o 1●_n &_o 51.5_o the_o papist_n be_v divide_v among_o themselves_o touch_v the_o adoration_n of_o image_n 50._o 16._o they_o worship_v stock_n &_o stone_n as_o the_o pagan_n do_v 51.6_o imputation_n of_o christ_n righteousness_n for_o our_o justification_n be_v acknowledge_v by_o papist_n 35.20_o what_o this_o imputation_n import_v 40.41_o indies_n not_o convert_v by_o the_o jesuite_n 48.2_o but_o utter_o root_v out_o by_o cruelty_n unspeakable_a which_o be_v touch_v at_o large_a digress_v 50._o the_o protestant_n religion_n be_v in_o india_n afore_o the_o papist_n know_v they_o 48.3_o judge_n of_o controversy_n be_v the_o scripture_n digress_v 3._o papist_n will_v be_v judge_n in_o their_o own_o cause_n 5.7_o the_o pope_n be_v make_v judge_v who_o be_v a_o party_n 5.8_o the_o judge_n of_o controversy_n assign_v by_o the_o papist_n fall_v into_o the_o ●ame_n difficulty_n that_o be_v lay_v against_o the_o scripture_n 34.2_o the_o papist_n will_v not_o stand_v to_o their_o own_o judge_n 30.4_o &_o 35.15_o justification_n be_v by_o faith_n and_o not_o by_o work_n 35.14_o &_o 20._o &_o digress_v 40._o what_o justification_n be_v and_o how_o it_o be_v distinguish_v from_o sanctification_n 40.38_o k._n keep_v the_o commandment_n see_v law_n of_o god_n key_n give_v to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o well_o as_o to_o peter_n 36.12_o they_o import_v not_o the_o supremacy_n evince_v by_o disputation_n 36.16_o &_o inde_fw-la &_o digress_v 30._o what_o the_o key_n of_o the_o church_n mean_v 36.18_o knowledge_n very_o commendable_a in_o the_o people_n 2.7_o great_a among_o they_o of_o the_o primitive_a church_n ibid._n by_o what_o mean_v the_o elect_v know_v and_o be_v assure_v of_o their_o own_o salvation_n 40.39_o l._n latin_n prayer_n and_o service_n mislike_v by_o some_o papist_n 35.20_o against_o antiquity_n 47.2_o law_n of_o god_n no_o man_n righteousness_n can_v satisfy_v it_o digr_n 34._o no_o man_n can_v keep_v it_o digress_v 36._o why_o give_v when_o no_o man_n can_v keep_v it_o 40.21_o the_o papist_n say_v absurd_o that_o the_o commandment_n be_v easy_a to_o keep_v and_o a_o man_n may_v live_v without_o sin_n 40.19_o lay_v people_n ought_v to_o read_v the_o scripture_n and_o to_o have_v they_o translate_v see_v scripture_n and_o translation_n lay_v man_n have_v be_v make_v bishop_n 5.11_o legend_n the_o miracle_n record_v therein_o be_v of_o no_o credit_n 42.2_o nor_o the_o legend_n themselves_o 42.7_o lend_v fast_o not_o hold_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n as_o now_o it_o be_v 40.4_o liberty_n our_o faith_n be_v false_o charge_v to_o be_v a_o doctrine_n of_o liberty_n 43.2_o luther_n his_o calling_n be_v justify_v 52.5_o &_o 59.2_o and_o his_o writing_n 57.3_o and_o his_o life_n and_o death_n against_o the_o malicious_a report_n of_o the_o papist_n digr_n 57_o those_o report_n be_v touch_v ib._n m._n marriage_n no_o sacrament_n 35.20_o the_o marriage_n of_o priest_n not_o restrain_v in_o ancient_a time_n 47.4_o when_o the_o restraint_n begin_v 50.10_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n see_v church_n virgin_n mary_n the_o papist_n say_v the_o church_n be_v in_o she_o alone_o when_o christ_n die_v 17.3_o mass_n not_o offer_v by_o christ_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n 35.20_o when_o it_o begin_v 50.14_o merit_v renounce_v by_o papist_n 35.20_o and_o 40.15_o merit_n of_o work_v none_o 40.12_o and_o 14._o when_o that_o opinion_n begin_v 50.13_o the_o papist_n hold_v it_o and_o what_o they_o mean_v by_o it_o 40.13_o the_o diverse_a opinion_n that_o be_v among_o the_o papist_n touch_v merit_n 40.16_o merit_n of_o christ_n how_o far_o they_o go_v by_o the_o papist_n doctrine_n 40.13.29_o merit_n of_o congruity_n what_o and_o how_o hold_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 40_o 62._o miracle_n not_o now_o needful_a 12.6_o their_o proper_a use_n 42.4_o the_o time_n when_o the_o church_n have_v they_o and_o the_o end_n why_o 41.4_o the_o miracle_n that_o the_o papist_n stand_v upon_o be_v of_o no_o certain_a credit_n 42.5_o &_o inde_fw-la the_o gentile_n have_v as_o good_a miracle_n as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v 42.6_o the_o legendary_n taint_v for_o whetstone_n liar_n 42.7_o incredible_a report_n in_o the_o legend_n and_o some_o also_o in_o the_o ancient_a father_n 42.8_o moral_a work_n what_o 40.59_o touch_v natural_a freewill_n in_o thing_n moral_a ibid._n monk_n of_o ancient_a time_n not_o like_o we_o of_o this_o time_n 41.3_o and_o
in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n nu_fw-la 4_o 7._o digress_v 10._o how_o a_o man_n may_v be_v certain_a which_o be_v the_o right_a sense_n n._n 7_o 8_o 12._o why_o many_o understand_v not_o the_o scripture_n digress_v 10._o and_o 14._o and_o §_o 10.1_o how_o the_o easiness_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v prove_v 8.16_o they_o have_v the_o outward_a authority_n whereupon_o our_o faith_n be_v build_v digress_v 11._o how_o we_o know_v they_o to_o be_v god_n word_n digress_v 11._o and_o 12._o they_o contain_v all_o thing_n needful_a 9.1_o the_o papist_n say_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n alter_v with_o the_o time_n 9.11_o horrible_a behaviour_n of_o the_o papist_n against_o the_o scripture_n digress_v 22._o shrift_n see_v auricular_a confession_n sinne._n how_o god_n will_v it_o 40.50_o our_o uprising_n from_o sin_n be_v by_o grace_n our_o own_o will_v not_o dispose_v thereunto_o 40.63_o the_o papist_n have_v no_o certainty_n what_o power_n the_o priest_n have_v in_o remit_v sin_n digress_v 55._o we_o do_v not_o say_v all_o that_o we_o do_v be_v sin_n digress_v 37._o our_o doctrine_n touch_v the_o sinfulness_n cleave_v to_o our_o good_a work_n make_v not_o man_n careless_a 40.25_o sin_n mortal_a and_o venial_a a_o untrue_a distinction_n digress_v 38._o how_o the_o papist_n hold_v it_o ib._n they_o agree_v not_o in_o it_o ibid._n succession_n wherein_o true_a succession_n stand_v 52.1_o 3._o how_o the_o protestant_n doctrine_n have_v succeed_v 52.4_o how_o the_o father_n be_v insist_v upon_o succession_n 53._o and_o 56._o it_o be_v no_o note_n of_o the_o church_n 54.1_o true_a faith_n how_o join_v with_o succession_n and_o how_o not_o 54.2_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n prove_v it_o not_o the_o true_a church_n 55_o 2._o the_o greek_n have_v as_o good_a succession_n as_o the_o roman_n ibid._n the_o romish_a church_n have_v no_o true_a outward_a succession_n digress_v 53._o such_o succession_n as_o the_o papist_n mean_v be_v not_o needful_a 58_o 2._o supremacy_n of_o the_o pope_n against_o the_o first_o antiquity_n 35.10_o &_o 47.6_o the_o papist_n agree_v not_o in_o it_o 35.20_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n depend_v on_o a_o point_n that_o can_v never_o be_v prove_v 36.24_o the_o primitive_a church_n acknowledge_v it_o not_o digress_v 27._o phocas_n give_v it_o to_o boniface_n 36.31_o when_o it_o begin_v over_o bishop_n and_o king_n 50.9_o t_o temptation_n may_v be_v overcome_v without_o god_n grace_n as_o the_o papist_n untrue_o say_v 40.58_o tradition_n make_v equal_a to_o scripture_n 1.3_o yea_o prefer_v before_o it_o 1.2_o in_o mark_fw-mi k._n and_o 5.8_o translation_n of_o the_o scripture_n forbid_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 1.3_o how_o translation_n be_v god_n word_n itself_o and_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n 5.2_o and_o how_o our_o faith_n rely_v on_o they_o ibid._n the_o scripture_n ought_v to_o be_v translate_v and_o read_v of_o all_o digress_v 5._o the_o papist_n disdain_v this_o 5.11_o how_o our_o english_a translation_n may_v be_v call_v erroneous_a and_o how_o not_o 6.2_o how_o we_o know_v our_o english_a translation_n to_o be_v the_o infallible_a word_n of_o god_n 6.3_o 8._o the_o amend_v or_o change_v of_o our_o translation_n be_v no_o discredit_n to_o it_o 6.6_o the_o hebrew_n and_o greek_a original_n be_v free_a from_o error_n 6.11_o transubstantiation_n a_o new_a doctrine_n 35.12_o and_o 47.8_o the_o papist_n have_v no_o certainty_n of_o it_o 47.9_o treasury_n of_o the_o church_n whence_o pardon_n arise_v not_o agree_v upon_o what_o it_o shall_v be_v 40_o 34._o trent_n council_n what_o kind_n of_o council_n and_o the_o proceed_n thereof_o digress_v 20._o five_o vacancy_n of_o the_o roman_a sea_n 55.6_o venial_a sin_n what_o 40_o ●6_n some_o papist_n deny_v any_o sin_n to_o be_v venial_a num_fw-la 27._o how_o do_v away_o ibid._n visiblenes_n of_o the_o church_n see_v church_n unity_n of_o the_o church_n wherein_o it_o proper_o consist_v 33.1_o the_o true_a church_n may_v be_v without_o outward_a unity_n n._n 2._o it_o be_v sometime_o grievous_o violate_v in_o the_o church_n digress_v 21._o no_o unity_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n 35.1_o digress_v 24._o what_o kind_n of_o unity_n the_o papist_n have_v in_o their_o church_n 35.2_o universality_n of_o the_o church_n how_o to_o be_v expound_v 44.2_o universality_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n disprove_v 46.2_o our_o faith_n be_v universal_a in_o time_n place_n and_o doctrine_n 44._o uprise_v from_o sin_n be_v by_o grace_n without_o the_o dispose_n of_o the_o will_v thereto_o 40.63_o vulgar_a translation_n of_o the_o bible_n which_o the_o papist_n use_v canonize_v by_o the_o trent_n council_n 6.11_o exceed_o corrupt_a digress_v 7._o w_n wafer_n when_v bring_v into_o the_o sacrament_n 50.31_o waldense_n and_o their_o opinion_n 50.32_o woman_n pope_n 55.7_o word_n of_o god_n see_v scripture_n the_o papist_n by_o god_n word_n mean_v tradition_n as_o well_o as_o the_o write_v word_n 1.3_o work_n see_v good_a work_n and_o merit_n and_o satisfaction_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n join_v our_o work_n with_o christ_n merit_n joint_o to_o satisfy_v therewith_o 40.29_o good_a reader_n it_o may_v fall_v out_o that_o in_o the_o margin_n of_o this_o book_n special_o some_o fault_n be_v escape_v in_o the_o print_n by_o mistake_v or_o misplace_v the_o figure_n &_o other_o part_n of_o the_o quotation_n which_o be_v no_o marvel_v in_o quotation_n of_o this_o nature_n where_o many_o figure_n go_v together_o and_o i_o myself_o be_v above_o 100_o mile_n from_o the_o press_n that_o i_o can_v not_o help_v it_o nevertheless_o i_o will_v maintain_v the_o quotation_n for_o substance_n to_o be_v true_a though_o the_o printer_n may_v have_v mistake_v it_o and_o learned_a man_n that_o will_v take_v so_o much_o pain_n may_v find_v that_o which_o i_o intend_v i_o doubt_v not_o by_o their_o own_o knowledge_n of_o the_o place_n if_o the_o number_n of_o the_o quotation_n deceive_v they_o i_o know_v not_o whether_o there_o be_v any_o such_o defect_n yet_o or_o no●_n but_o this_o i_o admonish_v because_o the_o papist_n if_o they_o find_v a_o error_n in_o the_o print_n of_o one_o of_o our_o book_n use_v to_o exclaim_v as_o if_o a_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v raze_v out_o never_o remember_v the_o like_a casualty_n of_o their_o own_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n if_o i_o have_v wilful_o forge_v or_o falsify_v a_o place_n and_o another_o thing_n if_o the_o printer_n only_o have_v mistake_v the_o quotation_n the_o latter_a may_v be_v but_o the_o former_a be_v not_o as_o i_o will_v be_v ready_a to_o satisfy_v any_o that_o will_v charge_v i_o with_o it_o finis_fw-la